95-21716. North American Free Trade Agreement  

  • [Federal Register Volume 60, Number 172 (Wednesday, September 6, 1995)]
    [Rules and Regulations]
    [Pages 46334-46463]
    From the Federal Register Online via the Government Publishing Office [www.gpo.gov]
    [FR Doc No: 95-21716]
    
    
    
    
    [[Page 46333]]
    
    _______________________________________________________________________
    
    Part II
    
    
    
    
    
    Department of the Treasury
    
    
    
    
    
    _______________________________________________________________________
    
    
    
    Customs Service
    
    
    
    _______________________________________________________________________
    
    
    
    19 CFR Parts 10, 12, 24, et al.
    
    
    
    North American Free Trade Agreement (NAFTA): Implementation of Interim 
    Amendments; Final Rule
    
    Regulatory Standards For Implementation of the North American Free 
    Trade Agreement; Notice
    
    Federal Register / Vol. 60, No. 172 / Wednesday, September 6, 1995 / 
    Rules and Regulations 
    
    [[Page 46334]]
    
    
    DEPARTMENT OF THE TREASURY
    
    Customs Service
    
    19 CFR Parts 10, 12, 24, 123, 134, 162, 174, 177, 178, 181 and 191
    
    [T.D. 95-68]
    RIN 1515-AB33
    
    
    North American Free Trade Agreement
    
    AGENCY: U.S. Customs Service, Department of the Treasury.
    
    ACTION: Final rule.
    
    -----------------------------------------------------------------------
    
    SUMMARY: This document adopts as a final rule, with some changes, 
    interim amendments to the Customs Regulations which were published in 
    the Federal Register on December 30, 1993, as T.D. 94-1 to implement 
    the preferential tariff treatment and other Customs-related provisions 
    of the North American Free Trade Agreement entered into by the United 
    States, Canada and Mexico.
    
    EFFECTIVE DATE: October 1, 1995.
    
    FOR FURTHER INFORMATION CONTACT: Operational Aspects: Joyce Metzger, 
    Office of Field Operations (202-927-0792).
        Audit Aspects: William Inch, Office of Strategic Trade (202-927-
    1100).
        Legal Aspects: Myles Harmon, Office of Regulations and Rulings 
    (202-482-7000).
    SUPPLEMENTARY INFORMATION:
    
    Background
    
        On December 17, 1992, the United States, Canada and Mexico (the 
    ``Parties'') entered into an agreement, the North American Free Trade 
    Agreement (NAFTA). The stated objectives of the NAFTA are to: Eliminate 
    barriers to trade in, and facilitate the cross-border movement of, 
    goods and services between the territories of the Parties; promote 
    conditions of fair competition in the free trade area; increase 
    substantially investment opportunities in the territories of the 
    Parties; provide adequate and effective protection and enforcement of 
    intellectual property rights in each Party's territory; create 
    effective procedures for the implementation and application of the 
    NAFTA, for its joint administration and for the resolution of disputes; 
    and establish a framework for further trilateral, regional and 
    multilateral cooperation to expand and enhance the benefits of the 
    NAFTA.
        The provisions of the NAFTA were adopted by the United States with 
    the enactment of the North American Free Trade Agreement Implementation 
    Act (the ``Act''), Pub. L. 103-182, 107 Stat. 2057.
        The principal role of the U.S. Customs Service is to administer the 
    provisions of the NAFTA and the Act which relate to the importation of 
    goods into the United States from Canada and Mexico. Those Customs-
    related NAFTA provisions which require implementation through 
    regulation include certain tariff and non-tariff provisions within 
    Chapter Three (National Treatment and Market Access for Goods) and the 
    provisions of Chapter Four (Rules of Origin) and Chapter Five (Customs 
    Procedures).
        The tariff-related provisions within NAFTA Chapter Three which 
    require regulatory action by Customs are Article 303 (Restriction on 
    Drawback and Duty Deferral Programs), Article 305 (Temporary Admission 
    of Goods), Article 306 (Duty-Free Entry of Certain Commercial Samples 
    and Printed Advertising Materials) and Article 307 (Goods Re-Entered 
    after Repair or Alteration). The non-tariff provisions of Chapter Three 
    requiring Customs regulatory action are Article 310 (Customs User 
    Fees), Article 311 (Country of Origin Marking) and Annex 300-B (Textile 
    and Apparel Goods).
        Chapter Four of the NAFTA sets forth the rules for determining 
    whether an imported good qualifies as an originating good of the United 
    States, Canada or Mexico (NAFTA country) and, as such, is therefore 
    eligible for preferential tariff (duty-free or reduced duty) treatment 
    as provided for under Article 302(2) and Annex 302.2 of the NAFTA. 
    Under Article 401 within that Chapter, originating goods may be grouped 
    in two broad categories: (1) Goods which are wholly obtained or 
    produced entirely in one or more NAFTA countries; and (2) goods which 
    are produced entirely in one or more NAFTA countries exclusively from 
    materials that originate in those countries, or goods which are 
    produced entirely in those countries and which satisfy the specific 
    rules of origin in NAFTA Annex 401 (change in tariff classification 
    requirement and/or regional value-content requirement). Article 402 
    sets forth the methods for calculating the regional value content of a 
    good and the rules for determining the value of materials used in the 
    production of a good. Article 403 sets forth special rules for 
    calculating the regional value content in the case of automotive goods. 
    Article 404 provides for accumulation of production by two or more 
    producers. Article 405 provides a de minimis criterion. The remaining 
    Articles within Chapter Four consist of additional sub-rules, 
    applicable to the originating good concept, involving fungible 
    materials, packaging materials, packing materials, transshipment, and 
    non-qualifying operations.
        Chapter Five sets forth the procedural and other customs 
    requirements which apply under the NAFTA, in particular with regard to 
    claims for preferential tariff treatment. Articles 501-506 of this 
    Chapter provide for use of a Certificate of Origin for purposes of 
    certifying that an exported good qualifies as an originating good under 
    the Chapter Four origin rules, set forth the rights and obligations of 
    importers regarding imported goods and of exporters and producers 
    regarding exported goods, and set forth the rights and obligations of 
    the customs administration of the importing country when conducting a 
    verification of the origin of a good and when denying a claim for 
    preferential tariff treatment. Article 507 sets forth confidentiality 
    principles regarding business information collected pursuant to Chapter 
    Five. Article 508 requires each Party to maintain penalties for 
    violations of its laws and regulations relating to Chapter Five. 
    Article 509 sets forth the obligations for the issuance and application 
    of advance rulings by the customs administration of the importing 
    country regarding whether a good meets the country of origin marking 
    requirements of Article 311 or the origin rules of Chapter Four or 
    other NAFTA requirements that apply to certain goods at the time of 
    importation. Article 510 extends to exporters and producers of goods 
    substantially the same rights of review and appeal accorded to 
    importers regarding advance rulings or marking determinations of origin 
    or country of origin determinations for purposes of preferential tariff 
    treatment. Article 511 requires the Parties to establish, and implement 
    through their respective laws or regulations, Uniform Regulations 
    regarding the interpretation, application and administration of Chapter 
    Four, Chapter Five and any other matter as agreed by the Parties. 
    Finally, Articles 512 and 513 set forth procedures for cooperation 
    between the Parties regarding the implementation and administration of 
    the customs-related aspects of the NAFTA.
        Pursuant to Article 511 of the NAFTA, representatives of the 
    Parties engaged in a series of trilateral discussions for the purpose 
    of formulating uniform regulatory texts or principles in respect of 
    Chapters Four and Five and in respect of certain provisions within 
    Chapter Three. As regards Chapter Three, agreement was reached on 
    certain principles to be applied for purposes of implementing 
    
    [[Page 46335]]
    the drawback provisions of Article 303. With regard to the remaining 
    Chapter Three provisions, including the country of origin marking 
    provisions of Article 311 and its companion Annex 311 (which provide 
    for the establishment of ``Marking Rules'' for purposes of determining 
    whether a good constitutes, and thus may be marked as, a good of a 
    Party and which set forth disciplines on the methods and procedures for 
    the country of origin marking of goods), those provisions were to be 
    implemented by each Party independently and as appropriate within each 
    Party's statutory and regulatory structure; the U.S. Marking Rules, 
    contained in Part 102 of the Customs Regulations, were adopted on an 
    interim basis in T.D. 94-4 which was published in the Federal Register 
    on January 3, 1994 (59 FR 110). As concerns Chapter Four, the Parties 
    agreed, by an exchange of letters dated December 30, 1993, to implement 
    substantively verbatim texts of interim regulations covering all of the 
    provisions of that Chapter. Finally, in recognition of the different 
    existing customs legal and procedural requirements in the three 
    countries, in the case of Chapter Five and some provisions of Chapter 
    Three the Parties agreed, by an exchange of letters dated December 30, 
    1993, to use a standards approach whereby agreement was reached on 
    certain minimum principles to be reflected in each Party's regulations, 
    with each Party being left free to implement those principles, and any 
    other requirements not inconsistent therewith, in accordance with the 
    needs of the Party's particular statutory and regulatory framework. The 
    trilaterally-agreed standards are set forth in a document entitled 
    ``Uniform Regulations for the Interpretation, Application, and 
    Administration of Chapters Three (National Treatment and Market Access 
    for Goods) and Five (Customs Procedures) of the North American Free 
    Trade Agreement''; the text of that standards document is reproduced 
    for the information of the public in a general notice also appearing in 
    this issue of the Federal Register.
        On December 30, 1993, Customs published T.D. 94-1 in the Federal 
    Register (58 FR 69460) setting forth interim amendments to the Customs 
    Regulations to implement the preferential tariff treatment and other 
    Customs-related provisions of the NAFTA in accordance with the 
    implementation principles agreed to by the Parties as discussed above. 
    In order to provide transparency and facilitate their use, the majority 
    of the NAFTA implementing regulations set forth in T.D. 94-1 were 
    included within one new Part 181. However, in those cases in which 
    NAFTA implementation was more appropriate in the context of an existing 
    regulatory provision, the NAFTA regulatory text was incorporated in an 
    existing Part within the Customs Regulations. T.D. 94-1 also set forth 
    a number of cross-references and other consequential changes to 
    existing regulatory provisions to clarify the relationship between 
    those existing provisions and the NAFTA implementing regulations. 
    Although the interim regulatory amendments were promulgated pursuant to 
    the foreign affairs function exception to the general notice, public 
    comment, and delayed effective date requirements of 5 U.S.C. 553 and 
    took effect on January 1, 1994, in order to coincide with the entry 
    into force of the NAFTA, T.D. 94-1 nevertheless provided for the 
    submission of public comments thereon which would be considered before 
    adoption of the interim regulations as a final rule, and the prescribed 
    public comment period closed on March 30, 1994. In addition, two 
    correction documents pertaining to T.D. 94-1 were published in the 
    Federal Register, one on February 24, 1994 (59 FR 8852) and the other 
    on March 31, 1994 (59 FR 15047).
    
    Discussion of Comments
    
        A total of 15 commenters responded to the solicitation of comments 
    on the interim regulations set forth in T.D. 94-1. The comments 
    submitted, and the Customs responses thereto, are set forth below.
    
    Part 12, Sec. 12.132 (Textile and Apparel Goods Under the NAFTA)
    
        Comment: One commenter noted that whereas paragraph (b) of this 
    section provides only for preparation of the country of origin 
    declaration by the manufacturer or producer of the textile or apparel 
    goods, in the case of non-NAFTA goods the declaration may also be 
    prepared by the exporter or importer under Sec. 12.130(f). Since the 
    NAFTA provision imposes a more strict requirement, this commenter 
    suggested that the NAFTA text be aligned on Sec. 12.130(f) so as to 
    provide for preparation by the manufacturer, producer, exporter or 
    importer.
        Customs response: The U.S. importer should not be allowed to 
    prepare the declaration in this context because the importer often 
    lacks sufficient knowledge of the actual production and origin of the 
    goods. However, when the importer cannot obtain a declaration from the 
    manufacturer or producer, Customs would be willing to accept a 
    declaration prepared by the exporter, and paragraph (b) (redesignated 
    in this document as paragraph (a)(2) as explained below) has been 
    modified accordingly.
    
    Part 134, Sec. 134.22 (General Rules for Marking of Containers or 
    Holders)
    
        Comment: One commenter expressed approval of the approach taken in 
    new Sec. 134.22(d) regarding the country of origin marking of usual 
    containers, in particular with reference to paragraph (d)(2) which, in 
    the case of a good of a NAFTA country, removes from consideration the 
    additional issue of whether a particular container is capable of reuse 
    in determining whether a container must be marked. Notwithstanding the 
    fact that this NAFTA rule was specifically intended to implement Annex 
    311(7) of the NAFTA, this commenter stated that this approach should 
    not be limited to NAFTA goods but rather should be applied universally. 
    In support of this suggestion the commenter argued that: (1) The 
    standards applicable to usual containers are regulatory rather than 
    specifically required by the marking statute (19 U.S.C. 1304) and thus 
    can be changed; (2) the NAFTA does not require that its provisions be 
    limited to NAFTA trade; and (3) no public policy purpose is served by 
    having different usual container marking rules because they create 
    confusion for importers and may mislead the consumer regarding the 
    origin of the product packaged in the container when it has a different 
    marking than that of the container.
        Customs response: The definition of ``usual container'' provided in 
    Sec. 134.22(d)(1) applies to all containers, whether they are goods of 
    a non-NAFTA country or goods of a NAFTA country. However, different 
    regulatory requirements are provided in Part 134 of the Customs 
    Regulations for determining whether a usual container is excepted from 
    country of origin marking.
        Section 304(b) of the Tariff Act of 1930, as amended (19 U.S.C. 
    1304(b)), states in part that:
    
        . . . Usual containers in use as such at the time of importation 
    shall in no case be required to be marked to show the country of 
    their own origin.
    
    Thus, although a container may not be a good of a NAFTA country, if it 
    is a ``usual container'' as defined in Sec. 134.22(d)(1) of the Customs 
    Regulations it may be excepted from marking pursuant to 19 U.S.C. 
    1304(b) provided that the conditions of that statutory provision are 
    satisfied, as 
    
    [[Page 46336]]
    Customs has ruled in HQ 735548 dated February 14, 1995.
        The Part 134 regulations relating to marking of containers from 
    non-NAFTA countries (Secs. 134.23 and 134.24) generally draw a 
    distinction between reusable and disposable containers in determining 
    whether they must be marked to indicate their own country of origin. If 
    the containers are determined to be reusable, they are treated as 
    separate articles of commerce and are required to be individually 
    marked with their country of origin. However, if the containers are 
    determined to be disposable, they are not treated as separate articles 
    of commerce and are excepted from country of origin marking.
        However, for containers which are determined to be ``goods of a 
    NAFTA country'', the distinction between reusable and disposable is not 
    applicable in determining the marking requirements for the containers. 
    The country of origin marking requirements for containers which are 
    ``goods of a NAFTA country'' are based primarily on whether the 
    container is considered to be a ``usual container''. If it is 
    determined to be a ``usual container'', as defined in Sec. 134.22(d)(1) 
    of the regulations, the container is not required to be marked with its 
    own origin. The fact that a container is capable of repeated use does 
    not preclude it from being considered a ``usual container''.
        Section 134.22(d) was included in the interim regulations solely to 
    implement Annex 311(7) of the NAFTA, which applies to containers which 
    are goods of NAFTA countries. Customs does not believe that the NAFTA 
    implementing regulations are the proper vehicle for effecting a change 
    in the marking requirements for containers which are goods of non-NAFTA 
    countries. Such a change (applying to imports from non-NAFTA countries 
    the Sec. 134.22(d)(2) NAFTA ``usual container'' marking exception) 
    should be the subject of a separate notice of proposed rulemaking to 
    amend Secs. 134.23 and 134.24, so as to give affected parties an 
    opportunity to submit any comments they may have.
    
    Part 181, Subpart B (Export Requirements)
    
    Section 181.11
        Comment: With regard to the preparation and use of Certificates of 
    Origin in general, one commenter noted that the instructions for field 
    6 (Harmonized System tariff classification number) specify use of the 
    8-digit number of the country into which the good is imported if the 
    good is subject to a specific rule of origin that requires eight 
    digits. This commenter suggested that this creates an unnecessary 
    burden on exporters because it requires them to cross-reference and 
    cross-document the seventh and eighth digits of tariff numbers for each 
    NAFTA country and may mean in some cases that three separate 
    Certificates would have to be prepared for one part number. Since the 
    tariff numbers in field 6 simply identify the rule of origin that the 
    exporter used to certify the goods and because the seventh and eighth 
    digits in all three countries identify the same goods and the same rule 
    of origin, this commenter suggested the following alternative 
    solutions: (1) The three governments could publish a single conversion 
    list of the tariff numbers for each country for distribution to customs 
    officials and the public; or (2) the exporter could be allowed to 
    indicate with a ``U'', ``C'' or ``M'' prefix the country of the tariff 
    number used in field 6.
        Customs response: Customs does not agree with the proposal of 
    allowing classification to be reported at the 6-digit level. Many of 
    the specific rules of origin were written at the 7th and 8th digit 
    level to capture a desired processing condition. Where this is the 
    case, a NAFTA claimant must indicate that the processing it performed 
    accomplished the required tariff shift. Reporting a classification 
    number at a lesser level would not satisfy this requirement.
        The proposal for publishing a list of all of the rules together 
    with references to the 8-digit item numbers may have some merit. It 
    should be noted that the tariff items in these rules are reflected 
    either in the rules themselves or in the Appendix to Annex 401 of the 
    NAFTA. Currently, the NAFTA Parties are exploring within the trilateral 
    working groups created under the NAFTA the most appropriate means to 
    keep the trading public aware of the changes to the rules, including 
    those that involve changes at the 8-digit level. The commenter's 
    suggestion will be kept in mind in that context.
        Finally, Customs is of the opinion that the suggestion of utilizing 
    a letter prefix to a 6-digit classification number to designate which 
    country's tariff schedule is being applied would not be workable. An 
    enterprise wishing to take advantage of NAFTA in any one of the NAFTA 
    countries must classify according to the actual tariff schedule of the 
    importing country at the 7th or 8th digit level as shown in that tariff 
    in any case in which the specific origin rule requires a change at that 
    level.
        Comment: One commenter raised two issues regarding paragraph (d) 
    which provides that if a U.S. exporter or producer has reason to 
    believe that a Certificate of Origin completed and signed by him 
    contains incorrect information affecting its validity or accuracy, he 
    shall within 30 calendar days so notify in writing all persons to whom 
    the Certificate was given. First, this commenter suggested a problem 
    with the ``within 30 calendar days'' language in that significant 
    controversy could arise in trying to pin down exactly on which day the 
    exporter or producer had the requisite ``reason to believe''. Second, 
    the commenter expressed some confusion as to whether a Certificate 
    could be deemed to be incorrect if the information provided thereon was 
    accurate when the Certificate was signed, and in this regard the 
    commenter questioned whether the notice had to be provided in the 
    following circumstances: (1) Whenever there is a change in the product, 
    even if a recipient of the Certificate no longer receives the product; 
    and (2) where the exporter or producer is uncertain as to which of its 
    products the recipient intends to apply the Certificate. Stating that 
    the duty to ascertain inaccuracies and search for all Certificate 
    recipients is unrealistic and fraught with pitfalls for well-
    intentioned exporters or producers, this commenter suggested that 
    paragraph (d) be redrafted to more specifically define the obligations 
    of Certificate creators.
        Customs response: The comment with regard to the commencement of 
    the 30-day period appears to have merit. Accordingly, paragraph (d) of 
    Sec. 181.11, as set forth below, has been modified by inserting the 
    phrase ``after the date of discovery of the error'' immediately after 
    the phrase ``30 calendar days''. This additional language would 
    encompass the discovery of an error by any involved party: the 
    exporter, producer or verifying customs administration. The condition 
    that no formal investigation be begun should be unaffected by the 
    addition of this phrase. For purposes of consistency and based on the 
    same considerations, a similar modification has been made to the text 
    of Sec. 181.21(b) regarding the correction of a declaration.
        With regard to the issue of the specific circumstances in which 
    notice of an incorrect Certificate of Origin must be provided, Customs 
    would first point out that where information believed by the preparer 
    of the Certificate to be accurate is found to be incorrect by a 
    verifying customs administration, such information constitutes 
    incorrect information which might affect the granting of preferential 
    tariff treatment. Accordingly, all recipients of the 
    
    [[Page 46337]]
    Certificate must be notified of the incorrect information so that a 
    NAFTA claim is not made based on erroneous information.
        Where there is a change to a product and the recipient of the 
    Certificate covering that product no longer receives the product, it is 
    the position of Customs that if the product change affects the 
    eligibility of the product retroactively and if the recipient based its 
    claim of NAFTA treatment for that product on an incorrect Certificate, 
    the recipient must be sent a corrected Certificate so that it might 
    correct its entry. Prospective shipments of the product should be 
    covered by a new Certificate given to current importers of the product.
        Finally, as regards a case in which the exporter or producer is 
    uncertain as to the specific products to which the recipient intends to 
    apply the Certificate, it is the position of Customs that an exporter 
    or producer must assume that each recipient of its Certificate intends 
    to utilize it for all products listed thereon and thus must be notified 
    of any incorrect information appearing on the Certificate.
    Section 181.12
        A commenter stated that this section imposes overly broad and 
    burdensome recordkeeping requirements on U.S. exporters and producers 
    whose goods qualify as originating goods under an origin criterion that 
    does not involve a regional value-content requirement. Since in such a 
    case data as to cost, value and payment are irrelevant in qualifying as 
    an originating good, this commenter states that Sec. 181.12 should be 
    written so as to require only that recordkeeping which is necessary to 
    demonstrate the correctness of the basis upon which originating status 
    is claimed.
        Customs response: The recordkeeping requirements contained in 
    paragraph (a) of this section, including the specific types of records 
    to be maintained, reflect the provisions of Article 505 of the 
    Agreement which was implemented by an amendment to 19 U.S.C. 1508 
    effected by section 205 of the Act. Moreover, this comment fails to 
    recognize a basic problem that could arise from use of the suggested 
    minimalist approach: a customs administration may have no choice but to 
    deny a claim for preferential tariff treatment if the claimed basis for 
    originating status is not valid and no records have been maintained to 
    support an applicable alternative basis involving a regional value-
    content requirement.
    
    Part 181, Subpart C (Import Requirements)
    
    Section 181.21
        Comment: With regard to the requirement under paragraph (a) that 
    the claim for preferential tariff treatment be based on a Certificate 
    of Origin in the possession of the importer, one commenter stated that 
    the regulatory provision is unclear as to whether possession of a copy 
    of the Certificate would satisfy this requirement. This commenter 
    stated that permitting use of copies of a Certificate is necessary 
    where there are multiple importer customers, where goods are exported 
    to two NAFTA countries, and where a supplier provides a Certificate to 
    a central location of a producer which has subsidiaries operating in 
    more than one NAFTA country.
        Customs response: Customs believes that this commenter makes a 
    valid point. Accordingly, paragraph (a) of Sec. 181.21, as set forth 
    below, has been modified to provide for possession of a copy of a 
    Certificate of Origin.
        Comment: With regard to the written declaration under paragraph (a) 
    and the written correction of a declaration under paragraph (b), a 
    commenter suggested that additional provision should be made for 
    effecting both actions by electronic means in order to reflect the 
    Customs Modernization provisions of the Act.
        Customs response: Although the suggestion has some merit in 
    principle, Customs believes that it would be premature at this time to 
    revise these paragraphs to provide for electronic means for complying 
    with their provisions. As Customs implements the Customs Modernization 
    provisions of the Act, it will identify which regulatory activities may 
    be performed electronically and will amend the regulations accordingly. 
    At that time, these NAFTA provisions will be reviewed and, if 
    necessary, brought into line with whatever changes are made elsewhere 
    in the Customs Regulations with respect to the electronic filing of 
    entry information.
        Comment: One commenter stated that paragraph (b) should require 
    that Customs send to the importer's surety a copy of the importer's 
    corrected declaration because, if the importer fails to pay the 
    required duties, the surety will not be aware of this circumstance 
    until the entry is liquidated and demand is made upon the surety.
        Customs response: Customs does not now notify sureties during the 
    entry process, and that policy should continue to be applied in the 
    context mentioned by this commenter.
        It should also be noted that the failure to deposit estimated 
    duties when due is a bond breach, and Customs may make an immediate 
    demand in the event of a breach. There is no basis for a different 
    procedure when the bond principal breaches that provision at the time 
    of entry or when the bond principal breaches that provision at the time 
    of filing a corrected declaration.
    Section 181.22
        Comment: For purposes of submitting a Certificate of Origin to 
    Customs under paragraph (b), one commenter stated that, by referring to 
    a Certificate ``signed by the exporter or producer'', the regulation 
    appears to permit the exporter to simply provide the producer's 
    Certificate to the importer. This commenter suggested that, if this is 
    so and if the producer were allowed to execute a single Certificate and 
    provide copies thereof to its customer exporters who then could provide 
    copies to their customer importers, the following benefits could be 
    realized: (1) A producer Certificate would not have to be re-executed 
    by exporters; (2) a possessor of a Certificate would always know who 
    the producer of the goods was; and (3) administrative effort would be 
    reduced by requiring creation of only a single Certificate.
        Customs response: While the commenter's suggestion has some logic 
    and merit under the regulatory text as written, Article 501(3) of the 
    Agreement (and Sec. 181.11(b) in a U.S. export context) are quite clear 
    that an importer's claim for preferential NAFTA tariff treatment can 
    only be based on a Certificate of Origin prepared by the exporter of 
    the good. Moreover, any Certificate completed by a producer is done 
    voluntarily whereas that prepared by the exporter is a requirement for 
    claiming NAFTA treatment. In order to remove any ambiguity and ensure 
    consistency with the terms of the Agreement, paragraph (b)(2) of 
    Sec. 181.22, as set forth below, has been modified by removing the two 
    references to ``or producer''.
        Comment: One commenter stated that this section should be modified 
    to require that Customs provide notification to the importer's surety 
    whenever the importer fails to comply with a request for submission of 
    a Certificate of Origin. This would enable a surety to minimize its 
    risk in cases involving a series of related importations which result 
    in denial of preferential tariff treatment and issuance of a claim for 
    increased duty under the surety's bond.
        Customs response: The comment response under Sec. 181.21 above 
    regarding 
    
    [[Page 46338]]
    notice to a surety applies equally to this comment. Moreover, the 
    principal may pay the duty so that no bond breach would occur. In any 
    event, the requested change would inject Customs into the contractual 
    relationship between the surety and its bond principal. The submission 
    of document copies is a matter that is best resolved between the 
    principal and its surety.
    
    Part 181, Subpart D (Post-Importation Duty Refund Claims)
    
    Section 181.31
        Comment: One commenter stated that this section should be amended 
    to expressly permit sureties to submit post-importation NAFTA claims so 
    that sureties may protect their interests, for example in a case where 
    the importer is out of business and the surety has a liability on the 
    transaction. This commenter argued that this would be a logical and 
    much needed extension of surety rights under the administrative 
    process, noting in this regard that sureties presently can file 
    protests, petitions for relief from liquidated damage claims and 
    petitions under 19 U.S.C. 1520(c).
        Customs response: Both Article 502(3) of the Agreement and the U.S. 
    implementing statute specifically provide for the filing of a post-
    importation claim by the importer. While 19 U.S.C. 1514(c) expressly 
    provides for the filing of a protest by a surety in its own right, no 
    corresponding surety right is reflected in 19 U.S.C. 1520(d) which was 
    added by section 206 of the Act. Of course, a surety or any other party 
    acting as a duly authorized agent may file a post-importation claim on 
    behalf of its importer principal.
    Section 181.32
        Comment: One commenter complained of the post-importation refund 
    claim documentary requirements in paragraphs (b)(3)-(5) of this 
    section, pointing out that the written statements specified therein 
    constitute added and burdensome requirements that are not applied 
    either in the case of a NAFTA claim made at the time of entry or in the 
    case of any other post-importation claim procedure under Part 173 or 
    174 of the Customs Regulations. This commenter therefore suggested 
    removal of these requirements.
        Customs response: The written statement requirements for post-
    importation claims are designed to prevent an overpayment of a duty 
    refund such as drawback. Customs notes that there are parallel NAFTA 
    requirements for drawback and duty deferral program participants under 
    Part 181 (see Secs. 181.47 (b) and (c) and Sec. 181.53(a)(3)). 
    Accordingly, Customs believes that these requirements must be retained.
    Section 181.33
        Comment: Two commenters referred to paragraph (d)(3) which provides 
    that where the entry covering the good has been liquidated, whether or 
    not the liquidation has become final, a post-importation refund claim 
    may be denied without reliquidating the entry. One of these commenters 
    stated that this section and Part 174 of the Customs Regulations should 
    include the right to file a protest within 90 days of the denial of the 
    claim whether or not the liquidation has become final. The other 
    commenter stated that the regulations do not, but should, provide for 
    an administrative appeal process in the case of a denial issued more 
    than 90 days after liquidation of the entry.
        Customs response: Customs agrees that a claimant has a right to 
    file a protest based on a denial of a NAFTA post-importation claim, 
    including in cases in which the claim is denied more than 90 days after 
    liquidation of the entry and without reliquidation of the entry, and 
    Customs also agrees that the regulations should explicitly reflect this 
    right. Accordingly, Sec. 174.12(e)(2), which specifies when the 90-day 
    time period for filing a protest begins in the case of a protest 
    against a decision not involving a liquidation or reliquidation, has 
    been modified as set forth below by the inclusion of a specific 
    reference to a claim filed under 19 U.S.C. 1520(d).
        Customs notes that in the case of a denial of a post-importation 
    claim on the merits (that is, where the denial is based on a negative 
    origin determination rather than on procedural grounds), a person who 
    signed a Certificate of Origin relating to the good at issue has a 
    right to file a protest against the denial (see 19 U.S.C. 1514(c)(2)(E) 
    and interim Sec. 174.12(a)(5) as republished below). In order to 
    reflect current Customs practice, Secs. 181.33 (d)(2) and (d)(3), as 
    set forth below, have been modified to provide that the notice of 
    denial of the claim in such cases shall include a statement regarding 
    the right to file a protest against the denial under Part 174 of the 
    regulations.
    
    Part 181, Subpart E (Restrictions on Drawback And Duty-Deferral 
    Programs)
    
    Section 181.41
        Comment: Two commenters stated that this section implies that the 
    effective dates of 1996 and 2001 apply only where preferential tariff 
    treatment under NAFTA is claimed. This is not correct and therefore it 
    should be made clear that these effective dates apply to all 
    merchandise whether or not NAFTA preferential treatment is involved.
        Customs response: Customs agrees that the subpart covers all 
    exports to Canada or Mexico, whether a claim for preferential tariff 
    treatment is made or not. Accordingly, the second sentence of 
    Sec. 181.41, as set forth below, has been modified by inserting a 
    period after ``January 1, 2001'' and removing the rest of the sentence.
    Section 181.44(a)
        Comment: A commenter pointed out that it is too difficult for the 
    drawback claimant to ``discover'' the duty paid on the merchandise when 
    it is imported into the United States and when it is imported into 
    Canada and Mexico. As an alternative, this commenter suggested that a 
    NAFTA control number be placed on the commercial invoice when a 
    drawback claim is expected to be filed. Each U.S. exporter could use 
    its tax identification number (from the Certificate of Origin) followed 
    by a date code and a sequential number. This control number should 
    become part of the import records associated with NAFTA claims in 
    Canada or Mexico.
        This commenter went on to state that whenever this sequential NAFTA 
    drawback control number appears, Canadian or Mexican Customs should 
    enter the amount of duty from the import entry, together with the 
    control number, into a database which could be downloaded into the U.S. 
    Customs computer system. The data could then be accessed by U.S. 
    Customs through ABI to determine duties paid upon importation into 
    Canada or Mexico. Upon liquidation of the import transaction in Canada 
    or Mexico, the computer record would be updated. The drawback claimant 
    should be allowed to waive the right to claim a refund of the amount 
    equal to the additional duties that would be owed to Canadian or 
    Mexican Customs. This would set the date of entry when duties have been 
    paid in Canada or Mexico for drawback purposes. The commenter suggested 
    that without a link between the three Customs administrations, drawback 
    claims will be delayed.
        Customs response: This commenter recognizes that the Agreement and 
    the statute require the amount of duty paid in Canada or Mexico to be 
    reported. The commenter's proposal to require a drawback control number 
    to be placed on the commercial invoice and for the Customs Services of 
    the three countries to monitor that number would be extremely 
    burdensome. In addition, 
    
    [[Page 46339]]
    Customs is aware that many U.S. importers have alleged an inability to 
    obtain the foreign invoice. Such inability can only result from a 
    failure of the commercial participants to address the issues in a 
    timely manner. Drawback claims require that the commercial participants 
    resolve these information issues in the terms of the sale before the 
    export so that the required information on the completed transaction 
    can be presented to Customs to establish any drawback eligibility. 
    Paragraph (c) of Sec. 181.47 lists the required evidence.
        Comment: A commenter stated that any claim based on estimates (that 
    is, the NAFTA duty rate multiplied by the invoice value) would not take 
    into account duty exemptions that may be available to Canadian and 
    Mexican importers and that may not be apparent on the face of the 
    commercial documents (for example, articles assembled abroad and 
    returned). If there are no such exemptions and value can be determined 
    on the face of the commercial documents, then the claimant should be 
    allowed to base the duty amount on the appropriate NAFTA duty rate in 
    Canada or Mexico multiplied by the FOB value.
        Customs response: Drawback claimants cannot base their claims on 
    estimates; rather, each claim must be based on the liquidated amount of 
    duty paid on the import entry for goods entered into Canada or Mexico.
    Section 181.44(b)
        Comment: Two commenters stated that this section is unclear as to 
    the calculation of drawback when two or more components are used in the 
    process of manufacture. One of these commenters raised the question of 
    whether the comparison of duty paid must be between the duty paid on 
    each component part and the duty paid on the finished article exported 
    to Canada or Mexico or between the total duty paid on all component 
    parts and the duty paid on the finished article exported to Canada or 
    Mexico. This commenter provided the following example:
    
        Two parts, X and Z, are imported duty-paid into the United 
    States at $2.00 and $4.00, respectively. Assume article Y is 
    manufactured and exported to Canada or Mexico and duty of $5.00 is 
    due. Does the lesser of the two duties apply to X and Z individually 
    (resulting in $6.00 in drawback) or collectively (resulting in $5.00 
    in drawback)?
    
        Customs response: With respect to the duty comparisons, the 
    comparison should be made on an individual basis regardless of whether 
    two components are used to make one export article or one component, 
    such as a chemical, is split into two export articles. Section 181.44, 
    as set forth below, has been modified by redesignating paragraphs (b)-
    (e) as (c)-(f) and adding a new paragraph (b) which sets forth the 
    relative value calculation and individual comparison principle and 
    includes the following example:
    
        Upon importation of Chemical X into the United States, Company A 
    entered Chemical X and paid $2.00 in duties. Company A processed 
    Chemical X into Products Y and Z, each having the same relative 
    value; that is, $1.00 in duty is attributable to Product Y and $1.00 
    in duty is attributable to Product Z. Company A exported Product Y 
    to Canada and Canada assessed a free rate of duty. Company A 
    exported Product Z to Mexico and Mexico assessed the equivalent of 
    US$2.00 in duty. There is no entitlement to drawback on the export 
    of Product Y to Canada because zero is the lesser amount when 
    compared to the $1.00 in duty attributable to Product Y as a result 
    of the separation of Chemical X into Products Y and Z. There would 
    be entitlement to drawback on the export to Mexico, consisting of 
    the $1.00 duty attributable to Product Z, because that amount is the 
    lesser amount when comparing the duty paid to the United States and 
    the US$ equivalent duty paid to Mexico.
    Section 181.44(c)
        Comment: Three commenters expressed concern about the statement in 
    Sec. 181.44(c) (redesignated in this document as Sec. 181.44(d) as 
    discussed above) that ``same kind and quality'' is synonymous with 
    ``identical or similar good''. They stated that this terminology should 
    not restrict or eliminate rulings and court cases related to same kind 
    and quality. Another commenter stated that making the term ``same kind 
    and quality'' synonymous with the terms ``identical'' or ``similar'' 
    seems to eliminate substitution drawback since identical or similar 
    goods are defined in part as ``goods that were produced in the same 
    country as that good''. If this is true, then the example in this 
    section is incorrect because it allows for the substitution of foreign 
    and domestic goods. On a related subject, a commenter raised the point 
    that the statement that the two terms are synonymous leaves the door 
    open for narrowing the scope of the ``same kind and quality'' provision 
    to that of ``identical or similar.'' This commenter was of the view 
    that it should be stated that all rulings, court cases or other 
    determinations pertaining to same kind and quality will be the guiding 
    force in understanding the meaning of ``identical and similar good.''
        Customs response: Although it is true that the term ``same kind and 
    quality'' is considered to have the same meaning as the term 
    ``identical or similar'', Customs does not intend to require that the 
    substituted merchandise come from the same country to qualify for 
    manufacturing drawback under the NAFTA. Section 181.44(d), as set forth 
    below, has been modified to clarify these points.
    Section 181.45
        Comment: With regard to the reference in this section to ``same 
    condition'' instead of ``unused merchandise'', three commenters 
    questioned whether a third unique type of drawback is contemplated by 
    this regulation, that is, same condition drawback for NAFTA countries 
    and unused drawback or manufacturing drawback for all other countries. 
    Otherwise, they stated that the terminology used in the NAFTA and in 19 
    U.S.C. 1313(j), as amended by section 632 of the Act, must be 
    harmonized. Also on this subject, another commenter stated that, for 
    consistency, the term ``same condition drawback'' should be replaced 
    with ``unused merchandise drawback.''
        Customs response: The Agreement was signed by the United States on 
    December 17, 1992. The United States could not, without reopening 
    negotiations with the two other Governments, incorporate changes made 
    to its national laws subsequent to December 17, 1992, in its obligation 
    to implement the Agreement. Consequently, with respect to trade between 
    the three NAFTA parties there will be unavoidable inconsistencies when 
    compared with trade between the United States and countries outside the 
    Agreement. It is simply impossible to eliminate all differences between 
    the provisions of sections 203 and 632 of the Act by regulation. In 
    trade between NAFTA countries the provisions of section 203 of the Act 
    control. Subpart E can do no more than to implement section 203 of the 
    Act.
    Section 181.45(b)
        Comment: Two commenters stated that the second sentence of the 
    example should be amended to simply read ``X immediately exports the 
    desk to Z in Mexico'' because, whether or not duties are owed in 
    Mexico, the mere fact of exportation will allow X to obtain a refund of 
    99% of the $25.00 in duty paid upon importation of the desk into the 
    United States. These commenters went on to state that the fact that Z 
    pays duty of $10.00 in Mexico is moot: 19 U.S.C. 1313(j)(1) contains no 
    limitation based upon payment of duties in the NAFTA country of import. 
    Thus, including the $10.00 Mexican duty in 
    
    [[Page 46340]]
    the example rather than a ``whether or not'' phrase regarding payment 
    of duty in Mexico, will be confusing to industry and to Customs 
    personnel. Since the amount of duty is only germane in calculating the 
    ``lesser of two duties'' under a manufacturing scenario, these 
    commenters stated that the suggested modifications of the example would 
    more accurately reflect the law.
        Customs response: The sentence which precedes the example, together 
    with the example, illustrates precisely the point made by the comment.
        Comment: A commenter stated that the term ``commercially 
    interchangeable'' should be substituted for ``completely fungible'' in 
    subparagraph (2) of this section.
        Customs response: In order to avail oneself of full drawback under 
    direct identification, the Agreement and implementing legislation 
    permit identification of the exported good as the imported good by 
    means of a recordkeeping system only if the goods are fungible and 
    commingled. Section 181.45(b)(2)(i), as set forth below, has been 
    modified as explained below in the response to the comments submitted 
    regarding Schedule X of the Appendix to Part 181, and the modified text 
    does not include the superfluous word ``completely'' before 
    ``fungible''.
    Section 181.45(c)
        Comment: One commenter stated that the statement ``X exports it 
    within 90 days'' in the example under this section should be changed to 
    refer to ``within 3 years''.
        Customs response: The period for exportation is clearly stated in 
    Sec. 181.45(c). An example cannot impose a further qualification on 
    either the statute or implementing regulation. So long as the period is 
    less than 3 years the example correctly illustrates the provision.
    Section 181.46(b)
        Comment: Two commenters stated that the existing exporter's summary 
    procedure and waiver of prior notice provisions and the new provisions 
    for ``unused merchandise drawback'' eliminate the need to inspect the 
    goods prior to export because it would be too difficult for Customs to 
    determine ``unused'' status by visual inspection. These two commenters, 
    after stating that the Office of Trade Operations has indicated that 
    the required 5 days of prior notice may be shortened to 48 hours, 
    suggested that any change to this time period in Part 191 of the 
    Customs Regulations should be reflected in the corresponding provision 
    in Part 181. In addition, one of these commenters pointed out that 
    there never existed a requirement for filing at the port of 
    exportation.
        Customs response: Although the exporter's summary procedure and 
    waiver of prior notice provisions are not specifically provided for in 
    the NAFTA, they are not new to the Drawback Program. Therefore, the 
    existence of these two privileges would not be a basis for eliminating 
    the physical inspection of the goods. With respect to shortening the 
    prior notice period from 5 days to 48 hours, this principle already has 
    been considered by Customs in connection with a pending proposed 
    revision of Part 191 of the Customs Regulations. Section 181.46(b), as 
    set forth below, has been modified to specify a prior notice period of 
    2 working days rather than 5 days.
        Comment: One commenter pointed out that the statement in this 
    section that ``[g]enerally, for same condition drawback, the claim 
    would be filed with the Customs port where the examination would take 
    place'' is not practical and not required by law.
        Customs response: Because there are currently no requirements that 
    claimants file same condition claims at the port where the examination 
    will take place, Customs agrees that this statement should be replaced 
    by the following: ``To facilitate expedited processing of claims, 
    claimants should file same condition drawback claims in the port where 
    the examination would take place''. Section 181.46(b) as set forth 
    below has been modified accordingly.
        Comment: A commenter requested that the text of this section be 
    replaced by the appropriate sections from Part 191 of the regulations. 
    The commenter did not explain the basis for this comment.
        Customs response: Customs believes that the new language set forth 
    in the preceding response will at least in part address this comment.
    Section 181.47(a)
        Comment: Two commenters stated that this section places an undue 
    burden on the claimant because it requires the claimant to monitor the 
    enforcement of the Canadian or Mexican Customs regulations. These 
    commenters also argued that the section is also unfair in that it 
    requires the claimant to have access to duty payment information to 
    which it is not privileged, when sometimes the claimant does not even 
    know who the ultimate importer is in Canada or Mexico.
        Customs response: The Agreement provides that the amount of the 
    duties paid in the destination NAFTA country must be presented by the 
    person seeking a refund of that duty from the exporting NAFTA country. 
    In order to obtain the refund, the claimant must obtain the cooperation 
    of its customer in Canada or Mexico.
    Section 181.47(b)(1)
        Comment: Two commenters complained that the Canadian or Mexican 
    Customs entry and the document referred to as the ``certification'', 
    which are required to be submitted under this section, are too 
    difficult for the U.S. exporter to obtain. Two other commenters stated 
    that requiring both documents is redundant and contradictory to the 
    paperless entry concept. Another commenter suggested that the entry 
    documents should not be required but rather should be used only if 
    available and that certification should only be provided in the event 
    of an audit.
        Customs response: The provision reflects a basic and necessary 
    component of a proper NAFTA drawback claim and is not redundant since 
    alternative methods may be used to establish that amount as set forth 
    in paragraph (c) of Sec. 181.47. As regards the alleged burden imposed 
    by this provision, and as noted elsewhere, a drawback claimant will 
    need the cooperation of its Mexican or Canadian customer in order to 
    benefit under the agreement.
    Section 181.47(b)(2)(i)
        Comment: Two commenters believed that the documents required in 
    Part 191 of the regulations satisfy the NAFTA requirements. They stated 
    that commercial invoices, proof of payment of duties and import 
    documents relating to an exportation to a foreign country have never 
    been required with drawback claims under Part 191 and should only be 
    required in the event of an audit. These two commenters also stated 
    that these documents would not be required at the time of filing the 
    claim under the exporter's summary procedure.
        Customs response: Paragraph (c) of Sec. 181.47 does not require 
    filing of the Canadian or Mexican Customs entry because, under 
    subparagraph (4), the drawback claimant may file an affidavit in lieu 
    of the Canadian or Mexican entry document provided that certain 
    specified information is also submitted. The requirement for these new 
    documents is a result of the new ``lesser of the two'' system which is 
    part of the NAFTA Agreement. The documents required in Part 191 of the 
    regulations would not enable either the claimant or Customs to have 
    knowledge of the 
    
    [[Page 46341]]
    amount of duties paid upon importation into Canada or Mexico.
        Section 181.47(b)(2)(ii)(G) provides an alternative means for a 
    drawback claimant under 19 U.S.C. 1313(j)(1) to show exportation.
    Section 181.47(b)(2)(i)(A)
        Comment: Four commenters stated that it is unclear why the tariff 
    classification number of the imported merchandise is needed when the 
    drawback is based upon the duty paid (regardless of the tariff number). 
    These commenters further stated that tariff numbers have never played a 
    significant role in drawback before.
        Customs response: The tariff classification number will facilitate 
    processing drawback claims by Customs. The use of a number rather than 
    a textual description is better adapted to automated processing 
    procedures. In the near future, tariff numbers will be required for all 
    drawback claims, not just for NAFTA claims. These numbers are needed 
    for compiling profiles as part of the planned selectivity system for 
    drawback.
        Because drawback claims under the Agreement require a comparison on 
    an individual basis, as noted by these same commenters, with respect to 
    Sec. 181.45, the line item information is needed in order to process a 
    claim under the Agreement.
    Section 181.47(b)(2)(i)(B)
        Comment: An objection was raised by three commenters regarding the 
    requirement of submission of the commercial invoice because many 
    importers do not have a hard copy of this document. These commenters 
    argued that submission of the commercial invoice is contrary to the 
    Customs modernization provisions of the Act and to the principles of 
    automation, and they further stated that the commercial invoice is 
    difficult to obtain because it contains proprietary information. Two of 
    these commenters also pointed out that Customs will not have sufficient 
    staff to review all of this documentation.
        Customs response: Customs agrees that claimants should not be 
    required to submit Customs Form 7501 and copies of commercial invoices 
    with their claims unless they are requested by Customs. Accordingly, 
    Sec. 181.47(b)(2)(i)(B), as set forth below, has been modified to 
    specify only ``Customs Form 7501 or the import entry number''. It 
    should be noted, however, that claimants (and other parties who provide 
    information on which a claim is based) must continue to maintain 
    records to support the claim and make them available upon request. This 
    includes records of importation and invoice-level information.
    Section 181.47(b)(2)(i)(C)
        Comment: Three commenters objected to the inclusion of the Canadian 
    and Mexican entry numbers on the exporter's summary procedure because: 
    (1) These numbers are not available to the exporter; (2) the exporter's 
    summary procedure was not intended for this purpose; and (3) the courts 
    have ruled that when information such as this is impossible to obtain 
    the ``best evidence available'' must be accepted.
        Customs response: These numbers are needed in order for the NAFTA 
    countries to implement a data exchange system which will be used to 
    verify the requested amount of drawback based on the ``lesser of the 
    two'' system. The NAFTA parties will provide each with a tape of entry 
    numbers and corresponding duty payments so that claimed amounts may be 
    verified on a spot-check basis. Entry numbers are needed for this 
    system to work.
    Section 181.47(b)(2)(i)(D)
        Comment: Three commenters stated that the NAFTA regulations should 
    require only ``evidence of exportation'', as is required in Part 191 of 
    the regulations, rather than the ``proof of exportation'' provided for 
    in this section and in other sections of these NAFTA regulations.
        Customs response: Customs agrees that the term ``evidence'' should 
    be substituted for the term ``proof'' in each such context in order to 
    be consistent with Part 191 of the regulations, and the Subpart E 
    texts, as set forth below, have been appropriately modified throughout.
    Section 181.47(b)(2)(i)(E)
        Comment: Three commenters stated that waivers of rights to drawback 
    are already available in the form of certificates of delivery and 
    certificates of manufacture, and therefore any additional waiver 
    requirement is redundant.
        Customs response: The certificate of delivery does not waive any 
    right to drawback particularly in light of the right to transfer 
    substitute merchandise. This certificate makes it absolutely clear to 
    the certifier that it may not claim any drawback with respect to the 
    merchandise covered by the waiver.
        Comment: A commenter questioned the validity of the waiver of the 
    right to drawback by the importer in favor of the exporter when 
    Sec. 181.48(a) clearly states that the exporter is entitled to 
    drawback.
        Customs response: A waiver is needed from the importer who 
    transfers any merchandise to a manufacturer and issues a certificate of 
    delivery. A manufacturer who transfers merchandise to an exporter and 
    issues a certificate of manufacture and delivery also needs to issue a 
    waiver.
    Section 181.47(b)(2)(i)(F)
        Comment: Three commenters stated that the requirement that the 
    drawback claimant provide a certification that he has not issued a 
    Certificate of Origin for the goods to another party, or that he will 
    notify Customs if he does so, is not valid because there is no NAFTA 
    provision that precludes drawback when NAFTA preference is taken. One 
    commenter stated that the separate certification or affidavit is not 
    needed because it is well known that double dipping is illegal.
        Customs response: The requirement is necessary since it is far from 
    obvious that providing a Certificate of Origin which enables a Mexican 
    or Canadian importer to obtain a duty reduction or refund from Mexico 
    or Canada would be considered illegal double-dipping by a United States 
    drawback claimant since that claimant would not necessarily benefit 
    directly from the actions of its customers.
        Comment: Another commenter took issue with the requirement for an 
    affidavit by a manufacturing claimant certifying that no other claim 
    has been filed on the goods. This commenter stated that once the 
    claimant receives either a certificate of delivery or a certificate of 
    manufacture and delivery, he can only certify that he has not made any 
    other claim on the goods. The manufacturing claimant will not know 
    whether the importer or any other party makes a claim on the goods.
        Customs response: The commenter appears to compare the requirements 
    of Sec. 181.47(b)(2)(i)(F) and Sec. 181.51(b). The Customs 
    recordkeeping statute, 19 U.S.C. 1508, as amended by section 205 of the 
    Act, does not prohibit a drawback claimant from providing an affidavit 
    on the preparation of a Certificate of Origin with the drawback claim. 
    It does require a drawback claimant to report such facts within 30 days 
    of filing a drawback claim if that claimant has not already done so.
        Informed compliance means that the Government is under an 
    obligation to inform persons who deal with it which acts are 
    proscribed. The regulation which requires a certification that the same 
    import entry for the same designation of goods has not been used in 
    more than one claim fulfills that obligation.
    
    [[Page 46342]]
    
    Section 181.47(b)(2)(ii)(A)
        Comment: Two commenters stated that the requirement for the tariff 
    classification at entry is superfluous.
        Customs response: As already pointed out, in the near future tariff 
    numbers will be required for all drawback claims, not just for NAFTA 
    claims. These numbers are needed for compiling profiles as part of the 
    planned selectivity system for drawback.
    Section 181.47(b)(2)(ii)(B)
        Comment: Four commenters stated that the requirement regarding 
    submission of commercial invoices is in conflict with the requirements 
    of the Customs modernization provisions of the Act and is a step 
    backwards in the automation process. These commenters further argued 
    that these documents are impossible to obtain when the claimant is not 
    the importer. One of these commenters suggested requiring a pro forma 
    invoice instead for same condition claims in order to resolve the 
    latter problem. Another of these commenters stated that the detail 
    required in this section may not be available due to automation and 
    paperless entries and that it should be changed to refer to Customs 
    Form 7501 and any appropriate documentation which identifies the 
    subject goods. Another commenter stated that the entry documents (such 
    as Customs Form 7501) may not be available because of confidentiality 
    considerations.
        Customs response: Again, Customs agrees that claimants should not 
    be required to submit commercial invoices with their claims. 
    Accordingly, Sec. 181.47(b)(2)(ii)(B), as set forth below, has been 
    modified by removing the two references to commercial invoices, and 
    Sec. 181.47(b)(2)(iii)(B), as set forth below, has been similarly 
    modified for purposes of consistency. However, Customs would again 
    point out that claimants (and other parties who provide information on 
    which a claim is based) must possess and maintain records to support 
    the claim and make them available upon request. This includes records 
    of importation and invoice-level information.
    Section 181.47(b)(2)(ii)(G)
        Comment: Two commenters stated that this section should begin with 
    the words ``If exporter summary procedures are not in force''. In 
    addition, two commenters stated that the words ``* * * and signed in 
    ink'' should be deleted because obtaining an original ink signature on 
    a nonnegotiable copy of a document is an unnecessary burden. Finally, 
    one commenter stated that this section does not take into account 
    claimants using procedures under Sec. 191.51 of the regulations and 
    that it should be amended to reflect that fact.
        Customs response: Customs agrees that where the exporter's summary 
    procedure is approved for the claimant, the requirement in 
    Sec. 181.47(b)(2)(ii)(G) is not applicable; accordingly, this section 
    as set forth below has been modified by adding at the beginning of the 
    first sentence the words ``If a claimant is not approved for the 
    exporter's summary procedure,''. In addition, while the evidence of 
    export document must be signed, Customs agrees that the signature need 
    not be in ink; accordingly, the section as set forth below has been 
    modified by removing the words ``and signed in ink'' from the first 
    sentence. Finally, Customs agrees that this section should reflect that 
    evidence of exportation may also be established in accordance with the 
    provisions of Sec. 191.51; accordingly, Sec. 181.47(b)(2)(ii)(G), as 
    set forth below, has been modified by adding at the end of the first 
    sentence the words ``, or any other evidence of exportation provided 
    for in Sec. 191.51 of this chapter''.
    Section 181.47(b)(2)(ii)(H)
        Comment: Three commenters stated that providing a waiver from the 
    importer is redundant since a certificate of delivery already serves 
    the same purpose. One of these commenters suggested that if Customs 
    must have it, it should be provided for directly on the certificate of 
    delivery.
        Customs response: A certificate of delivery does not in itself 
    constitute a waiver of the right to claim drawback. Thus, an explicit 
    waiver is necessary.
        Customs agrees in principle that the waiver could be incorporated 
    into the certificate of delivery form. However, until that form is 
    revised to include the waiver, a separate waiver is needed.
    Section 181.47(b)(2)(ii)(I)
        Comment: One commenter recommended that the affidavit be 
    incorporated onto the ``J'' side of Customs Form 7539, but with 
    reference to ``designated goods'' changed to ``identified goods''. 
    Another commenter stated that the affidavit is unnecessary but that if 
    Customs must have it, it should be included on the drawback entry form 
    instead.
        Customs response: So long as the affidavit is included with the 
    drawback entry, the legal requirement will be satisfied.
    Section 181.47(b)(2)(iii)(B)
        Comment: One commenter objected to the requirement of submission of 
    the commercial invoice because it will not be available in hard copy. 
    This commenter stated that a pro forma invoice would solve this 
    problem.
        Customs response: Customs took the position in promulgating 19 CFR 
    191.142(b)(6) that drawback under 19 U.S.C. 1313(c) is payable to an 
    exporter claimant who is the importer of record or the actual owner 
    named in the import entry. There is nothing in section 203 or 632 of 
    the Act which would require a change to that position. As such, it is 
    unclear why the person who ordered the merchandise and who determined 
    that the merchandise did not meet the order specifications would not 
    have the original invoice issued by the foreign supplier.
    Section 181.47(b)(2)(iii)(C)
        Comment: It was pointed out by a commenter that import documents 
    for foreign countries are not available to the U.S. seller and that it 
    is virtually impossible for the U.S. seller to obtain proof of payment 
    and final duty determination notices.
        Customs response: The commenter has misread the section. 
    Subparagraph (C) states the evidence needed to show that the 
    specifications were not met.
    Section 181.47(c)
        Comment: Two commenters stated that the phrase ``for purposes of 
    evidence of duties paid'' is confusing in that Sec. 181.47(a) also 
    refers to ``evidence of exportation''. They also suggested that Customs 
    may want to consider a single definition for ``evidence of 
    exportation'' as has always been done under Part 191 of the regulations 
    and introduce specific requirements only for 19 U.S.C. 1313 (a) or (b) 
    drawback for ``evidence of duties paid'' since this information is 
    germane only to manufacturing drawback when calculating the ``lesser of 
    the two duties''.
        Customs response: It would be quite difficult for Customs to draft 
    an affidavit for the parties. The language needed to demonstrate that 
    the claimant's goods were received by its Mexican or Canadian customer 
    and the amount of duty paid to Canada or Mexico by that customer would 
    depend on that customer's statement.
        There is a difference between the provision on exportation in 
    Sec. 181.47(b)(2)(ii)(G) (which has specific reference to 19 U.S.C. 
    1313(j)(1)) and the provision in Sec. 181.47(c). Because in the former 
    case there is full drawback available without a comparison between the 
    duty that was paid in the United States and the duty paid in Canada or 
    Mexico, the provisions necessarily 
    
    [[Page 46343]]
    differ. The provisions of Sec. 181.47(c) also apply in a NAFTA context 
    to other duty reduction programs such as temporary importations under 
    bond, bonded warehouses, and foreign trade zones (see 
    Sec. 181.53(a)(3)).
    Section 181.48
        Comment: With regard to paragraphs (b) and (c), two commenters 
    pointed out that the wording is confusing and not consistent with 
    ``mainline'' drawback in that, under Part 191 of the regulations and 
    under the Customs modernization provisions of the Act, it is always the 
    exporter of record who is entitled to drawback. One of these commenters 
    suggested the following alternative language: ``The exporter of record 
    is entitled to the drawback unless the exporter directs in writing that 
    another entity receive the drawback refund.''
        Customs response: The provision in Sec. 181.48(b) follows the 
    position set forth in 19 CFR 191.142(b)(6). Section 181.48(c) is 
    consistent with current law regarding the identity of the claimant for 
    same condition drawback. The Customs modernization provisions of the 
    Act followed this interpretation with respect to the identity of the 
    claimant for unused merchandise drawback.
    Section 181.49
        Comment: One commenter stated that this section does not specify 
    which records are required to be kept by the exporter, importer, 
    manufacturer or producer. This commenter argued that Customs 
    recordkeeping requirements are strictly limited to those records which 
    are referenced in the statute and that this is consistent with 
    Congressional intent under H.R. 3450. This commenter also suggested 
    that Customs review the commentary in the House Report with regard to 
    section 632 of the Act and that Customs also compare Sec. 181.49 to 
    Sec. 181.53(g).
        Customs response: The types of records are set forth in 
    Sec. 181.47(b); this section simply sets the retention period. Since 
    payment occurs in most instances under the accelerated payment program 
    before liquidation takes place, the period starts and ends earlier. In 
    any event, Sec. 181.49 follows the existing policy set forth in 19 CFR 
    191.5. Customs notes that 19 U.S.C. 1313(t), which was added by section 
    632 of the Act, makes the general recordkeeping requirements set forth 
    in 19 U.S.C. 1508(c) applicable in the context of drawback certificates 
    and provides that the retention period starts on the date the 
    certificate is issued in the case of a person who issues a certificate 
    relating to another person's drawback claim. Accordingly, Sec. 181.49, 
    as set forth below, has been modified by adding at the end the 
    following sentence: ``However, any person who issues a drawback 
    certificate that enables another person to make or perfect a drawback 
    claim shall keep records in support of that certificate commencing on 
    the date that the certificate is issued and shall retain those records 
    for three years following the date of payment of the claim.''
    Section 181.50(a)
        Comment: A commenter raised the issue that whereas the regulations 
    require that the amount of duties paid to Canada or Mexico be 
    ``established'' as a prerequisite to the completion of the claim, they 
    do not provide instructions as to how these duty amounts will be 
    established and they do not prescribe a time frame in which the duty 
    amounts will be settled for the purpose of finalizing the claim.
        Customs response: This section describes generally the process by 
    which Customs will determine the amount of drawback to be paid. A 
    directive for the guidance of Customs officers will address the 
    internal Customs procedures that will implement the process in detail. 
    With regard to the time frame issue, see the discussion of 
    Sec. 181.50(b) below.
    Section 181.50(b)
        Comment: Two commenters stated that requiring liquidation of 
    entries made in Mexico and Canada before a drawback claim is liquidated 
    eliminates most drawback claims from the Customs modernization act 
    bypass system. In a related comment, another commenter stated that this 
    section is in conflict with the Customs modernization provisions of the 
    Act in a bypass (selectivity) system context because the liquidation of 
    all designated import entries is no longer required for drawback 
    liquidation. This commenter argued that requiring that there be prior 
    liquidation of the import entry in Canada or Mexico undermines the 
    process and conflicts with the requirement for fair and reasonable 
    procedures as described in the legislative history accompanying the 
    Customs modernization provisions of the Act.
        Customs response: Customs will not be able to determine the 
    ``lesser of'' the two duties unless the final amount of duties paid 
    upon entry to Canada or Mexico is available. See also the response to 
    the next comment.
        Comment: A commenter stated that a time limit for liquidations is 
    needed and that the current indefinite time period is in conflict with 
    the intent expressed by Congress in the new drawback provisions 
    contained in section 632 of the Act. In this regard this commenter 
    referred to the accompanying House Report in which it was stated that 
    ``the Committee expects that Customs should issue drawback regulations 
    which take into consideration the various time limitations for 
    recordkeeping, filing claims, amendments and clarifications and for 
    auditing and liquidating drawback claims.''
        Customs response: There is no requirement under the law that 
    provides for a specific time period for liquidation of drawback claims, 
    and practical considerations (including differences in the entry laws 
    of the three NAFTA Parties) militate against imposing a strict time 
    limit for liquidation of a drawback claim.
        On a related subject, the United States and Canada have agreed that 
    each import transaction involving goods subject to a NAFTA drawback 
    claim in the exporting country should be monitored for a period of 3 
    years so that appropriate information may be provided to the exporting 
    country for purposes of applying the ``lesser of'' rule; this 3-year 
    period was chosen because it represents in most cases the time during 
    which all factors affecting ultimate finalization of the import entry 
    (including changes to the entry made by the importer after importation) 
    would be set. Accordingly, Sec. 181.50(b) as set forth below has been 
    modified to provide that a drawback claim shall not be liquidated for a 
    period of 3 years after the date of entry of the goods in Canada or 
    Mexico.
        Comment: A commenter made the following suggestion with respect to 
    the policy that liquidation of the drawback claim not occur until the 
    liquidation of the Canadian or Mexican customs entry has become final: 
    In order to avoid a long waiting period, a waiver of the right to 
    challenge the amount of estimated Canadian or Mexican duties should be 
    established. Under this procedure, the claimant would agree to waive 
    the right to claim any additional duties owed to Canadian or Mexican 
    Customs.
        Customs response: The commenter alleges that liquidation of a 
    drawback claim can be done more quickly if the right to challenge the 
    amount of duties assessed by Canada or Mexico is waived. However, a 
    U.S. drawback claimant, unless it is also the importer into Mexico or 
    Canada, has no right to waive the amount of duty paid by the Mexican or 
    Canadian importer. Also, a system involving payment of drawback claims 
    based upon the waiving of rights to challenge the Canadian or Mexican 
    duty amounts could result in the United 
    
    [[Page 46344]]
    States issuing an overpayment to the drawback claimant each time the 
    import entry was liquidated for a lower amount of duties. The change to 
    Sec. 181.50(b) discussed in the response to the preceding comment 
    represents Customs view regarding the proper time period during which 
    liquidation of a drawback claim should not take place.
    Section 181.50(c)
        Comment: With respect to the requirement that a person who receives 
    a drawback refund through accelerated payment must repay the duties if 
    a NAFTA claim is adversely affected thereafter, a commenter stated that 
    this should be amended to state that repayment is not required until 
    the adverse decision has been made final by the courts and/or by 
    operation of law.
        Customs response: The suggestion that a claimant who receives an 
    accelerated payment before liquidation need not repay it until the 
    adverse action which makes that accelerated payment erroneous would be 
    acceptable if the bond required the recipient to repay the principal 
    sum with interest running from the date that Customs made the 
    accelerated payment and until repaid. Since that process could take 
    years, the bond amounts would have to be increased accordingly to 
    protect the revenue. Accordingly, Customs concludes that the obligation 
    to repay arises whenever an administrative action occurs which affects 
    the NAFTA drawback claim.
    Section 181.51(a)
        Comment: Three commenters noted that certifying that an entry was 
    not designated and paid on a prior drawback claim is unnecessary 
    because a claimant that knowingly does this is guilty of fraud, and the 
    Compliance Program and the civil penalties should offer sufficient 
    protection against fraudulent claims.
        Customs response: Customs believes that the regulation serves a 
    useful purpose in reminding the claimant to exercise care to make 
    certain that double claims are not made.
    Section 181.51(b)
        Comment: A commenter stated that the requirement for the claimant 
    to state that no Certificate of Origin has been provided for the goods 
    should be changed to a statement that no other ``NAFTA'' Certificate of 
    Origin has been provided for the goods. This is because sometimes 
    exporters may use Certificates of Origin for other purposes (for 
    example, for enforcement of trade sanctions).
        Customs response: The first sentence under Sec. 181.51(b) refers to 
    a Certificate of Origin ``provided for under Sec. 181.11(a)'', and the 
    second sentence refers to ``any such'' Certificate of Origin; as such 
    the Certificate of Origin cannot be mistaken for any other certificate 
    of origin that may apply to other laws. Therefore, use of ``NAFTA'' as 
    suggested would be redundant and thus inappropriate.
        Comment: A commenter referred specifically to the requirement that 
    the claimant provide notice of whether another person has prepared a 
    NAFTA Certificate of Origin for those goods. This commenter stated that 
    this is in conflict with the new regulation that the claimant provide 
    an affidavit that no Certificate of Origin has been provided for those 
    goods.
        Customs response: Section 181.47(b)(2)(i)(F) requires a claimant to 
    affirm that no NAFTA Certificate of Origin was provided ``except as 
    stated on the drawback claim''. Section 181.51(b) supplements that 
    provision and makes it clear that a claimant who provides a NAFTA 
    Certificate of Origin must report that fact to Customs.
        Comment: A commenter stated that new subsection (t) of 19 U.S.C. 
    1313 provides that ``any person who issues a certificate which would 
    enable another person to claim drawback shall be subject to the 
    recordkeeping provisions of this chapter, with the retention period 
    beginning on the date that such certificate is issued'' and that the 
    interim regulations are deficient in that they do not implement the 
    language of this statutory provision. This commenter stated that 
    subsection (t) would be helpful because it would establish a retention 
    period beginning on the date the certificate was issued, instead of the 
    date of payment.
        Customs response: The NAFTA Certificate of Origin record retention 
    period is set forth in Sec. 181.12. See 19 U.S.C. 1508(c). The NAFTA 
    Certificate of Origin is not a certificate that would enable another 
    person to claim drawback. The certificates covered by 19 U.S.C. 1313(t) 
    are the certificate of delivery and the certificate of manufacture and 
    delivery.
        Comment: A commenter stated that should this regulation remain as 
    is, the 30-day window for filing the Certificate of Origin after filing 
    the claim will create another administrative nightmare for Customs 
    because all of the affidavits regarding Certificates issued (which may 
    come in at various times after submission of the drawback entry) will 
    have to be matched with previously filed drawback entries. This 
    commenter stated that some adjustment should be made in the regulatory 
    text to meet this problem.
        Customs response: This comment is unclear because there is no ``30-
    day window for filing the Certificate of Origin.'' There are, however, 
    two 30-day windows established in this section which involve notifying 
    Customs of the existence of a Certificate of Origin for goods on which 
    drawback has been paid. These two notification periods are necessary 
    because if a drawback claimant prepares a Certificate of Origin for its 
    Canadian or Mexican customer, it could result in a reduction of duty 
    paid to Canada or Mexico on the goods for which the claimant is basing 
    its drawback claim. Therefore, it must be reported to Customs so that 
    Customs will be able to track and adjust that drawback claim. A 
    drawback claimant who makes a drawback claim and then provides a 
    Certificate of Origin to its customer jeopardizes its drawback claim.
    Section 181.52
        Comment: Two commenters stated that this provision creates 
    contingent liabilities on every claim filed that could go on for a 
    significant amount of time and that, therefore, the time frames allowed 
    under NAFTA Article 502(3) for duty refunds in Canada and Mexico should 
    be clearly indicated. These two commenters also stated that Customs 
    will not be able to comply with this requirement without automation, or 
    without recording the Canadian or Mexican entry number at the time the 
    drawback claim is filed. In this regard, they referred to language 
    pertaining to Title VI of H.R. 3450 which states that monitoring of 
    drawback information can only be carried out effectively through 
    exchange of electronic information.
        Customs response: The commenters are correct. The very nature of 
    the Agreement creates that contingent liability because of the 
    differences in national laws and the right of an importer to make a 
    post-entry NAFTA claim that is expressly provided in the Agreement. The 
    alternative that was considered by the three Governments was to 
    prohibit all refunds on goods moving from one NAFTA party to another 
    NAFTA party. Permitting limited refunds necessarily increases 
    uncertainty.
    Section 181.53
        General comments: The following general comments were made with 
    regard to the operation of this section:
        1. A commenter requested that the effective dates of this section 
    be stated at the beginning of the section. 
    
    [[Page 46345]]
    
        2. One commenter stated that the regulations should address the 
    importation of goods from NAFTA countries covered by U.S. duty deferral 
    programs, even though there will be some duties which could be deferred 
    under these programs until all of the staged duty reductions and 
    eliminations under NAFTA have been completed. This commenter also 
    asked, if a claim for preferential tariff treatment is filed upon 
    importation, whether an importer may file a warehouse entry or 
    application for admission to a foreign trade zone and, if the claim is 
    valid, whether it will be honored upon warehouse withdrawal or foreign 
    trade zone entry for consumption.
        3. A commenter asked whether the ``lesser of the two'' method will 
    apply when zero payment of duties is an issue.
        4. A commenter stated that this section does not address 
    originating goods which are entered into a bonded warehouse, 
    manipulated to the point where they are deemed produced in the bonded 
    warehouse, and subsequently withdrawn for consumption in the United 
    States.
        5. Three commenters stated that the 60-day allowance for obtaining 
    proof of exportation and duty payment in Canada or Mexico should be 
    extended to a longer period, and one of these commenters suggested a 
    120-day period.
        Customs response: The effective dates are already stated at the 
    beginning of Subpart E.
        The comment dealing with imports from NAFTA countries is beyond the 
    scope of Subpart E.
        Zero payment of duty into Canada or Mexico will be considered in 
    making the comparison. If no duty is paid into Canada or Mexico, there 
    will be no duty refund or deferral. Under the agreement, Canada and 
    Mexico are required to provide reciprocal treatment of goods sent to 
    the United States.
        The treatment of originating goods entered into a warehouse and 
    withdrawn for consumption is beyond the scope of Subpart E.
        The 60-day time period was set by Article 303(5) of the Agreement. 
    Knowing of the time frame, there is no reason why the beneficiary of 
    the refund cannot structure its transfer to ensure that it can comply 
    with the time period.
    Section 181.53(a)(1)
        Comment: One commenter took issue with the definition of ``duty 
    deferral'' provided in this section, stating that Class 2 and 3 customs 
    bonded warehouses are excluded from this list, whereas their 
    counterparts, ``warehousing/distribution foreign-trade zones'' are not 
    excluded. This commenter stated that the initial sentence in 
    Sec. 181.53(e) provides a better definition of ``a good that is 
    manufactured or otherwise changed in condition in a foreign-trade zone 
    * * *''
        Customs response: The comment seems to state that a class 2/8 
    warehouse or a class 3/8 warehouse is excluded from coverage of 
    Sec. 181.53. Such warehouses are included under Sec. 181.53(b).
    Section 181.53(a)(2)
        Comment: A commenter suggested adding to this section the following 
    phrase: ``except for a good eligible for full drawback as provided for 
    by section 181.45 of this Subpart''. In this regard, this commenter 
    stated that NAFTA Article 303(6) provides for several import 
    transactions that are unaffected by any limitations on drawback refunds 
    or duty-deferral programs. This commenter also stated that Sec. 181.45 
    captures these Article 303(6) transactions for drawback refund 
    purposes. This commenter also stated that the regulations should 
    clearly state that a good departing a foreign-trade zone for export to 
    Mexico or Canada under circumstances included in Article 303(6) and/or 
    Sec. 181.45 shall not be subject to treatment ``* * * as if it had been 
    entered or withdrawn for domestic consumption, and thus subject to 
    duty.''
        Customs response: Customs agrees that goods entitled to full 
    drawback under Sec. 181.45 should be excluded from this provision. 
    Accordingly, Sec. 181.53(a)(2), as set forth below, has been modified 
    by the addition of the following sentence: ``However, the provisions of 
    this paragraph shall not apply to goods covered by Sec. 181.45.''
        Comment: A commenter questioned the meaning of the phrase 
    ``treatment as withdrawn for consumption.'' This commenter stated that, 
    from an operations standpoint in the case of merchandise shipments from 
    foreign trade zones, a ``pro-forma'' Customs Form 3461 and/or Customs 
    Form 7501 must be prepared. Since there is no legal provision for a 
    pro-forma version of these two forms, this commenter stated that the 
    exact methodology of how to do this should be provided in the 
    regulations.
        Customs response: With respect to the meaning of ``treatment as 
    withdrawn for consumption'' the provision informs the person who 
    withdraws that it will be liable for duties on a good withdrawn for 
    exportation to Canada or Mexico unless it is exempted by the Agreement 
    or statute. As regards documentation requirements, Customs agrees that 
    the regulations should incorporate specific provisions setting forth 
    the procedural (including documentary) requirements that would apply 
    for purposes of Sec. 181.53. However, Customs believes that it would be 
    preferable to deal with this matter in a separate Federal Register 
    document rather than include such provisions in this final rule 
    document. Accordingly, Customs intends to publish in the near future a 
    separate document amending Sec. 181.53 to address these procedural 
    issues with a view to having appropriate regulations in place on 
    January 1, 1996, when the Subpart E provisions go into effect.
    Section 181.53(a)(3)
        Comment: A commenter posed several questions about the process of 
    ``waiver or reduction'' as provided for in this section. Will a pro 
    forma Customs entry be prepared and held or will it be filed in some 
    manner with Customs? How will the structure of the paperwork be 
    organized? Because merchandise that is the subject of the pro forma 
    entry will also be the subject of a Customs Form 7512 and Customs Form 
    7525, how will the Census reporting structure be organized?
        Customs response: The section sets the legal requirement for 
    Customs to waive or reduce the duties paid or owed on goods sent to 
    Canada or Mexico. As indicated in the response to the preceding 
    comment, the documentary and other procedural aspects of Sec. 181.53 
    will be addressed in a separate document.
    Section 181.53(e)
        General comments: The following general comments were made with 
    regard to the operation of this section:
        1. One commenter stated that, by requiring actual payment of duties 
    to Mexico or Canada, these regulations defeat the purpose for which 
    this 60-day hiatus was created for foreign trade zones. This purpose 
    was to address the paperwork and procedural burden the proposed ``NAFTA 
    Drawback'' would impose on Customs and on companies that use foreign 
    trade zones and export to Canada and/or Mexico. This commenter saw the 
    burden as follows:
    
    Step One--Merchandise shipped from a zone to Mexico and/or Canada with 
    an appropriate tariff payment to U.S. Customs.
    Step Two--Merchandise arrives in Mexico or Canada with appropriate 
    tariff payments made.
    Step Three--The U.S. exporter files for NAFTA Drawback with the 
    evidence of payment(s) made in Canada or Mexico.
    
        This commenter went on to state that, originally, the 60-day hiatus 
    was 
    
    [[Page 46346]]
    expected to provide an opportunity to combine steps one and three but 
    that, by requiring payments to be made, this section forces a return 
    back to the three-step procedure. As it is, the potential for this 
    situation already exists when a Mexican or Canadian importer decides to 
    use a deferral program that extends his payment of duties owed beyond 
    the 60-day schedule imposed on the U.S. exporter. The regulations and 
    H.R. 3450 provide adequate anti-fraud provisions to protect against the 
    opportunity for any abuses that the suggested modifications might 
    otherwise provide. Moreover, Sec. 181.52 provides for the adjustment of 
    drawback payments pursuant to a NAFTA preference claim made subsequent 
    to the payment of a NAFTA drawback refund. This commenter therefore 
    suggested that in similar fashion such a protection could become part 
    of the Sec. 181.53(e) procedures so that evidence of duty paid could be 
    based on the duty owed (but not yet paid) in Mexico or Canada.
        2. The same commenter requested that the phrase ``as calculated 
    under paragraph (e)(1) or (e)(2)'' in the introductory paragraph of 
    this section be replaced by the phrase ``as calculated consistent with 
    the provisions of 19 CFR 146 Section 146.65''.
        3. Another commenter stated that this section does not take into 
    account that the Customs modernization provisions of the Act allow for 
    periodic entry procedures for goods transferred from foreign trade 
    zones to be expanded to a monthly timeframe instead of submission of 
    entry-by-entry paperwork.
        4. Two commenters stated that the examples provided in this section 
    are convoluted and should be replaced. One commenter suggested that the 
    examples should set forth the following facts: The imported products 
    HTSUS classification; the rate of duty in the United States and in 
    Mexico or Canada; dutiable value; and total value. Moreover, it was 
    suggested that there should also be an example illustrating NAFTA 
    treatment for a good departing a foreign trade zone for Mexico or 
    Canada that combines both privileged and non-privileged foreign 
    components and/or materials.
        5. A commenter pointed out that there is no provision for mixed 
    status merchandise (privileged and nonprivileged). This commenter also 
    stated that there is no provision for zone restricted status 
    merchandise. Since no production can occur in zone restricted status, 
    if storage distribution were not included in the special actions under 
    Sec. 181.53, new special provisions for this status would not be 
    necessary but should be mentioned.
        6. Two commenters stated that the provision under section 
    202(a)(2)(A) of H.R. 3450 should be included in this section or it will 
    be misinterpreted. These commenters believed that it should be 
    interpreted only to mean that a foreign trade zone cannot be used to 
    create a NAFTA originating good qualifying for NAFTA duty reduction. On 
    a related subject, another commenter stated that this section does not 
    address goods which are processed but not produced in a foreign trade 
    zone (processed with non-originating materials). This commenter asked 
    whether privileged foreign status would be permitted to ``lock in'' 
    NAFTA preferential tariff treatment.
        7. A commenter requested further clarification of the valuation 
    methodology included in this section. This commenter further believed 
    that weight should not be a factor other than when it is a factor for 
    HTSUS purposes and therefore suggested using the language ``in its 
    condition and HTSUS quantity.''
        8. A commenter asked what the date of exportation is for NAFTA 
    purposes.
        9. A commenter requested that a definition of ``assessed'' be 
    provided.
        10. A commenter believed that the requirement for proof of 
    exportation in this section is an unnecessary paperwork burden and 
    suggested that a summary procedure similar to the one used in drawback 
    should be established.
        Customs response: The requirement for the collection of duties is 
    set forth in Article 303(5)(a) of the Agreement.
        The inclusion of paragraphs (e)(1) and (2) facilitate having the 
    zone withdrawal NAFTA requirements in one part.
        Whether a good is removed under the current weekly entry procedure 
    or some other periodic entry procedure will not change the concepts set 
    forth in the provision.
        Creating complex examples will tend to obscure the principles 
    sought to be illustrated: That is, which duty amounts are to be 
    compared? The use of oil is appropriate since the principle is 
    illustrated when privileged foreign status is claimed. There is no need 
    for a separate example of merchandise consisting of nonprivileged and 
    privileged status merchandise since the principles set in both examples 
    would apply to such merchandise.
        Export to Canada or Mexico of zone restricted status merchandise 
    will not require an entry for consumption. It will require the goods so 
    exported to be treated as a withdrawal for consumption for the sole 
    purpose of computing whether there should be a reduction or waiver of 
    duty.
        The comment on section 202(a)(2) of the Act is beyond the scope of 
    Subpart E. It deals with goods that are entered for consumption from a 
    zone.
        With respect to the use of weight as part of the valuation 
    methodology, Customs does not concur with the suggested change because 
    the provisions of this section follow the provisions of the Foreign 
    Trade Zones Act (see 19 U.S.C. 81c(a)).
        In the case of a shipment from the United States to Canada or 
    Mexico, the date of exportation would be the date on which the goods 
    leave the United States with evidence that the person sending those 
    goods to Canada or Mexico intends to join them to the commerce of 
    Canada or Mexico (see 19 CFR 101.1(k)).
        The common meaning of the term ``assessed'' applies. As such, there 
    is no need to provide for a separate definition that repeats the common 
    meaning.
        With respect to the proof of export burden under NAFTA, the comment 
    fails to recognize that unlike drawback for shipments to non-NAFTA 
    countries, the basis for entitlement to a refund, waiver or reduction 
    in duty there depends entirely on the article and the amount of duty 
    paid to Canada or Mexico. Also, the comment confuses the distinction 
    between one drawback claim which may involve many exportations of 
    merchandise on which duty was previously paid and specific withdrawals 
    on which potential duty liability starts when that merchandise is 
    withdrawn from a zone.
    Section 181.53(e)(1)
        Comment: A commenter stated that there are imported goods in 
    foreign trade zones destined for Canada and/or Mexico under zone 
    restricted status (19 CFR 146.44). This commenter stated that a general 
    exemption from 19 CFR 146.63(b) should be provided for these goods 
    because, for these goods to be entered or withdrawn for domestic 
    consumption from an FTZ, Sec. 146.63(b) provides that merchandise in 
    zone restricted status may be entered for consumption only when the 
    Foreign Trade Zone Board has ruled that the merchandise can be entered 
    for consumption. To require rulings on such a routine matter will 
    impose an unnecessary procedural burden on the Foreign Trade Zone 
    Board, zone users and on Customs.
        Customs response: The issue of goods in a zone restricted status 
    will be addressed in the separate document regarding Sec. 181.53 
    procedures to be published in the near future as mentioned above. 
    
    [[Page 46347]]
    
    Section 181.53(e)(2)
        Comment: A commenter took issue with the implication of this 
    section that payments may be refunded only up to the limits established 
    by Sec. 181.44. Specifically, this commenter stated that under these 
    regulations the exporter is required to make payments to U.S. Customs 
    that might otherwise be unnecessary or larger in amount than is legally 
    required for reasons of failure to meet the 60-day deadline. There 
    should be an explicit provision that provides for the refund of these 
    unnecessary or excessive payments in whole or in part when the evidence 
    required by Sec. 181.53 becomes available.
        Customs response: There is no allowance for a time extension or a 
    reconsideration of the initial determination in the NAFTA legislation. 
    As regards available remedies for any ``unnecessary or excessive'' 
    payments referred to by this commenter, this issue will be addressed in 
    the separate Sec. 181.53 document to be published as mentioned above.
        Comment: A commenter stated that the 60-day period should be 
    defined on a business month basis, not on a daily basis.
        Customs response: As previously stated, the 60-day period was set 
    by the three Governments in the Agreement. The purpose of the 60-day 
    requirement was to enable the refund claimant to provide the Canadian 
    or Mexican entry information so that the appropriate duty comparison 
    could be made.
        Comment: A commenter pointed out that separately defining duty 
    calculations when treating exports from foreign trade zones as domestic 
    entries provides for many questions and potentially disparate 
    procedures. To diminish the likelihood for both these questions and 
    procedures, this commenter suggested that this section be amended to 
    reflect current FTZ regulations that cover entries for consumption.
        Customs response: These procedural issues will be addressed in the 
    separate Sec. 181.53 document to be published as mentioned above.
        Comment: A commenter alleged that there is a conflict in this 
    section in that the section states that duty is assessed on privileged 
    foreign status goods at the time of admission to the zone but in the 
    example refers to duty assessed one month after admission.
        Customs response: The commenter is correct. Accordingly, 
    Sec. 181.53(e)(2), as set forth below, has been modified by replacing 
    the words ``at the time of its admission to'' with the words ``at the 
    time privileged status is granted in''.
    Section 181.53(g)
        Comment: A commenter stated that the recordkeeping period is 
    unclear, and therefore this commenter assumed that the normal 
    recordkeeping periods apply to drawback claims and to import entries. 
    Two other commenters stated that the 3-year period for record retention 
    should be stated to avoid confusion.
        Customs response: Under 19 U.S.C. 1508(c) and the regulations 
    thereunder, the periods for record retention vary according to the type 
    of transaction involved. With respect to warehouse withdrawals, foreign 
    trade zone entries, and temporary importation bond transactions, the 
    period is five years from the date of entry. With respect to drawback, 
    the period is three years from the payment of drawback to the claimant.
    Section 181.53(i)
        Comment: A commenter stated that if this section relates to waiver 
    or reduction of duty under duty deferral programs, it is inappropriate 
    to state that ``* * * Customs shall reliquidate the NAFTA drawback 
    claim'' because that issue already is addressed in Sec. 181.52.
        Customs response: The reference in this section is necessary 
    because, while Sec. 181.52 is limited to traditional drawback, 
    Sec. 181.53 includes all of the other contexts which are included in 
    the term ``NAFTA drawback'' as defined in Sec. 181.1(o) of the 
    regulations.
    Section 181.54
        Comment: A commenter stated that the open-ended time period for 
    U.S. Customs to verify Canadian and Mexican documentation creates 
    indefinite contingent liabilities. This commenter suggested that a 
    definite time period should be clearly indicated.
        Customs response: Because the national laws differ and because the 
    Agreement expressly provides for post-entry claims to be filed up to 
    one year after entry, it is impossible to fix one time limit that will 
    cover all situations.
    Appendix to Part 181
        Additional comments were submitted regarding the relationship 
    between the Subpart E provisions and the provisions of Schedule X of 
    the Appendix to Part 181. Those comments are addressed below in 
    connection with the discussion of the Appendix comments.
    
    Part 181, Subpart G (Origin Verifications and Determinations)
    
    Section 181.72
        Comment: In order to enable sureties to better protect their 
    interests, one commenter stated that the regulations should be modified 
    to require Customs to provide notice to the surety: (1) When Customs 
    commences an origin verification under paragraph (a) involving the bond 
    principal's goods; (2) when Customs makes an inquiry of the importer 
    under paragraph (c); and (3) whenever the foreign producer or exporter 
    or the U.S. importer fails to cooperate during an origin verification.
        Customs response: Requiring such notices to sureties would impose 
    an unnecessary burden on Customs. Accordingly, this is a matter more 
    appropriate for the surety and its principal to resolve in the context 
    of their contractual relationship.
    Section 181.75
        Comment: One commenter stated that the regulations should be 
    modified to require Customs to provide notice to a surety when a 
    negative origin determination is issued to the surety's bond principal 
    under paragraph (b).
        Customs response: A negative determination of origin does not 
    necessarily result in a bond breach. Consequently, no useful purpose 
    under these regulations would be served by obligating Customs to 
    provide such notice to the surety. This is a matter that is best left 
    to the private parties to resolve as a part of their contractual 
    relationship.
    
    Part 181, Appendix (Rules of Origin Regulations)
    
    Section 2
        Comment: The following comments were submitted on the definitions 
    and interpretation set forth in section 2:
        1. With regard to the definition of ``direct labor costs'', one 
    commenter noted that many companies include direct labor fringe 
    benefits as part of their burden, not as part of their direct labor 
    costs. Thus, it would be more correct to indicate that the defined term 
    ``may'' include fringe benefits in costs that are associated with 
    employees who are directly involved in the production of a good.
        2. In the definition of ``light-duty vehicle'', a commenter stated 
    that the second reference to ``8702.10.60'' should read ``8702.90.60''.
        3. One commenter noted that the definitions and interpretation of 
    ``similar goods'' and ``similar materials'' are important parts in 
    determining 
    
    [[Page 46348]]
    eligibility for averaging costs over time where goods are produced in 
    the same facility. Given this purpose, this commenter argued that these 
    definitions and interpretation are unduly restrictive because goods and 
    materials should qualify as ``similar'' for purposes of averaging if 
    they simply serve identical functions. For example, if both automatic 
    and manual transmissions are otherwise eligible for averaging, the fact 
    that these two transmissions may not meet the ``similar characteristics 
    and component materials'' definitional standard should not disqualify 
    them from averaging. To accomplish this result this commenter suggested 
    (1) that the two definitions should be revised to encompass goods and 
    materials that ``although not alike in all respects, serve the same 
    function'' and (2) that the interpretation should be eliminated because 
    it suggests that only identical goods or materials qualify as 
    ``similar''.
        Customs response: With regard to the first comment, the commenter 
    is correct that some companies may include direct labor ``fringe 
    benefits'' as part of their overhead. However, for purposes of 
    allocating direct labor, the United States, Canada and Mexico agreed 
    that the cost of fringe benefits for direct labor must be included in 
    the ``direct labor costs''. Salaries and fringe benefits for other than 
    direct labor employees may be included as overhead and would be 
    allocated according to the methods for overhead in Schedule VII.
        Customs agrees that the second reference to ``8702.10.60'' should 
    read ``8702.90.60'' in the definition for ``light-duty vehicle'', and 
    the definition, as set forth below, has been modified accordingly.
        Customs disagrees with the statement that goods should be 
    considered ``similar'' if they merely serve identical functions. 
    Averaging in section 6(15) for regional value content purposes is 
    allowed so that a producer would not have to segregate the value of its 
    materials and its production costs when there is very little difference 
    in the materials and the production costs that would be allocated to 
    goods for which NAFTA preference is to be claimed and to goods which 
    are to be consumed in a domestic or non-NAFTA market. The use of the 
    term ``similar'' provides the necessary balance between the intended 
    benefit and the need for assurance that the averaged costs will have a 
    real relationship to the goods. For example, although an electric motor 
    and a gasoline motor may serve the same function in a model toy, 
    averaged costs for non-originating materials and for net costs for 
    these two motors would not provide a meaningful measure of the regional 
    value content for each type of motor. When this issue was discussed 
    trilaterally, it was agreed that the current reference to ``similar'' 
    should not be changed.
    Section 4
        Comment: With regard to section 4(4) which sets forth exceptions to 
    the change in tariff classification requirement for originating goods, 
    one commenter stated that subparagraph (b)(iii) should be removed 
    because it imposes a further qualification that is not reflected in the 
    NAFTA provisions as set forth in General Note 12(b)(iv)(B), HTSUS. 
    Specifically, whereas the NAFTA text simply refers to a case where the 
    undivided tariff headings or the tariff subheadings for the goods 
    ``provide for and specifically describe both the goods themselves and 
    their parts'', the Appendix text at issue adds a further requirement 
    that the non-originating materials and the good ``are not both 
    classified as parts of goods under the heading or subheading'' under 
    consideration. This commenter suggested that this limiting Appendix 
    text is not required by either the language or the purpose of the NAFTA 
    provision and that the ``specifically describe'' language of the NAFTA 
    text could reasonably apply where the tariff provision is a ``parts'' 
    provision because the minimum regional value content requirement would 
    still apply.
        Customs response: Customs disagrees. Note 22 to the NAFTA clearly 
    states that the phrase ``specifically describes'' in Article 401(d) was 
    intended to exclude situations in which both the good and the non-
    originating material are classifiable as ``parts'' in the heading or 
    subheading under consideration.
    Section 6
        Comment: The following comments were submitted on the regional 
    value content provisions of section 6:
        1. With regard to subsection (14) which concerns non-allowable 
    interest costs, one commenter agreed that the ``700 basis points'' 
    standard (above which interest would not be countable toward total 
    cost) was appropriately high. However, this commenter stated that, by 
    referring to the yield on debt obligations of comparable maturities 
    issued by the federal government of ``the country in which the producer 
    is located'', this provision could result in disparate treatment of 
    similarly situated companies located in different NAFTA countries. In 
    order to avoid the possibility that two companies with similar interest 
    costs on a debt of the same denomination may face different interest 
    caps because their production occurs in different NAFTA countries, this 
    commenter stated that subsection (14) should be modified to reflect 
    linkage of the interest rate on a debt to the interest rate on 
    government debt obligations of the country that issues the debt, so 
    that the amount of allowable interest costs would depend on the 
    denomination of the debt rather than the location of the company.
        2. One commenter pointed out that in subsection (18) the reference 
    to the period chosen in ``subsection (14)(a)'' should properly refer to 
    ``subsection 15(a)''.
        3. With regard to the examples contained in subsection (20), a 
    commenter stated that Example 9 would be more clear if it explained 
    that the tooling expensed on the books of Producer A is considered as 
    non-originating because the material that the tooling produced is non-
    originating.
        Customs response: With regard to the first comment, Customs agrees 
    that disparate treatment may arise because the interest caps in the 
    NAFTA countries may be different. However, in order to provide 
    certainty and stability in this area, the United States, Canada and 
    Mexico agreed to apply the interest cap of the NAFTA country in which 
    the producer is located.
        Customs agrees that the reference to ``subsection (14)(a)'' should 
    properly read ``subsection (15)(a)'' in subsection (18) which, as set 
    forth below, has been modified accordingly.
        Although Customs agrees that Example 9 in section 6(20) could be 
    more illustrative by addressing the treatment of the cost of tooling as 
    a ``non-originating cost'' because it is included in the cost of the 
    non-originating material produced by the tooling, Customs also notes 
    that this example was merely intended to illustrate how the cost must 
    be captured and that it cannot be counted twice. This commenter's 
    suggestion, however, has been incorporated as a new Example 8 which has 
    been added to section 7(18) (renumbered from 7(17)) as set forth below.
    Section 7
        Comment: With regard to section 7(17), one commenter pointed out 
    that in the first paragraph of Example 4 the reference to ``Material 
    A'' should read ``Material X''.
        Customs response: This typographical error was corrected in a 
    document published in the Federal Register on March 31, 1994 (59 FR 
    15047).
    Section 9
        Comment: With regard to Example 6 under section 9(10), one 
    commenter 
    
    [[Page 46349]]
    noted that although the example states that the producer designates the 
    short block as an intermediate material, the example does not explain 
    why this designation is made or what its effect might be on the origin 
    of the part or the traced value in the vehicle.
        Customs response: The purpose of Example 6 in section 9(10) is to 
    illustrate section 9(9)(a) which provides that the designation of a 
    self-produced material as an intermediate material is only effective 
    with regard to the calculation of the net cost of the light-duty 
    automotive good and, therefore, does not permit the producer to ignore 
    the value of the traced materials for purposes of the calculation of 
    the value of non-originating materials in the light duty automotive 
    good. Customs agrees that, in this case, it may be clearer to state 
    that the intermediate material qualifies as an originating material. 
    Accordingly, Example 6, as set forth below, has been modified as 
    follows: (1) By adding a sentence immediately after the second sentence 
    in the first paragraph to read ``The intermediate material qualifies as 
    an originating material''; and (2) by changing the last clause in the 
    first sentence of the second paragraph to read ``even though the 
    intermediate material is an originating material.''
    Section 10
        Comment: One commenter alleged that the language of section 10, and 
    in particular the language of sections 10(1) and 10(2), is contrary to 
    the wording of Article 403(2) of the NAFTA in that the Appendix 
    language appears to require only tracing of the value of non-
    originating listed materials of the producer of the engine and 
    transmission (the components), with two different results depending on 
    the factual circumstances: (1) If the producer of the components is 
    also the producer of the vehicle, then the tracing must be made through 
    to the vehicle; or (2) if the producer of the components and vehicle 
    are different, then the tracing stops at the production of the 
    components. In other words, where the producer of the vehicle is not 
    the producer of the component, that vehicle producer simply applies the 
    normal rules of NAFTA Annex 401 to his product because he by definition 
    does not ``use'' any material listed in NAFTA Annex 403(2) within the 
    meaning of Article 403(2)(a) (it is the component producer who uses the 
    listed material, that is, to produce the component, while the vehicle 
    producer uses that component to produce the vehicle): thus, the 
    component, not being a listed material, becomes the ``other material'' 
    referred to in Article 403(2)(b) and is either originating or non-
    originating as far as calculation of the regional value content of the 
    vehicle is concerned. This commenter, apparently concerned by the 
    appearance of a narrower tracing rule under the Appendix text, stated 
    that section 10 should be revised to reflect the correct, broader rule 
    under the NAFTA text, that is, that the value of non-originating listed 
    materials must be traced to the original-equipment engine and 
    transmission and through them to the vehicle for purposes of 
    calculating the regional value content of the vehicle.
        In the event that the revision suggested above is not done, this 
    commenter made the following additional recommendations regarding 
    section 10:
        1. As regards subsection (4) concerning the option of using the 
    light-duty tracing rules for heavy-duty components, three suggestions 
    were made. First, the materials covered by the subsection should be 
    expanded to include listed materials and subcomponents. Second, if 
    light-duty and heavy-duty vehicles are produced in the same plant, the 
    producer should have the option of using the light-duty rules for 
    calculating regional value content. Third, paragraph (b) should be 
    removed because even if a producer knows the final use of the 
    component, he should still have the option of using the light-duty 
    rules.
        2. As regards subsection (9)(c) which provides that section 10 does 
    not apply to a subcomponent for purposes of calculating its regional 
    value content before it is incorporated into a heavy-duty automotive 
    good, this commenter questioned the authority for this subsection and 
    stated that, if there is no authority for it, then Situation 1 of 
    Example 6 under subsection (10) is incorrect. Furthermore, this 
    commenter suggested that if there is authority for subsection (9)(c), 
    then there is a basis for setting up separate manufacturing companies 
    to convert non-originating cost to originating for determining the 
    regional value content of a subcomponent that crosses a border, because 
    the tracing requirement is eliminated.
        Customs response: Customs disagrees with the commenter's conclusion 
    that the text of section 10 does not reflect Article 403(2) of the 
    NAFTA which requires that the value of a listed non-originating 
    material be ``traced'' through to any heavy-duty automotive good in 
    which it is used. The rules in section 10(1) are cumulative. If a 
    producer of a heavy-duty automotive good ``uses'' a listed non-
    originating material, then paragraph (a), (b) or (c) would apply, 
    depending, of course, on the specific facts. If a producer uses an 
    automotive component assembly, automotive component or subcomponent, 
    then paragraph (d) or (e) would apply, resulting in the ``tracing'' of 
    either the values of all non-originating materials that were 
    incorporated into that material acquired and used by the producer or 
    the entire value of that material acquired and used by the producer. 
    The structure of section 10(1) eliminates any doubt that, regardless of 
    the stage in which a listed non-originating material is used, the value 
    of that listed material must always be included in the value of non-
    originating materials when calculating the regional value content of 
    any heavy-duty automotive good into which the listed material is 
    subsequently incorporated.
        Customs disagrees with this commenter's proposals for redrafting 
    section 10(4) because the regulation reflects the relevant NAFTA 
    provisions and the intent of the Parties. First, Article 403(2), which 
    provides the rule for determining the value of non-originating 
    materials in heavy-duty automotive goods, does not apply to listed 
    materials or to subcomponents. Second, Article 403 is very clear in 
    that it provides a specific rule for light-duty vehicles and a specific 
    rule for heavy-duty vehicles. Third, with the exception of the 
    situation in which averaging is permitted under Article 403(4) (see 
    section 12 of the Appendix), Article 403(2) does not provide for the 
    alternative use of the light-duty tracing rule for heavy-duty 
    automotive components. In view of the fact that it may be impossible to 
    identify interchangeable heavy-duty components and light-duty 
    components that are produced in the same plant, the United States, 
    Canada and Mexico agreed that the regulations should specifically 
    address this situation.
        With regard to the comment on section 10(9)(c) that there is no 
    authority to exclude subcomponents from the regional value content 
    calculation in section 10, Customs simply notes that the special rule 
    set out in Article 403(2) of the NAFTA is for vehicles and components. 
    Furthermore, the use of a listed non-originating material in the 
    production of a subcomponent does not defeat the ``tracing'' 
    requirement applicable to heavy-duty automotive goods. The regulations 
    set out in section 10(1) make it clear that the value of a listed non-
    originating material will always be traced through to any heavy-duty 
    automotive good into which it is incorporated. For example, section 
    
    [[Page 46350]]
    10(1)(d) requires the ``tracing'' of a listed non-originating material 
    even if it was used in the production of an originating subcomponent.
    Section 13
        Comment: The following comments were submitted on the special 
    regional value-content requirements contained in section 13:
        1. Two commenters referred to subsection (4) which concerns the 
    averaging period for calculation of regional value content for vehicles 
    of a new plant or a refit plant.
        One of these commenters noted that paragraph (a)(i) would allow a 
    producer to use launch and start-up cost for a period up to 23 months 
    as originating content in computing the regional value content. This 
    commenter suggested that the cost incurred from the first prototype 
    date to the end of the fiscal year in which the first prototype was 
    produced should be used for the regional value content calculation for 
    the vehicles produced in the first fiscal year.
        The second commenter concluded that subsection (4) allows a motor 
    vehicle producer to elect one of the following three periods over which 
    regional value content is calculated by averaging: (1) Paragraph (a)(i) 
    allows averaging from the date of the production of a prototype through 
    the end of the first fiscal year that begins after that date, thus 
    allowing the producer to roll the first partial year into the first 
    full fiscal year for averaging purposes; (2) paragraph (a)(ii) allows 
    averaging over any fiscal year that begins after production of a 
    prototype and ends before the end of the special regional value content 
    period (the 5-year or 2-year period specified in section 13(2)); and 
    (3) paragraph (a)(iii) allows averaging over part of a fiscal year up 
    to the last day of that 5-year or 2-year special regional value content 
    period. However, this commenter stated that the exact time periods 
    covered by these three alternative averaging periods are not clear in 
    the Appendix text as written. In addition, this commenter suggested 
    that the end of an averaging period involving a special regional value 
    content period should coincide with the end of the producer's fiscal 
    year because significant accounting problems will arise if the 
    averaging period cuts off before the fiscal year end. Thus, for 
    example, a 5-year period under section 13(2) would allow averaging for 
    full five fiscal years plus that portion of a year beginning with the 
    date of production of the first qualifying prototype.
        2. One commenter noted that subsection (5)(h) requires that the 
    document in which the election to average is made must be filed at 
    least 10 days before the first day of the producer's fiscal year, or 
    such other shorter period that the concerned customs administration may 
    accept. This commenter recommended that this provision be amended to 
    specify ``10 days before the shipment of the first vehicle intended for 
    sale''.
        Customs response: Customs agrees that section 13(4)(a)(i) would 
    permit a producer to average over a period of up to 23 months. In the 
    interest of aligning the averaging period with the period for which the 
    special RVC is effective for production from a new plant or a refit 
    plant, it was considered to be more practical to combine the initial 
    ``stub'' period with the first full fiscal year. Paragraphs (a)(ii) and 
    (a)(iii) provide for the subsequent full fiscal years and for the final 
    stub period, if any.
        Concerning the second comment on section 13(4)(a), Customs first 
    notes that the commenter has referred to subparagraphs (i), (ii) and 
    (iii) as ``alternative averaging periods''. This is not correct. One, 
    two or all three of these subparagraphs could apply in any given 
    situation, depending on the length of the special RVC period and the 
    relationship of the first year of that period to the beginning of the 
    producer's fiscal year.
        In response to the remainder of this commenter's remarks, Customs 
    notes that under Article 403(6), the ``years'' in the periods for which 
    a special RVC applies to vehicles of a new plant or vehicles of a refit 
    plant are not necessarily coterminous with the fiscal year of a 
    producer. Under Article 403(6) the ``year'' in the special RVC period 
    begins when the first prototype motor vehicle is produced in the new or 
    refit plant. Under Article 403(3), the ``year'' in the averaging period 
    for the RVC calculation is the fiscal year of a producer. It was the 
    intent of the drafters of the regulations to align the averaging period 
    with the special RVC period in order to allow a producer to obtain the 
    maximum benefit from the statutory 5-year or 2-year special RVC period. 
    Customs has no authority to extend or reduce these NAFTA periods which 
    are also reflected in section 202(c)(6) of the Act.
        As regards the comment on section 13(5), Customs does not disagree 
    entirely with the idea behind the commenter's proposal. Inasmuch as the 
    first averaging period would not include the full fiscal year (if the 
    first prototype of a motor vehicle is produced in a plant on a date 
    after the beginning of the producer's fiscal year), it would appear 
    reasonable to allow the producer to file at least 10 days before the 
    beginning of the period which will constitute the first period in which 
    the producer must average. However, the United States, Canada and 
    Mexico agreed that the election should be filed at the same time that 
    other elections to average under section 11 must be filed. The 
    requirement does not impose an unnecessary hardship on a producer 
    because the producer will have the requisite knowledge as to when such 
    prototypes will be produced.
    Section 15
        Comment: One commenter made the following observations regarding 
    section 15 which concerns the inability of a supplier, exporter or 
    producer to provide sufficient information during a verification of the 
    origin of a good:
        1. Whereas section 15 sets forth alternative means to verify the 
    origin or value of a material used in the production of a good when the 
    person from whom the producer obtained the material is unable to 
    provide sufficient verifying information, when a producer supplies 
    verifying information the relevant customs administration should accept 
    it. Moreover, the customs administration should have the obligation to 
    explain in writing any refusal to accept the offered information 
    supporting the origin of the material.
        2. While section 15 properly provides that the customs 
    administration shall take into consideration whether the customs 
    administration of the importing country issued an advance ruling under 
    Article 509 of the NAFTA which concluded that the material is an 
    originating material, a provision should be added to authorize a 
    ``retroactive ruling'' that a material is an originating material (for 
    U.S. purposes, this could be done as a request for internal advice as 
    provided for in Part 177 of the Customs Regulations). A producer often 
    learns of a supplier's financial weakness in advance of problems that 
    would make it impossible to obtain the information necessary to verify 
    the origin of a material, and a ``retroactive ruling'' provision would 
    allow the producer to obtain a ruling that would cover prior periods. 
    The procedure for obtaining such a ruling should be consistent with the 
    advance ruling provisions, except that the supplier of the material 
    should provide exact historical data, including exporter's certificates 
    of origin, rather than projected costs. Addition of a retroactive 
    ruling provision would also reduce the need to rely on the other 
    section 15 
    
    [[Page 46351]]
    alternative means to verify the origin of a material.
        Customs response: With regard to the first comment, Customs notes 
    that subsection (1) of section 15 provides for factors to be considered 
    by a customs administration where, during a verification of a good, a 
    producer of a material is unable to supply sufficient verifying 
    information for reasons beyond that person's control. The regulation 
    thus contemplates the situation in which a verification requires 
    information from the producer of the material, perhaps, for example, in 
    the form of that person's books or records. It is unclear what the 
    commenter's reference is to accepting the information offered. Of 
    course, nothing in section 15 precludes the customs administration from 
    considering information from the producer of the good or from any other 
    source; rather, the section enumerates certain sources of information 
    which may provide relevant information. Normally, of course, the 
    verification process proceeds by seeking information from the producer 
    of that good and, if necessary, from the producer of a material. If the 
    customs administration is satisfied with respect to the origin of a 
    material by virtue of information provided by the producer of the good, 
    then presumably the situation identified in section 15 will not occur. 
    The NAFTA countries did not perceive the need to provide for an 
    obligation to accept proffered information or to explain any 
    unwillingness to do so. Customs does not believe that any amendment in 
    this regard is necessary or appropriate.
        As regards the second comment, the commenter accurately observes 
    that section 15(1)(a) provides that, among the factors to be 
    considered, is whether an advance ruling under Article 509 of the NAFTA 
    has been issued with respect to the material. The commenter appears to 
    be seeking a separate procedure through which the producer of the good 
    could obtain a decision with respect to the origin of a material which 
    would presumably affect the origin determination with respect to the 
    good. Such a procedure is intrinsic to the verification process. Thus, 
    if the outcome of the verification depends on the origin of the 
    material, it would be expected that the producer of the good would 
    provide such information in its possession to demonstrate where the 
    material originated. The customs adminstration would then apply the 
    conclusion to the goods subject to the verification. Accordingly, it 
    does not appear that there is any need for the regulations to be 
    amended in order to meet the concern identified by the commenter.
    Schedule III
        Comment: One commenter stated that the valuation provisions of the 
    interim regulations should be reviewed and revised to more accurately 
    reflect the terms of General Note 12(c), HTSUS, which specifically 
    refers to the legal standards set forth in section 402 of the Tariff 
    Act of 1930, as amended (19 U.S.C. 1401a). This commenter cited the 
    following specific examples in this regard:
        1. Under section 3 of Schedule III, subsection (4) provides for the 
    acceptance of transaction value between related parties when the 
    producer demonstrates ``that the transaction value of the good in that 
    sale closely approximates a test value referred to in subsection (5).'' 
    However, the ``test value'' referred to in subsection (5) is limited to 
    ``the transaction value of identical goods or similar goods sold at or 
    about the same time as the good being valued is sold to an unrelated 
    buyer who is located in the territory of the NAFTA country in which the 
    buyer is located.'' This commenter stated that this is much more 
    limited than the comparable statutory provision (19 U.S.C. 
    1401a(b)(2)(B)) that applies under General Note 12(c), HTSUS, which 
    includes other ``test values'' that can be used to demonstrate the 
    acceptability of the transaction value between related parties.
        2. Also under section 3 of Schedule III, subsection (8) appears to 
    require that the ``test value'' has been ``previously accepted by the 
    customs administration''. This commenter stated that this requirement 
    is not contained in the U.S. valuation statute referred to in General 
    Note 12(c), HTSUS.
        Customs response: Schedules II, III and VIII of the Appendix to 
    Part 181 of the interim NAFTA regulations were based on the Agreement 
    on Implementation of Article VII of the General Agreement on Tariffs 
    and Trade (the ``Customs Valuation Code,'' or ``Code''), rather than on 
    the U.S. valuation statute (19 U.S.C. 1401a), or the valuation statutes 
    of Canada or Mexico. Since the Code is a neutral document common to all 
    three NAFTA parties, it was therefore decided that the Code should form 
    the basis of that part of the regulations that is concerned with how to 
    determine regional value content under the transaction value method.
        In regard to the specific points raised by the commenter, the test 
    value referred to in Schedule III, section 3(5), is based on the 
    transaction value of identical or similar goods since the purpose of 
    the test value is to establish whether a transaction value between a 
    related producer and seller, determined in accordance with Schedule II, 
    is acceptable. Since transaction value is the only method of 
    determining the value of a good under Schedule II, there is no 
    justification for any alternative bases of determining test values as 
    there is under the Code. Just as test values under the Code must be 
    based on a value previously accepted by a customs administration, so 
    too NAFTA requires that a test value shall have been previously 
    accepted.
    Schedule VII
        Comment: The following comments were submitted in regard to the 
    reasonable allocation of costs provisions contained in Schedule VII:
        1. Two commenters referred specifically to sections 3(1)-(3) which 
    concern methods used for internal management purposes by a producer of 
    a good to reasonably allocate to that good direct material costs, 
    direct labor costs or overhead.
        One of these commenters noted that although the text in each case 
    sets forth the criterion of ``benefit, cause or ability to bear'' for 
    purposes of determining the reasonableness of the method used, the 
    elements of this criterion are neither defined anywhere in the Appendix 
    nor further explained in the examples under Schedule VII. This 
    commenter suggested that: (1) This criterion should be eliminated, on 
    the theory that a cost allocation method used for a (true) internal 
    management purpose (that is, as stated in section 7 of Schedule VII, 
    not solely for the purpose of qualifying a good as an originating good) 
    should satisfy the reasonableness requirement; or (2) at the least, a 
    definition or explanation of ``benefit, cause or ability to bear'' 
    should be included in the final Appendix texts.
        The second commenter expressed similar views and stated that the 
    following interpretation of section 3 should be expressly affirmed in 
    the final Appendix text: (1) That section 3 requires a customs 
    administration to accept an allocation method that is used by the 
    producer of a good for an internal management purpose, unless the 
    allocation method is determined to be manifestly unreasonable; and (2) 
    that a customs administration bears a heavy burden to disqualify any 
    allocation method based on lack of relation to the criterion of 
    benefit, cause or ability to bear because an allocation method that is 
    used for internal management purposes is presumptively reasonable since 
    a company is unlikely to rely on an allocation method for internal 
    
    [[Page 46352]]
    decision-making if it does not meet the benefit, cause or ability to 
    bear criterion. Consistent with this interpretation, this commenter 
    further suggested that section 3 should be revised to reflect a pure 
    internal use test because the ``reasonableness'' requirement, based on 
    the benefit, cause or ability to bear criterion, does not add 
    meaningfully to the rule, injects an unnecessary degree of subjectivity 
    into the cost allocation approval process, and is adequately provided 
    for by the terms of section 7 of Schedule VII. Finally, this commenter 
    recommended that, at a minimum, the following definitions be added to 
    the Appendix to clarify the meaning of the ``benefit, cause or ability 
    to bear'' criterion:
    
    Benefit or benefits received: This criterion identifies the 
    beneficiaries of the outputs of the cost pool and allocates the costs 
    in proportion to the benefits received.
    Cause or cause and effect: This criterion identifies the outputs of the 
    cost pool (any grouping of individual costs) and allocates the costs in 
    proportion to the services provided.
    Ability to bear: This criterion advocates allocating costs in 
    proportion to the cost objective's ability to bear.
    
        2. With regard to section 6, one commenter stated that paragraph 
    (d) should be eliminated so as to permit allocation of a gain or loss 
    from the sale of a capital asset consistent with Generally Accepted 
    Accounting Principles (GAAP) because, under GAAP, a gain or loss from 
    the disposal of an asset constitutes a legitimate element of the total 
    cost of the asset. Thus, a gain or loss on depreciation does not 
    represent an extraordinary cost, and any write-off on sale or disposal 
    of an asset should be reflected in total cost.
        3. One commenter argued that section 7 should be eliminated for 
    several reasons. First, section 7 is ambiguous when taken in context 
    with section 4, which applies when an allocation method does not 
    satisfy section 3 and which requires use of an allocation method that 
    is reasonable based on the criterion of benefit, cause or ability to 
    bear. The ambiguity exists because, if an internally used allocation 
    method is deemed not to satisfy the reasonableness requirement in 
    section 3 by virtue of the restriction in section 7, section 4 requires 
    the producer of a good to use an alternative allocation method that 
    does meet the benefit, cause or ability to bear reasonableness 
    criterion. Given the rejection of the internally used allocation method 
    under section 3, the only solution under section 4 is to use an 
    allocation method that is solely for the purpose of qualifying a good 
    as an originating good. This is precisely what section 7 is designed to 
    prevent. Second, section 7 is unnecessary because, so long as an 
    allocation method meets the reasonableness test under the benefit, 
    cause or ability to bear criterion, the purpose of the allocation 
    method is irrelevant. Finally, section 7 is redundant given the non-
    qualifying operations provision in section 17 of the Appendix as 
    regards any production or pricing practice the object of which is to 
    circumvent the Appendix. This commenter also suggested that if section 
    7 is to be retained, it should, at a minimum, provide specific and 
    objective criteria for determining whether a cost allocation method is 
    used solely to qualify a good as an originating good.
        Customs response: Customs disagrees with the commenters' 
    suggestions that the criteria of ``benefit, cause or ability to bear'' 
    are not necessary in section 3, or, in the alternative, that the terms 
    should be defined. The terms are recognized principles used in the cost 
    accounting industry. They are broad principles that provide a measure 
    by which Customs can determine the reasonableness of a cost allocation 
    method for an internal management purpose. Customs does not dispute the 
    fact that most producers, for one or more internal management purposes, 
    are likely to rely on allocation methods that satisfy one of these 
    criteria. The regulation, however, is intended to capture all 
    situations and, therefore, must necessarily identify criteria against 
    which the regulatory requirement is to be measured.
        Concerning the comment on section 6(d), Customs agrees with the 
    commenter's analysis of the treatment, for cost accounting purposes, of 
    the gain or loss from the sale of a capital asset. However, in this 
    case the Parties agreed that, for purposes of a ``reasonable'' 
    allocation of costs in the calculation of total cost, such gains or 
    losses are not reasonably allocated to a good.
        The commenter's remarks concerning section 7 are understandable 
    because the criteria of ``benefit, cause or ability to bear'' are used 
    in both sections 3 and 4 to determine whether a cost allocation is 
    reasonable. Nevertheless, Customs does not agree that section 7 should 
    be eliminated. The structure of Schedule VII requires that, under 
    section 3, an allocation method for an internal management purpose is 
    to be used if it is a reasonable allocation. However, section 7 states 
    that any allocation method for an internal management purpose will, on 
    its face, not be accepted as ``reasonable'' if it is solely for the 
    purpose of qualifying a good as an originating good. If costs are not 
    reasonably allocated under section 3, then the producer is required to 
    comply with section 4. Section 4 provides for the use of a method set 
    out in the addenda to Schedule VII and/or any method based on one of 
    the criteria of benefit, cause or ability to bear.
    Schedule VIII
        Comment: With regard to Schedule VIII (value of materials), one 
    commenter raised an issue concerning section 3 which operates as an 
    exception to the general rule that the transaction value of a material 
    is unacceptable if, among other things, the producer and the seller are 
    related persons and the relationship between them influenced the price 
    actually paid or payable for the material. Referring specifically to 
    the first sentence of subsection (7) which states that ``[s]ubsection 
    (4) provides an opportunity for the seller or the producer to 
    demonstrate that the transaction value closely approximates a test 
    value previously accepted by the customs administration of the NAFTA 
    country in which the producer is located, and is therefore acceptable 
    under subsection (1)'', the commenter suggested the following 
    interpretation thereof: the customs administration of the NAFTA country 
    into which a good is imported is required to accept (and thus may not 
    audit) the transaction value of a material used in the production of 
    the good if the customs administration of the country into which the 
    material was imported (and where the material was incorporated into the 
    exported good) approved that transaction value during a valuation audit 
    performed on the material when it was imported. This commenter stated 
    that because section 3 is ambiguous, the provision should be clarified 
    to reflect this interpretation. In addition, this commenter recommended 
    that section 3 be modified to expressly state that the customs 
    administration attempting to verify the value of a good that 
    incorporates a material must accept any pre-approval or advance ruling 
    concerning the value of the material by the customs administration of 
    the country into which the material was first imported.
        Customs response: For the purposes of Schedule VIII, unless 
    otherwise stated, the term ``customs administration'' is defined as 
    ``the customs administration of the NAFTA country into whose territory 
    the good, in the production of which the material being valued is used, 
    is imported.'' Section 3 sets forth the basis for 
    
    [[Page 46353]]
    determining whether the transaction value of a material determined 
    under section 2(1) is acceptable. One basis under section 3 for 
    validating a transaction value of a material is for a seller or 
    producer to demonstrate to a customs administration (that is, a customs 
    administration as defined above) that the transaction value determined 
    in accordance with section 2(1) closely approximates a test value 
    previously accepted by the customs administration of the NAFTA country 
    in which the producer is located. Accordingly, the regulations permit 
    the customs administration of one NAFTA country to accept the 
    transaction value of a material if it closely approximates a test value 
    determined by the customs administration of another NAFTA country. 
    However, this must be demonstrated to the satisfaction of the customs 
    administration (as defined for purposes of Schedule VIII), and there is 
    no requirement that a customs administration must accept any test value 
    put forward by a particular seller or producer.
    Schedule X
        Comment: The following comments were submitted regarding Schedule 
    X, principally in the context of the drawback and duty-deferral program 
    provisions of Subpart E of Part 181:
        1. With respect to the commingling of fungible goods and the 
    inventory methods that are allowable to determine the origin of 
    materials, one commenter stated that Schedule X excludes identification 
    procedures (inventory methods) that have been allowed in drawback such 
    as ``lower to higher'', ``higher to lower'' and blanket identification. 
    This commenter also stated that FIFO is administratively unworkable and 
    economically unfeasible for most companies, in part because the 
    association of entry numbers with imported part numbers which is needed 
    under FIFO is too detailed. On this same subject, two commenters stated 
    that Schedule X is unworkable and not consistent with the intent of 
    Congress which, as stated in Ways and Means Report 103-361, was ``* * * 
    to provide sufficient flexibility in the inventory accounting methods 
    for such goods to make them administratively workable for industry.'' 
    Another commenter stated that the words ``completely fungible'' should 
    be changed to ``commercially interchangeable'' because of the 
    redefinition of the term ``fungible'' in the Customs modernization 
    provisions of the Act.
        2. Three commenters raised the issue of commingled fungible goods 
    that are 100 percent imported, two of them stating that, in such a 
    case, entries for goods (within the appropriate time period) may be 
    designated under the inventory averaging procedure and that this is 
    supported by the legislative history relating to the Customs 
    modernization provisions of the Act. These commenters also stated that, 
    in such circumstances, the ``high-to-low'' method or any other Customs 
    approved accounting method may be used.
        3. Another commenter stated that the Appendix should not be used 
    for the purposes of determining inventory methods because the Appendix 
    is generally for rules of origin purposes. This commenter also stated 
    that the inventory methods used to support a same condition drawback 
    claim should be set forth separately because Article 303 of the NAFTA 
    is not subject to the uniform regulations requirement of Chapter 5 of 
    the NAFTA.
        4. Two commenters pointed out that Customs should give some thought 
    to companies that must keep extremely detailed records such as those 
    dealing in footwear, eye wear, finished clothing and other articles 
    that are produced in a wide variety of styles, sizes and colors. This 
    commenter stated that the requirements of Schedule X are so onerous 
    that companies that produce or distribute these types of articles will 
    not be able to export to Canada and Mexico for lack of ability to 
    comply with these requirements. This commenter also suggested that 
    Customs should address the area of former 19 U.S.C. 1313(j)(2) 
    substitution drawback claimants in a NAFTA context. In this regard, the 
    commenter stated that, assuming such claimants meet the requirements 
    for drawback under 19 U.S.C. 1313(j)(1), Customs should recognize that 
    they do not need to resubmit any applications for purposes of obtaining 
    drawback under 19 U.S.C. 1313(j)(1) in a NAFTA context but rather would 
    simply file the claims in accordance with the applicable regulations. 
    This commenter, after stating that Customs officials from the Office of 
    Trade Operations have indicated that the Schedule X inventory 
    procedures will be applied to all 19 U.S.C. 1313(j)(1) drawback claims, 
    expressed the view that Schedule X should apply only in the context of 
    Part 181.
        5. A commenter pointed out that Secs. 191.141(e) and 191.22, taken 
    together, also provide for storage and identification methods and 
    provide more options for approved accounting methods than Schedule X 
    does. For example, these sections allow use of ``high-to-low'', but 
    Schedule X does not. This commenter therefore suggested that the 
    provisions of Sec. 191.22 should be used instead of Schedule X.
        6. Two commenters stated that the inventory methods authorized for 
    foreign trade zone procedures (Sec. 146.23) should be included in 
    Schedule X in order to avoid the need for multiple inventory systems as 
    the price for using both trade programs. These commenters cited, as an 
    example that these two provisions are not in agreement (at least with 
    respect to terminology), the fact that Schedule X calls for a specific 
    identification method whereas Sec. 146.23 requires a unique 
    identification number. If these two requirements are the same, these 
    commenters suggested that the regulatory text should state that this is 
    the case.
        7. Another commenter asked whether LIFO and average methods are 
    acceptable for drawback and, if so, whether they can be used on exports 
    to non-NAFTA countries. If not, this commenter asked whether claimants 
    must switch to FIFO or maintain different accounting methods for the 
    same goods.
        Customs response: These comments principally address an allegedly 
    impractical and unworkable application of the inventory management 
    methods of Schedule X as required under Sec. 181.45(b)(2)(i). In sum, 
    the commenters argue that the Customs-approved methods in 
    Secs. 191.121(e) and 191.22 (drawback) and in Sec. 146.23 (foreign 
    trade zones) of the Customs Regulations should be allowed in place of 
    the methods set forth in Schedule X.
        Customs disagrees with these comments to the extent that they 
    propose an expansion of the allowable methods for determining which 
    commingled goods are eligible for full drawback under Sec. 181.45(b). 
    Schedule X was promulgated under NAFTA Article 511 and applies, by 
    operation of NAFTA Article 303(6)(b), to imported goods which have been 
    commingled with fungible goods and which are exported to Canada or 
    Mexico in the same condition as when imported into the United States.
        Nevertheless, the number of comments submitted on this point 
    suggests that the text of Sec. 181.45(b)(2)(i) could be improved. 
    Accordingly, Sec. 181.45(b)(2)(i), as set forth below, has been 
    modified to more clearly reflect the intended effect of Article 
    303(6)(b), that is, as a narrow exception to the broad operation of 
    Article 303 which restricts drawback to the amount determined under the 
    ``lesser of'' rule. Beginning in 1996 (for exports to Canada) and in 
    2001 (for exports to Mexico), same condition substitution drawback will 
    be prohibited altogether. The only 
    
    [[Page 46354]]
    exceptions are for the goods described in Article 303(6). Thus, ``same 
    condition'' drawback for imported goods commingled with fungible goods 
    is allowed, but only to the extent that the identity of the imported 
    goods is determined by use of one of the approved inventory management 
    methods set forth in Schedule X.
    
    Additional Changes to the Regulations
    
        In addition to the changes to the interim regulatory texts 
    discussed above, this document modifies the interim texts to set forth 
    changes that are necessary (1) to reflect subsequent trilateral 
    discussion and agreement regarding regulatory standards pursuant to 
    Article 511 of the NAFTA or (2) based on an independent review of the 
    interim texts within Customs. These changes are discussed below.
    
    Changes Pursuant to Trilateral Discussions
    
        Subsequent to the publication of the interim regulations in T.D. 
    94-1, and in keeping with the principle of ongoing cooperation in the 
    implementation and administration of the NAFTA as provided for in 
    Section F of Chapter Five of the NAFTA, representatives of the United 
    States, Canada and Mexico held further meetings which resulted in 
    agreement regarding (1) use of the definition of ``conspicuous'' as set 
    forth in Annex 311 of the NAFTA, (2) the adoption of an additional 
    standard covering denial of preferential tariff treatment based on a 
    failure to provide certain documentation in transshipment cases, (3) 
    the adoption of additional standards for origin verifications, (4) the 
    adoption of additional standards to be applied with regard to requests 
    for advance rulings under Article 509 of the NAFTA, and (5) the 
    modification of the substantively verbatim texts implementing the rules 
    of origin provisions of Chapter Four of the NAFTA. The agreed changes, 
    as reflected in the final regulatory texts set forth in this document, 
    are summarized below.
    
    Definition of ``Conspicuous''
    
        During the trilateral discussions it was pointed out that the 
    interim amendments to Part 134 did not set forth the definition of 
    ``conspicuous'' contained in the country of origin marking provisions 
    of Annex 311 of the NAFTA. Accordingly, Sec. 134.1 has been modified, 
    as set forth below, by the addition of that definition as a new 
    paragraph (k). Customs believes that this definition is appropriate for 
    both NAFTA and non-NAFTA contexts since the NAFTA definition reflects 
    existing Customs practice and regulatory standards (see, for example, 
    the last sentence of Sec. 134.41(b)).
    
    Failure to Provide Documents in Transshipment Cases
    
        The new standard regarding shipping documents provides that 
    preferential tariff treatment may be denied to an originating good if 
    the good is shipped through or transshipped in a non-NAFTA country and 
    the importer does not provide, upon request, copies of the customs 
    control documents showing that the good remained under customs control 
    while in that non-NAFTA country. Section 181.23, as set forth below, 
    has been modified by the addition of a new paragraph (b) to reflect 
    this new standard, and Sec. 181.31 (regarding post-importation claims) 
    and Sec. 181.71 (regarding origin verifications), as set forth below, 
    have been appropriately modified as a consequence of the adoption of 
    this new standard.
    Origin Verifications
    
        The Parties agreed to a new standard for origin verifications that 
    permits verification of the applicable rate of duty applied to an 
    originating good in accordance with NAFTA Annex 302.2 and determination 
    of whether a good is a qualifying good for purposes of NAFTA Annex 
    703.2. Accordingly, Sec. 181.72 as set forth below has been modified by 
    the addition of a new paragraph (a)(2) to reflect this standard.
        In addition, the new standard for origin verifications provides 
    that a questionnaire may be completed, at the option of the exporter or 
    producer, either in the language of the importing country or in the 
    language of the country in which the exporter or producer is located. 
    Paragraph (a)(3)(ii) (paragraph (a)(2)(ii) in the interim texts) of 
    Sec. 181.72, as set forth below, has been modified accordingly.
    
    Requests for Advance Rulings
    
        The new trilaterally-agreed standards regarding advance ruling 
    requests concern the information required to be submitted with the 
    request and therefore only affect Sec. 181.93 of the interim 
    regulations. The substantive changes reflected in Sec. 181.93, as set 
    forth below, are as follows:
        1. In paragraph (b)(1), which concerns general information to be 
    included in the request, the following requirements have been added: 
    identification of the specific subject matter of the request; inclusion 
    of a statement regarding the accuracy and completeness of the 
    information submitted; inclusion of the name and address of the 
    exporter and producer of the good where the importer is the requesting 
    party; inclusion of the name and address of the producer and importer 
    of the good where the exporter is the requesting party; inclusion of 
    the name and address of the exporter and importer of the good where the 
    producer is the requesting party; submission of copies of advance 
    rulings or other rulings issued to the requesting party by Customs 
    regarding the tariff classification of the good, if relevant to the 
    issue in the advance ruling request; and, if no ruling on tariff 
    classification was issued to the requesting party, sufficient 
    information to enable Customs to classify the good if relevant to the 
    issue in the advance ruling request.
        2. Paragraph (b)(2)(ii), which concerns tariff change rulings, has 
    been changed by designating the interim text as subparagraph (A) in 
    order to facilitate the addition of a new subparagraph (B) setting 
    forth information that must be in an advance ruling request which 
    involves an origin issue requiring an assessment of whether materials 
    undergo an applicable change in tariff classification.
        3. In paragraph (b)(2)(iii), which concerns rulings on regional 
    value content, the following changes have been made: in the first 
    sentence, the words ``or under both methods'' have been added to 
    reflect the fact that satisfaction of a regional value content 
    requirement may involve use of both the transaction value method and 
    the net cost method as well as the fact that a ruling on both issues 
    may be sought; the second sentence, which sets forth the information to 
    be submitted for purposes of the transaction value method, has been 
    changed by inserting specific references to relevant provisions of the 
    Appendix to Part 181, by adding a requirement for information 
    sufficient to calculate the value of each material for which the origin 
    is unknown and that is used in the production of the good, by adding a 
    requirement for specific information regarding each material that is 
    claimed to be an originating material and is used in the production of 
    the good, and by adding a requirement specifying information to be 
    submitted where the advance ruling request involves an issue as to 
    whether the transaction value is acceptable with respect to the good; 
    the third sentence, which sets forth the information to be submitted 
    for purposes of the net cost method, has been changed by inserting 
    specific references to relevant provisions of the Appendix to Part 181, 
    by adding references to lists of all ``product, period and other'' 
    costs and of all ``excluded'' 
    
    [[Page 46355]]
    costs, by limiting the required materials value information to non-
    originating materials or materials for which the origin is unknown and 
    that are used in the production of the good, and by requiring a 
    statement regarding the period over which the net cost calculation is 
    to be made; and a new sentence has been added at the end to limit the 
    information required to be submitted where the advance ruling request 
    concerns only the calculation of an element of a regional value content 
    formula.
        4. A new paragraph (b)(2)(iv), with the heading ``NAFTA rulings on 
    producer materials'', has been added to specify information that must 
    be submitted where the advance ruling request either involves an issue 
    with respect to an intermediate material or is submitted by a Canadian 
    or Mexican producer of a material and concerns only the origin of such 
    material.
        5. Paragraph (b)(5), which requires the submission of information 
    regarding prior or current transactions, has been reconfigured to 
    facilitate the addition of references to information regarding the 
    following: judicial or quasi-judicial review in Canada or Mexico; a 
    verification of origin performed in the United States, Canada or 
    Mexico; an administrative appeal in the United States, Canada or 
    Mexico; a request for an advance ruling in the United States, Canada or 
    Mexico; and the status or disposition of any current or prior judicial 
    or quasi-judicial review, verification of origin, administrative 
    appeal, or advance ruling request.
    
    Chapter Four Rules of Origin
    
        With regard to the substantively verbatim regulatory texts covering 
    the rules of origin provisions of Chapter Four of the NAFTA, which were 
    set forth in the interim regulations in the Appendix to Part 181, the 
    trilaterally-agreed changes thereto concern clarifications of ambiguous 
    provisions, corrections in grammar or punctuation and, in certain 
    cases, textual additions to remedy instances in which the original 
    trilateral text was incomplete or the intent of the Parties was not 
    adequately expressed. These changes, which are incorporated in the text 
    of the Appendix to Part 181 as set forth below, are as follows:
    Calculation of Total Cost
    
        Calculation of total cost is required for purposes of the de 
    minimis rule in section 5, the net cost method in section 6 and the 
    valuation of intermediate materials in sections 7 and 10. However, 
    references in the original trilateral texts to the calculation of total 
    cost were incomplete in sections 5, 7 and 10. Therefore, in order to 
    make it clear as to what costs are included in the ``total cost'' as 
    that term is used in the trilateral texts, new subsection (6) has been 
    added to section 2, new sections 5(10), 7(7) and 10(9)(f) have been 
    added, and consequential changes have been made to the following 
    provisions in sections 5, 6 and 7: sections 5(9) (a) and (b) (sections 
    5(8) (a) and (b) in the interim texts); section 6(12); and sections 
    7(6)(a) and (b).
    
    Effect of Choice to Average
    
        Throughout the trilateral texts there are references to 
    ``averaging'' for purposes of determining the net cost of goods, the 
    value of materials or the value of traced materials. Whenever a 
    producer makes the choice to average, the period over which that 
    producer averages cannot be changed, and the duration of the choice to 
    average must extend to the end of the fiscal year of that producer. 
    Although these requirements were implicit in the original trilateral 
    texts, it became apparent that it was necessary to state them 
    explicitly. Therefore, new subsections (7) through (10) have been added 
    to section 2, and the following changes have been made to the related 
    provisions in sections 6 and 12 and in Schedule X: revision of section 
    6(15)(a)(ii); addition of new sections 6(18) and 6(19) and 
    redesignation of interim sections 6(18) and 6(19) as 6(20) and 6(21); 
    in sections 12(5) (a) and (b), addition of the words ``that is evenly 
    divisible into the number of months of the producer's fiscal year 
    remaining at the beginning of that period''; addition of new sections 
    12(6) through 12(9) and redesignation of interim sections 12(6) and 
    12(7) as 12(10) and 12(11); and revision of sections 3 and 12 of 
    Schedule X.
    
    Averaging For De Minimis and Accumulation
    
        The original trilateral texts failed to provide specifically for 
    the use of averaging in determining the value of the non-originating 
    materials in subsections (1) and (5) of section 5 (de minimis), and in 
    determining the net cost and value of non-originating materials in 
    subsection (2) of section 14 (accumulation). To provide guidance on the 
    use of averaging in situations involving de minimis or accumulation, 
    new subsections (11) and (12) have been added to section 5 and new 
    subsection (3) has been added to section 14. Consequential amendments, 
    such as redesignation of subsections and internal references, have also 
    been made.
    
    Section 4
    
        Section 7(10) provides for the situation in which a self-produced 
    material may be designated as an intermediate material if it is used in 
    the production of a good that is subject to a regional value content 
    requirement. It was not clear under the original trilateral texts that 
    a self-produced material, used in a good which is not subject to a 
    regional value content requirement, could be considered as a material 
    for purposes of the NAFTA rules of origin. Accordingly, a new 
    subsection (8) has been added to section 4 in order to make it clear 
    that a self-produced material may be considered as a material used in 
    the production of a good even if the good is not subject to a regional 
    value content requirement. Such a self-produced material must have 
    either originating or non-originating status under the NAFTA rules of 
    origin, and that status will influence the application of a particular 
    NAFTA rule of origin to the good produced from that material. In 
    addition, a new subsection (9) has been added to section 4 setting 
    forth an example to illustrate such a situation.
    
    Section 6
    
        Article 403 of the NAFTA specifically provides a producer with the 
    option to use an averaging method for calculating the net cost for 
    automotive goods, and sections 11, 12 and 13 of the trilateral 
    regulations implement the specific provisions of Article 403 for 
    automotive goods. The NAFTA does not specifically provide for averaging 
    with respect to any other goods. However, because it was recognized 
    that in many situations non-automotive producers will have to use 
    standard or projected costs to calculate the net cost and the value of 
    non-originating materials in their goods, an averaging method was 
    included in section 6(15) of the trilateral texts in order to permit, 
    in a commercially practicable manner, averaging of the values required 
    under the net cost method for non-automotive goods. The introductory 
    text of section 6(15) as set forth in this document has been amended to 
    more clearly state the intent of the Parties, that is, that the 
    regional value content calculation for certain automotive goods may not 
    be calculated by the ``averaging'' permitted under section 6(15). 
    Although this exclusion of automotive goods from the application of 
    section 6(15) appears to be a limitation, this is not the case. The 
    category of goods for which averaging may be chosen under section 6(15) 
    is restricted to goods which are ``identical or similar'' as defined in 
    section 2, 
    
    [[Page 46356]]
    whereas the various categories of automotive goods for which averaging 
    may be chosen under section 11, 12 or 13 are not so restricted. Thus, 
    this amendment will provide greater textual clarity but will have 
    minimal adverse effect on producers of automotive goods for which 
    averaging may be chosen under section 11, 12 or 13.
    
    Section 7
    
        Under Article 402(9) of the NAFTA, the value of materials is either 
    the transaction value (as defined in Article 415) or, if there is no 
    transaction value or the transaction value is unacceptable, the value 
    determined in accordance with the Articles 2 through 7 of the Customs 
    Valuation Code. Section 7(1) and Schedule VIII of the trilateral 
    regulations implement the NAFTA with respect to the valuation of 
    materials. Section 7(1) states that, if the producer of the good is the 
    importer of a material, the value of that material for NAFTA purposes 
    is the customs value. However, ``transaction value'' or other value 
    used as the basis for the customs value may not, in fact, reflect the 
    transaction value ``of the producer'' or other applicable value as 
    defined in the NAFTA. Section 7(2) as set forth in this document has 
    been revised to make it clear that if the customs value for the 
    materials referred to in section 7(1) was not determined in a manner 
    consistent with Schedule VIII, then the customs value may not be used 
    as the value of the material: in such a case the value of the material 
    must be determined according to Schedule VIII. In addition, in order to 
    illustrate this principle, a new Example 1 has been added in section 
    7(20) (section 7(17) in the interim texts) and interim Examples 1 
    through 6 have been renumbered as Examples 2 through 7. For the same 
    reasons, similar references to the use of ``customs value'' as the 
    value of a material have been clarified by revising sections 9(3) and 
    10(3) and section 1(2) of Schedule VIII.
        Paragraph (b) of section 7(12) in the original trilateral texts 
    (renumbered in this document as section 7(13)) could have been 
    incorrectly interpreted as requiring that self-produced packaging 
    materials or containers be valued under subparagraphs (i) or (ii). 
    Under such an interpretation, the value of a self-produced material 
    would always have to be treated as a non-originating value if the self-
    produced material were a non-originating material. However, under the 
    NAFTA a producer is not required to treat a self-produced material as a 
    material or to designate a self-produced material as an intermediate 
    material. Therefore, this unnecessary and potentially confusing 
    paragraph (b) has been removed. This change does not affect a 
    producer's option to designate self-produced packaging materials as 
    intermediate materials if it is in the producer's interest to do so, 
    and this point has been clarified by the addition of a new section 
    7(14). Similarly, a new section 7(19) has been added to cover 
    accessories, spare parts and tools that are self-produced. 
    Consequential amendments have also been made by renumbering the 
    subsections which follow these new provisions.
        A new Example 8 has also been added to section 7(20) (section 7(17) 
    in the interim texts) in order to illustrate the effects of section 
    7(1) and section 7(11) (section 7(10) in the interim texts) on a 
    situation in which a producer of a good provides an indirect material, 
    which is also an assist in this example, to a material producer for use 
    in the production of a material that is subsequently used in the 
    production of the good. If the indirect material is provided free of 
    charge and the cost of the indirect material is not recorded on the 
    books of that material producer, section 7(11) provides that the value 
    of the indirect material is not included in the regional value content 
    calculation under the net cost method for the material when determining 
    whether or not the material is originating. However, if, as in this 
    example, the indirect material is also an assist and the material that 
    is made with benefit of the indirect material is subsequently used in 
    the production of a good by the producer who supplied the indirect 
    material, section 7(1) provides that the value of the indirect material 
    (assist) is included in the value of that material (whether or not 
    originating) when calculating the regional value content of the good.
    
    Section 9
    
        If a traced material has been incorporated into an originating 
    material that is then acquired by the producer of a light duty 
    automotive good, the value of that traced material may be determined by 
    one of the methods set out in section 9(2)(e) or 9(2)(f) of the 
    trilateral regulations. Paragraph (e) requires information on the 
    actual value of a traced material. Paragraph (f) provides an 
    alternative which will always result in a value that represents the 
    maximum value of a traced material allowable in the originating 
    acquired material.
        In order to provide the supplier of an acquired material with an 
    option to pass forward a value that is closer to the actual value of 
    the traced material, but which does not require revealing the actual 
    value as required in paragraph (e), it was determined that a third 
    option should be allowed. Accordingly, a new paragraph (f) has been 
    added to provide that the value of the traced material may be an amount 
    that is based on the actual regional value content (RVC) of the 
    acquired material (rather than the regional value content requirement, 
    or RVCR), the amount being represented by the formula VM  x  (1 - RVC). 
    As a consequence of the addition of this new paragraph (f), interim 
    paragraphs (f) through (h) have been redesignated as (g) through (i), 
    the internal cross-references in these paragraphs have been revised to 
    reflect these changes, and, in section 9(10), Example 9 has been 
    amended and Examples 12 and 13 have been added in order to reflect the 
    new option for determining the value of a traced material which has 
    been incorporated into an originating material acquired by a producer 
    of a light duty automotive good.
    
    Section 10
    
        A new section 10(1)(d)(ii) has been added to provide, as in the 
    case of new section 9(2)(f), for a third alternative method to 
    determine the value of a listed non-originating material incorporated 
    into an originating material that is acquired for use in the production 
    of a heavy duty automotive good. Necessary consequential changes have 
    also been made involving renumbering interim subparagraphs (ii) and 
    (iii) as (iii) and (iv), changing the affected internal cross-
    references in the texts, and making changes in Examples 1, 2 and 4 
    under section 10(10) to reflect the new method.
        A new text of Example 10 replaces the interim text in section 
    10(10) in order to illustrate the application of section 10(8) which 
    allows the use of averaging under the principles of section 12(3) in 
    order to determine the value of a non-originating material for purposes 
    of the statement required in section 10(1)(b)(ii), section 10(1)(d)(i) 
    or section 10(1)(e)(i). The value of a non-originating material, in 
    such a case, would not be the value of the acquired material which is a 
    listed non-originating material; it would be the value of the non-
    originating material incorporated into the listed non-originating 
    material by the producer of that listed material.
    
    Section 11
    
        A new subsection (11) has been added to section 11 setting forth an 
    Example to illustrate the options available under section 11(9)(b) in 
    the event that a producer of a motor vehicle chooses to 
    
    [[Page 46357]]
    average only those motor vehicles to be exported to the territory of 
    only one NAFTA country or to the territories of more than one NAFTA 
    country.
    
    Section 12
    
        Section 12(1) has been amended in order to remove an ambiguous 
    reference to the averaging of the regional value content for automotive 
    component assemblies, automotive components, sub-components or listed 
    materials and thereby avoid any misunderstanding with respect to the 
    goods that may be averaged together if produced in the same plant. 
    Specifically, the words ``any or all automotive component assemblies, 
    automotive components, sub-components or listed materials'' have been 
    replaced by the words ``an automotive component assembly, an automotive 
    component, a subcomponent or a listed material''. The text as amended 
    more closely follows the language of NAFTA Article 403(4) (which refers 
    to ``a component'' or ``a listed material'' of Annex 403.2) and thus 
    makes it clear, for example, that engines and transmissions may not be 
    grouped together for purposes of averaging regional value content.
    Section 16
    
        Section 16(1) has been revised in order to provide a clearer 
    interpretation with respect to the nature of operations that, when 
    performed on an originating good during transshipment through a non-
    NAFTA country, do not cause the good to lose its status as an 
    originating good. The revised text in subsection (1)(a) further makes 
    it clear that, except for goods covered by section 16(3), a good is 
    considered not to be an originating good if it is removed from customs 
    control when outside the territories of the NAFTA countries.
    
    Schedule VII
    
        The definition of ``discontinued operations'' in section 1 has been 
    revised in both scope and meaning in order to link the term, when used 
    with respect to a producer's operations that are located in a NAFTA 
    country, to the meaning set out in that NAFTA country's Generally 
    Accepted Accounting Principles. This maintains the consistent treatment 
    given in the NAFTA to issues related to allocation of costs.
        For similar reasons, the reference in section 6(c) to ``cumulative 
    effect of accounting changes'' has been amended to reflect that such 
    changes are those reported in accordance with a specific requirement of 
    the applicable Generally Accepted Accounting Principles.
    
    Schedule VIII
    
        The texts of sections 10(1)(c) and 10(3) have been revised in order 
    to resolve an ambiguity with respect to which word is modified by the 
    phrase ``in the country in which the material is produced''. These 
    changes reflect the understanding that the determination of the amount 
    added for profit and general expenses depends on whether the material 
    is imported by the producer or acquired from another person in the 
    territory in which the producer is located. In both cases the amount 
    added should be based on sales of materials of the same class or kind 
    as that being valued. However, in regard to the former, the 
    determination should be based on sales of such materials by producers 
    located in the country in which the imported material was produced, 
    whereas in the latter, the determination should be based on sales by 
    producers located in the same country as the producer of the material 
    being valued.
    
    Schedule X
    
        During the trilateral discussions, it was noted that the first 
    table in Addendum A as set forth in the interim Appendix was incomplete 
    in that the trilaterally-agreed table included a third column ``Total 
    Value'' under the heading ``Materials inventory sales (Receipts of 
    material A)''. Accordingly, the first table in Addendum A has been 
    corrected to reflect the trilateral text.
    
    Technical Amendments
    
        Many additional amendments reflected in the texts set forth in this 
    document concern simply technical changes relating to matters such as 
    punctuation, cross references, typographical format and consequential 
    renumbering of provisions. These changes are not intended to have any 
    effect on the substance or content of the texts.
    
    Section 181.131
    
        In light of certain of the trilaterally-agreed changes to the 
    Appendix texts as discussed above, the Parties also agreed that it 
    would be necessary to have a rule covering the transition from the 
    interim Appendix texts to the new Appendix texts in the case of 
    producers for whom an averaging period started prior to, and would 
    extend beyond, the agreed October 1, 1995, effective date of the new 
    Appendix texts. Accordingly, Sec. 181.131 as set forth below has been 
    modified by designating the interim text as paragraph (a) and by adding 
    new paragraphs (b) and (c) to reflect the agreed-upon transitional 
    rules.
    
    Other Changes
    
        Based on further internal review of the interim regulatory texts, 
    Customs has determined that the following additional changes thereto 
    should be made.
    
    Section 10.8(a)
    
        The interim regulatory amendments in T.D. 94-1 included the 
    addition of a new paragraph (a) to Sec. 10.8 of the Customs Regulations 
    (19 CFR 10.8) to clarify that the provisions of that section do not 
    apply in the case of goods returned to the United States after 
    exportation for repairs or alterations in Canada or Mexico, for which 
    separate provisions were set forth in interim Sec. 181.64. 
    Subsequently, on May 17, 1994, Customs published in the Federal 
    Register (59 FR 25563) as T.D. 94-47 a final rule document which 
    included a complete revision of Sec. 10.8. However, the text of this 
    revised Sec. 10.8 did not carry forward the substance of the interim 
    NAFTA amendment. Accordingly, this document amends the introductory 
    text of Sec. 10.8(a) as published in T.D. 94-47 to incorporate the 
    substance of that NAFTA provision.
    
    Section 12.132
    
        The interim regulatory amendments in T.D. 94-1 included the 
    addition of a new Sec. 12.132 to clarify the use of country of origin 
    declarations, which were provided for in Sec. 12.130(f) of the Customs 
    Regulations (19 CFR 12.130(f)), in the case of textile and apparel 
    goods which are subject to the provisions of Annex 300-B of the NAFTA. 
    Subsequently, on June 20, 1994, Customs published in the Federal 
    Register (59 FR 31519) as T.D. 94-52 an interim rule document which 
    amended interim Sec. 12.132 by adding thereto a new paragraph (b) 
    requiring submission of a Certificate of Eligibility in connection with 
    a claim for NAFTA preferential tariff treatment involving non-
    originating textile and apparel goods subject to the tariff preference 
    level provisions of Appendix 6.B. to Annex 300-B of the NAFTA. In order 
    to ensure that this document accurately reflects current regulatory 
    requirements, the text of Sec. 12.132 is republished below to 
    incorporate the interim amendment effected by T.D. 94-52. Customs 
    intends to publish a separate final rule document in the near future 
    which will specifically address T.D. 94-52, including any public 
    comments submitted in response thereto.
    Section 181.22(a)
    
        Interim Sec. 181.22(a) provided that the importer must maintain 
    documentation relating to an imported good for five 
    
    [[Page 46358]]
    years after the date of ``importation'' of the good. In order to 
    reflect the requirements of U.S. law (19 U.S.C. 1508(c), as amended by 
    section 614 of the Act), Sec. 181.22(a) as set forth below has been 
    modified to refer to five years after the date of ``entry'' of the 
    good.
    
    Section 181.22(b)(2)
    
        In addition to the removal of the references to a ``producer'' as 
    discussed above, Sec. 181.22(b)(2), as set forth below, has been 
    modified to refer to signature of the Certificate of Origin by the 
    exporter's authorized agent ``having knowledge of the relevant facts''. 
    Customs believes that this change is appropriate to ensure that the 
    signature has substantive relevance that goes beyond that of a mere 
    agency relationship.
    
    Section 181.22(d)
    
        The following changes have been made to Sec. 181.22(d) which 
    specifies circumstances in which a Certificate of Origin is not 
    required:
        1. For editorial and citation purposes, the text as set forth below 
    has been rearranged and divided into paragraph (d)(1) (which sets forth 
    the general rules for when a Certificate is not required) and paragraph 
    (d)(2) (which covers the exception regarding a series of importations).
        2. The introductory text of newly designated paragraph (d)(1) has 
    been modified as set forth below by replacing the words ``a Certificate 
    of Origin shall not be required for'' with the words ``an importer 
    shall not be required to have a Certificate of Origin in his 
    possession''. Customs believes that this change is necessary to clarify 
    the intent which relates to the basic requirement for possession of a 
    Certificate when a claim for preferential tariff treatment is made (see 
    the last sentence of Sec. 181.21(a)) rather than to the requirement for 
    submission of the Certificate to Customs when requested under 
    Sec. 181.21(b).
        3. In order to provide for proper notification and related 
    procedural safeguards in a case where a Certificate is required because 
    the importation is determined to be part of a series of importations 
    that may reasonably be considered to have been undertaken or arranged 
    for the purpose of avoiding a certification requirement, the text of 
    newly designated paragraph (d)(2), as set forth below, has been 
    modified (1) to require written notice to the importer that possession 
    of a Certificate covering the importation at issue is required, (2) to 
    allow the importer 30 calendar days to obtain a valid Certificate, and 
    (3) to specify the consequence of a failure to timely obtain the 
    Certificate (denial of the claim for preferential tariff treatment).
    
    Section 181.41
    
        In Sec. 181.41, which prescribes the applicability of the Subpart E 
    ``NAFTA drawback'' (as defined in Sec. 181.1(o)) provisions, the first 
    sentence has been changed as set forth below by the addition of a 
    reference to ``any good that is a `good subject to NAFTA drawback' 
    within the meaning of 19 U.S.C. 3333'' in order to (1) incorporate by 
    reference the terms of NAFTA Article 303(6) as implemented in U.S. law 
    and (2) clarify that those NAFTA Article 303 and U.S. statutory 
    standards are applicable under Subpart E both for drawback purposes and 
    for purposes of the Sec. 181.53 duty-deferral provisions. In addition, 
    for similar clarification purposes, the first sentence of 
    Sec. 181.53(a)(2) as set forth below has been changed to refer to a 
    ```good subject to NAFTA drawback' within the meaning of 19 U.S.C. 
    3333''.
    
    Section 181.44
    
        In Sec. 181.44, which specifies the circumstances in which drawback 
    is calculated under the NAFTA ``lesser of the two'' rule, a new 
    paragraph (g) has been added as set forth below to cover goods that are 
    ``unused'' within the meaning of 19 U.S.C. 1313(j)(1) but have changed 
    in condition after importation into the United States so as not to be 
    eligible for full drawback under Sec. 181.45(b).
    
    Section 181.47
    
        In order to facilitate Customs processing of NAFTA drawback claims, 
    the following changes have been made to the text of interim Sec. 181.47 
    which concerns the completion of claims for drawback under Subpart E: 
    (1) In paragraph (a), language has been added at the end of the second 
    sentence to provide that claims under Subpart E must be filed 
    separately from non-NAFTA claims filed under Part 191; and (2) a 
    sentence has been added at the end of paragraph (b)(1) to provide for 
    inclusion of the word ``NAFTA'' at the top of each drawback entry form 
    filed under Subpart E.
    
    Section 181.50
    
        In Sec. 181.50, which concerns payment and liquidation of drawback 
    claims, paragraph (b) as set forth below has been modified (1) to refer 
    to when a drawback claim is to be liquidated (rather than when it 
    becomes ``final'') and (2) by the addition of a sentence at the end to 
    refer to adjustments of drawback claims under 19 U.S.C. 
    1508(b)(2)(B)(iii).
    
    Section 181.62
    
        With regard to interim Sec. 181.62 which concerns duty-free 
    treatment of commercial samples of negligible value imported from 
    Canada or Mexico, Customs notes that paragraphs (b)(3) and (c) thereof, 
    which specifically addressed textile samples, did not devolve from a 
    specific statutory provision whereas the remainder of the section did 
    reflect the terms of an underlying U.S. statutory provision (subheading 
    9811.00.60, HTSUS). Since implementation of the commercial sample 
    provision in Article 306 of the NAFTA is a function of what is 
    permissible or required under applicable U.S. law (in this case, 
    subheading 9811.00.60, HTSUS), Sec. 181.62 as set forth below has been 
    modified by the removal of paragraphs (b)(3) and (c).
    
    Section 181.63
    
        Interim Sec. 181.63, which concerned duty-free treatment of printed 
    advertising materials imported from Canada or Mexico, reflected both 
    the terms of Article 306 of the NAFTA and the definition of ``printed 
    advertising materials'' in Article 318 of the NAFTA; thus, the 
    regulatory text referred generically to ``goods classified in Chapter 
    49, HTSUS'', which chapter covers some goods for which duty-free 
    treatment is not provided. Since U.S. duty treatment of goods covered 
    by NAFTA Article 306 is controlled by the terms of the HTSUS, Customs 
    has determined that Sec. 181.63 serves no effective purpose and 
    therefore should be removed and reserved until such time as appropriate 
    changes are made to the HTSUS to reflect the terms of NAFTA Article 
    306.
    
    Section 181.64(c)(1)(ii)
        With regard to interim Sec. 181.64 which concerns goods returned 
    after repair or alteration in Canada or Mexico, Customs notes that 
    paragraph (c)(1)(ii) thereof provides for a declaration by the owner, 
    importer, consignee, or agent stating that, among other things, ``the 
    goods were not previously imported in bond or admitted into a foreign 
    trade zone or imported in similar status''. This statement was included 
    in the declaration to address the exception for ``goods subject to 
    NAFTA drawback'' in U.S. Note 1 to Subchapter II of Chapter 98, HTSUS. 
    That note, which applies to the whole subchapter and thus pertains, 
    inter alia, to all articles returned after repair or alteration abroad 
    (including those goods repaired or altered in Canada or Mexico and 
    covered by Sec. 181.64), sets forth four circumstances 
    
    [[Page 46359]]
    in which articles may not be classified and thus receive the duty 
    treatment prescribed in the subchapter (under subheading 9802.00.40 or 
    9802.00.50 in the case of repaired or altered goods). The note, which 
    prior to the NAFTA did not contain the ``NAFTA drawback'' exception 
    language, was intended to ensure that goods imported into the United 
    States in certain circumstances in which duty is not paid or is later 
    refunded (for example, duty-free under a temporary importation bond or 
    with subsequent drawback of duties upon exportation), and which are 
    subsequently exported (for example, for repair or alteration) and then 
    returned, do not re-enter the commerce of the United States and again 
    escape full duty assessment by virtue of their classification in a 
    reduced-duty provision under Subchapter II. The exception in the note 
    for ``goods subject to NAFTA drawback'' was added in connection with 
    the adoption of the NAFTA in consideration of the fact that the NAFTA 
    drawback and duty-deferral provisions (see Subpart E of Part 181 below) 
    render the note unnecessary in a NAFTA context because assessment of 
    duty is required prior to exportation to Canada or Mexico under the 
    NAFTA drawback provisions (see the definition of ``NAFTA drawback'' in 
    Sec. 181.1(o) below).
        On further review, Customs believes that the language in the 
    declaration quoted above does not adequately address the basic issue 
    under U.S. Note 1 to Subchapter II of Chapter 98, HTSUS, that is, 
    whether the imported goods were subject to NAFTA drawback. In other 
    words, if the goods were subject to NAFTA drawback, then none of the 
    restrictions in the note would apply and the note would not be a bar to 
    classification of the repaired or altered goods in the subchapter. On 
    the other hand, if the goods were not subject to NAFTA drawback and one 
    of the restrictions in the note applied to the goods, then the note 
    would operate as a bar to classification of the repaired or altered 
    goods in the subchapter. Accordingly, the declaration in 
    Sec. 181.64(c)(1)(ii), as set forth below, has been modified in this 
    regard to more accurately reflect the minimum information that Customs 
    must have to ensure compliance with the applicable statutory standard.
    
    Section 181.72(a)(2)(i)
    
        In order to provide necessary flexibility to Customs and at the 
    same time reflect the method most often employed by Customs, 
    Sec. 181.72(a)(2)(i), which concerns origin verification letters, has 
    been modified as set forth below to provide that the verification 
    letter ``may be on Customs Form 28 or other appropriate format''.
    
    Section 181.72(d)(2)(ii)
    
        In Sec. 181.72(d)(2)(ii) which concerns the consequences of a 
    failure on the part of the exporter or producer of a good to respond to 
    a follow-up verification letter or questionnaire, the introductory text 
    has been modified as set forth below to provide that Customs may 
    ``consider the good to be non-originating and consequently may'' deny 
    preferential tariff treatment on the good. Customs believes that the 
    reference to non-originating status in this context is necessary if the 
    follow-up letter or questionnaire is to include the ``written 
    determination'' (that is, a determination as to whether the good is an 
    originating good) referred to in paragraphs (d)(1)(i) and 
    (d)(2)(ii)(A).
    Section 181.73(a)
    
        Section 181.73(a), which requires written notification prior to 
    conducting a verification visit in Canada or Mexico, has been modified 
    as set forth below by removing from the first sentence the words ``, 
    including a follow-up to an earlier visit,''. On further review, 
    Customs has determined that this requirement is neither reflected in 
    the text of the Agreement nor otherwise necessary since the procedural 
    safeguards afforded by the notification requirement are covered by the 
    notification given prior to the initial visit. Moreover, requiring 
    written notification (and, thus, written consent under Sec. 181.74) 
    prior to each follow-up visit would impose an unreasonable 
    administrative burden on Customs and could compromise the overall 
    effectiveness of the verification visit process.
    
    Section 181.75(a)(2)
    
        Section 181.75(a)(2) requires that a written origin determination 
    include a statement setting forth the findings of fact made in 
    connection with the origin verification and upon which the origin 
    determination is based. An exception has been added to this section as 
    set forth below to cover the case of a negative origin determination 
    where specific findings of fact cannot be made because of a failure to 
    respond to a follow-up verification letter or questionnaire. Customs 
    believes that this change is necessary because, under modified 
    Sec. 181.72(d)(2)(ii) as discussed above, the negative origin 
    determination may result merely from a failure on the part of the 
    exporter or producer of the good to respond to the follow-up letter or 
    questionnaire.
    
    Section 181.75(b)(2)(iv)
    
        Section 181.75(b)(2)(iv) as set forth below has been modified by 
    the addition of language at the end to cover cases where an exporter or 
    producer would protest the negative origin determination itself rather 
    than the liquidation of an entry (for example, where the importer's 
    NAFTA claim was made in a protest rather than as part of the entry 
    process).
    
    Section 181.76(a)
    
        Section 181.76(a) has been modified as set forth below to provide 
    that an origin determination ``may be applied'' (rather than ``shall be 
    effective'') upon issuance of the determination, and the provisions 
    regarding the negative origin determination exception to this general 
    rule have been set forth as a new paragraph (b). Customs believes that 
    these editorial changes are necessary to align on terminology used 
    elsewhere in Sec. 181.76 and to reflect the fact that a Customs 
    decision regarding a rate of duty takes effect only when actually 
    applied to a transaction (that is, in connection with the liquidation 
    of an entry).
    
    Section 181.76(c)
    
        In Sec. 181.76(c) (Sec. 181.76(b) in the interim texts), which 
    concerns the application of origin determinations where there is a 
    pattern of conduct by an exporter or producer involving false or 
    unsupported representations on Certificates of Origin that a good 
    qualifies as an originating good, the first sentence as set forth below 
    has been modified (1) to state that Customs may ``deny subsequent 
    claims for'' (rather than ``withhold'') preferential tariff treatment 
    and (2) by adding at the end the words ``, provided that advance 
    written notice of the intent to deny such claims is given to the 
    importer.'' The first change is intended both to conform the text to 
    the legal responsibility of Customs in connection with the entry and 
    liquidation process and to reflect the intent of the underlying NAFTA 
    provision which is prospective in nature. The second change is simply 
    intended to ensure that the importer will receive appropriate notice of 
    the intended action by Customs. In addition, as a consequence of the 
    replacement of the word ``withhold'' in Sec. 181.76(c), Sec. 181.71 as 
    set forth below has been modified by removing the words ``or withhold'' 
    before the words ``preferential tariff treatment''.
    
    Section 181.76(e)
    
        In Sec. 181.76(e) (Sec. 181.76(d) in the interim texts), which 
    limits the application of negative origin 
    
    [[Page 46360]]
    determinations to prior importations in certain specified 
    circumstances, the first sentence as set forth below has been modified 
    by adding at the end the words ``and on which that person did in fact 
    rely.'' Customs believes that this change is necessary because the 
    underlying NAFTA provision is founded on the principle of equitable 
    relief based on detrimental reliance, and there can be no occasion for 
    equitable relief if no reliance, and thus no detriment, has occurred.
    Section 181.76(f)
    
        Section 181.76(f) (Sec. 181.76(e) in the interim texts) has been 
    modified as set forth below (1) by replacing ``denies'' with ``proposes 
    to deny'', (2) by replacing ``effective date of the denial'' with 
    ``application of the determination'', and (3) and by adding after ``90 
    calendar days'' the words ``from the date of issuance of the 
    determination''. Customs believes that these changes are appropriate 
    for purposes of precision as regards the procedures discussed in the 
    section.
    
    Section 181.81
    
        Interim Sec. 181.81 concerned the applicability of penalties to 
    NAFTA transactions and consisted of a general statement (paragraph (a)) 
    and a specific provision regarding false certifications by U.S. 
    exporters or producers (paragraph (b)). On further review of this 
    section, Customs believes that interim paragraph (b) is redundant and 
    thus unnecessary because its purpose is already achieved by the general 
    interim paragraph (a) statement. Accordingly, Sec. 181.81 as set forth 
    below has been modified to reflect only the text contained in interim 
    paragraph (a).
    
    Section 181.100(b)(3)
    
        Section 181.100(b)(3) concerns the effective date for a 
    modification or revocation of an advance ruling and provides for a 
    delayed effective date of up to 90 days in some circumstances. In a 
    case where the delay is requested by the party to whom the ruling 
    letter was issued, the text, as set forth below, has been modified to 
    refer to reliance ``in good faith'' rather than to reliance that is 
    ``reasonable''. This change aligns the text on the standard set forth 
    in Article 509(8) of the NAFTA.
    
    Conclusion
    
        Accordingly, based on the comments received and the analysis of 
    those comments as set forth above, and based on the additional 
    considerations discussed above, Customs believes that the interim 
    regulations published in T.D. 94-1 should be adopted as a final rule 
    with certain changes thereto as discussed above and as set forth below. 
    Although this document sets forth the majority of the interim 
    regulatory amendments adopted herein as a final rule and thus both 
    republishes portions of the interim texts without change and amends 
    other portions of the interim texts to incorporate the changes 
    discussed above, it does not republish those unchanged interim 
    amendments, involving the following provisions, which were set forth in 
    T.D. 94-1 within an amendatory instruction rather than in full 
    regulatory text format: Secs. 10.36a, 10.66, 10.67, 134.1, 134.22, 
    134.23, 134.24, 134.32, 134.35, 134.43, 134.44, 174.12, 174.29, 177.0, 
    and 177.1. This document also includes an appropriate update of the 
    list of information collection approvals contained in Sec. 178.2 of the 
    Customs Regulations (19 CFR 178.2).
    
    Inapplicability of Public Notice and Comment Procedures and Delayed 
    Effective Date Requirements
    
        Pursuant to the provisions of 5 U.S.C. 553(a), public notice and 
    comment procedures are inapplicable to these final regulations because 
    they are within the foreign affairs function of the United States. In 
    addition, for the above reason and because the Parties have agreed to 
    promulgate final NAFTA implementing regulations with effect from 
    October 1, 1995, it is determined that good cause exists under the 
    provisions of 5 U.S.C. 553(d)(3) for dispensing with a 30-day delayed 
    effective date.
    
    Executive Order 12866
    
        Because this document involves a foreign affairs function of the 
    United States and implements an international agreement, it is not 
    subject to the provisions of E.O. 12866.
    
    Regulatory Flexibility Act
    
        Based on the supplementary information set forth above and because 
    these regulations implement obligations of international agreements and 
    statutory requirements relating thereto, pursuant to the provisions of 
    the Regulatory Flexibility Act (5 U.S.C. 601 et seq.) it is certified 
    that the regulations will not have a significant economic impact on a 
    substantial number of small entities. Accordingly, the regulations are 
    not subject to the regulatory analysis or other requirements of 5 
    U.S.C. 603 and 604.
    
    Paperwork Reduction Act
    
        The collection of information requirements contained in these final 
    regulations have been reviewed and approved by the Office of Management 
    and Budget in accordance with the Paperwork Reduction Act of 1980 (44 
    U.S.C. 3507) under control number 1515-0205. The estimated average 
    annual burden associated with this collection is 6.31 hours per 
    respondent or recordkeeper. Comments concerning the accuracy of this 
    burden estimate and suggestions for reducing this burden should be 
    directed to the U.S. Customs Service, Paperwork Management Branch, Room 
    6316, 1301 Constitution Avenue, NW., Washington, DC 20229, or the 
    Office of Management and Budget, Attention: Desk Officer for the 
    Department of the Treasury, Office of Information and Regulatory 
    Affairs, Washington, DC 20503.
    
    Drafting Information
    
        The principal author of this document was Francis W. Foote, Office 
    of Regulations and Rulings, U.S. Customs Service. However, personnel 
    from other offices participated in its development.
    
    List of Subjects
    
    19 CFR Part 10
    
        Alterations, Bonds, Customs duties and inspection, Exports, 
    Imports, Preference programs, Repairs, Reporting and recordkeeping 
    requirements, Trade agreements.
    
    19 CFR Part 12
    
        Canada, Customs duties and inspection, Marking, Mexico, Reporting 
    and recordkeeping requirements, Textiles and textile products, Trade 
    agreements.
    
    19 CFR Part 24
    
        Accounting, Canada, Customs duties and inspection, Financial and 
    accounting procedures, Reporting and recordkeeping requirements, Trade 
    agreements, User fees.
    
    19 CFR Part 123
    
        Canada, Customs duties and inspection, Imports, Mexico, Reporting 
    and recordkeeping requirements, Trade agreements.
    
    19 CFR Part 134
    
        Canada, Country of origin, Customs duties and inspection, Labeling, 
    Marking, Mexico, Packaging and containers, Trade agreements.
    
    19 CFR Part 162
    
        Administrative practice and procedure, Customs duties and 
    inspection, Reporting and recordkeeping requirements, Trade agreements. 
    
    
    [[Page 46361]]
    
    
    19 CFR Part 174
    
        Administrative practice and procedure, Customs duties and 
    inspection, Reporting and recordkeeping requirements, Trade agreements.
    
    19 CFR Part 177
    
        Administrative practice and procedure, Courts, Judicial 
    proceedings, Rulings, Trade agreements.
    
    19 CFR Part 178
    
        Administrative practice and procedure, Exports, Imports, Reporting 
    and recordkeeping requirements.
    
    19 CFR Part 181
    
        Administrative practice and procedure, Canada, Customs duties and 
    inspection, Exports, Imports, Mexico, Reporting and recordkeeping 
    requirements, Trade agreements (North American Free-Trade Agreement).
    
    19 CFR Part 191
    
        Canada, Commerce, Customs duties and inspection, Drawback, Mexico, 
    Reporting and recordkeeping requirements, Trade agreements.
    
    Amendments to the Regulations
    
        Accordingly, the interim rule amending Parts 10, 12, 24, 123, 134, 
    162, 174, 177, 178 and 191 (19 CFR Parts 10, 12, 24, 123, 134, 162, 
    174, 177, 178 and 191) and adding Part 181, Customs Regulations (19 CFR 
    Part 181), which was published at 58 FR 69460-69565 on December 30, 
    1993, and which was corrected at 59 FR 8852 on February 24, 1994, and 
    at 59 FR 15047 on March 31, 1994, and the interim rule amending Part 
    12, Customs Regulations (19 CFR Part 12), which was published at 59 FR 
    31519-31521 on June 20, 1994, are adopted as a final rule with certain 
    changes set forth below. The final texts, except for those amendments 
    published in T.D. 94-1 which were set forth within an amendatory 
    instruction rather than in full regulatory text format, are either 
    republished below without change or are set forth below with the 
    amendments discussed above under SUPPLEMENTARY INFORMATION.
    
    PART 10--ARTICLES CONDITIONALLY FREE, SUBJECT TO A REDUCED RATE, 
    ETC.
    
        1. The general authority citation for part 10 is revised to read as 
    follows:
    
        Authority: 19 U.S.C. 66, 1202 (General Note 20, Harmonized 
    Tariff Schedule of the United States), 1321, 1481, 1484, 1498, 1508, 
    1623, 1624, 3314;
    * * * * *
        2. Section 10.8 is amended by revising the introductory text of 
    paragraph (a) to read as follows:
    
    
    Sec. 10.8  Articles exported for repairs or alterations.
    
        (a) Except as otherwise provided for in this section and except in 
    the case of goods covered by Sec. 181.64 of this chapter, the following 
    documents shall be filed in connection with the entry of articles which 
    are returned after having been exported for repairs or alterations and 
    which are claimed to be subject to duty only on the value of the 
    repairs or alterations performed abroad under subheading 9802.00.40 or 
    9802.00.50, Harmonized Tariff Schedule of the United States (HTSUS):
    * * * * *
        3. The last sentence of Sec. 10.31(f) is republished to read as 
    follows:
    
    
    Sec. 10.31  Entry; bond.
    
    * * * * *
        (f) * * * In addition, notwithstanding any other provision of this 
    paragraph, in the case of professional equipment necessary for carrying 
    out the business activity, trade or profession of a business person, 
    equipment for the press or for sound or television broadcasting, 
    cinematographic equipment, articles imported for sports purposes and 
    articles intended for display or demonstration, if brought into the 
    United States by a resident of Canada or Mexico and entered under 
    Chapter 98, Subchapter XIII, HTSUS, no bond or other security shall be 
    required if the entered article is a good originating in Canada or 
    Mexico within the meaning of General Note 12, HTSUS.
    * * * * *
    
    PART 12--SPECIAL CLASSES OF MERCHANDISE
    
        1. The authority citation for part 12 continues to read in part as 
    follows:
    
        Authority: 5 U.S.C. 301; 19 U.S.C. 66, 1202 (General Note 20, 
    Harmonized Tariff Schedule of the United States (HTSUS)), 1624;
    * * * * *
        2. Section 12.132 is republished to read as follows:
    
    
    Sec. 12.132  Textile and apparel goods under the North American Free 
    Trade Agreement.
    
        (a) Country of origin declaration. The provisions of Sec. 12.130(f) 
    of this part regarding submission of a country of origin declaration 
    shall apply to all textile and apparel goods which are subject to the 
    provisions of Annex 300-B of the North American Free Trade Agreement 
    (NAFTA). Although a separate country of origin declaration shall not be 
    required for such goods for NAFTA purposes, the following additional 
    requirements shall apply for purposes of this section:
        (1) All commercial importations of textile and apparel goods shall 
    be accompanied by the appropriate declaration;
        (2) A declaration by each U.S., Canadian, and/or Mexican 
    manufacturer or producer of the goods, or by the exporter of the goods 
    if a declaration cannot be obtained from the manufacturer or producer, 
    and, if there are multiple manufacturers or producers, a separate 
    declaration by each manufacturer, producer or exporter, shall be 
    furnished by the importer. Packaging operations shall not be considered 
    manufacture or production for purposes of this paragraph; and
        (3) If the district director is unable to determine the country of 
    origin of the goods because the information contained in a declaration 
    is incomplete, the shipment to which that declaration pertains shall 
    not be entitled to preferential tariff treatment or any other benefit 
    under the NAFTA for which it would otherwise be eligible.
        (b) Certificate of Eligibility. In connection with a claim for 
    NAFTA preferential tariff treatment involving non-originating textile 
    and apparel goods subject to the tariff preference level provisions of 
    Appendix 6.B. to Annex 300-B of the NAFTA and Additional U.S. Notes 3 
    through 6 to Section XI, Harmonized Tariff Schedule of the United 
    States, the importer shall submit to Customs a Certificate of 
    Eligibility covering the goods. The Certificate of Eligibility shall be 
    properly completed and signed by an authorized official of the Canadian 
    or Mexican government and shall be presented to Customs at the time the 
    claim for preferential tariff treatment is filed under Sec. 181.21 of 
    this chapter. Failure to timely submit the required Certificate of 
    Eligibility will result in a denial of the claim.
    
    PART 24--CUSTOMS FINANCIAL AND ACCOUNTING PROCEDURE
    
        1. The general authority citation for Part 24 is revised to read as 
    follows:
    
        Authority: 5 U.S.C. 301; 19 U.S.C. 58a-58c, 66, 1202 (General 
    Note 20, Harmonized Tariff Schedule of the United States), 1624; 31 
    U.S.C. 9701.
    * * * * *
        2. In Sec. 24.22, paragraph (g)(1), the introductory text of 
    paragraph (g)(2)(i)(A), and paragraph (g)(2)(iv) are republished to 
    read as follows: 
    
    [[Page 46362]]
    
    
    
    Sec. 24.22  Fees for certain services.
    
    * * * * *
        (g) Fee for arrival of passengers aboard commercial vessels and 
    commercial aircraft.
        (1) Fee. Except as provided in paragraph (g)(2) of this section:
        (i) For the period from January 1, 1994 through September 30, 1997, 
    a fee of $6.50 shall be collected and remitted to Customs for services 
    provided in connection with the arrival of each passenger aboard a 
    commercial vessel or commercial aircraft from outside the customs 
    territory of the United States; and
        (ii) Commencing on October 1, 1997, a fee of $5 shall be collected 
    and remitted to Customs for services provided in connection with the 
    arrival of each passenger aboard a commercial vessel or commercial 
    aircraft from a place outside the United States.
        (2) * * *
        (i)(A) Except during the period from January 1, 1994 through 
    September 30, 1997, persons whose journey:
    * * * * *
        (iv) Except during the period from January 1, 1994 through 
    September 30, 1997, persons departing from and returning to the United 
    States without having touched a foreign port or place;
    * * * * *
        3. Section 24.23(c)(3) is republished to read as follows:
    
    
    Sec. 24.23  Fees for processing merchandise.
    
    * * * * *
        (c) * * *
        (3) The ad valorem, surcharge, and specific fees provided for under 
    paragraphs (b)(1) and (b)(2)(i) of this section shall not apply either 
    to goods originating in Canada within the meaning of General Note 9, 
    HTSUS, or to goods originating in Canada within the meaning of General 
    Note 12, HTSUS, where such goods qualify to be marked as goods of 
    Canada pursuant to Annex 311 of the North American Free Trade Agreement 
    and without regard to whether the goods are marked. Where originating 
    goods as described in the preceding sentence are entered or released 
    with other goods that are not originating goods, the ad valorem, 
    surcharge, and specific fees shall apply only to those goods which are 
    not originating goods.
    * * * * *
    
    PART 123--CUSTOMS RELATIONS WITH CANADA AND MEXICO
    
        1. The authority citation for part 123 continues to read in part as 
    follows:
    
        Authority: 19 U.S.C. 66, 1202 (General Note 20, Harmonized 
    Tariff Schedule of the United States (HTSUS)), 1431, 1433, 1624.
    * * * * *
        2. The last sentence of Sec. 123.0 is republished to read as 
    follows:
    
    
    Sec. 123.0  Scope.
    
        * * * Regulations pertaining to the treatment of goods from Canada 
    or Mexico under the North American Free Trade Agreement are contained 
    in part 181 of this chapter.
    
    PART 134--COUNTRY OF ORIGIN MARKING
    
        1. The authority citation for part 134 is revised to read as 
    follows:
    
        Authority: 5 U.S.C. 301; 19 U.S.C. 66, 1202 (General Note 20, 
    Harmonized Tariff Schedule of the United States), 1304, 1624.
    
        2. The last sentence of Sec. 134.0 is republished to read as 
    follows:
    
    
    Sec. 134.0  Scope.
    
        * * * Provisions regarding the review and appeal rights of 
    exporters and producers resulting from adverse North American Free 
    Trade Agreement marking decisions are contained in subpart J of part 
    181 of this chapter.
        3. In Sec. 134.1, the last sentence of paragraph (d)(2) and 
    paragraphs (g), (h), (i) and (j) are republished, and a new paragraph 
    (k) is added, to read as follows:
    
    
    Sec. 134.1  Definitions.
    
    * * * * *
        (d) * * *
        (2) * * * With respect to a good of a NAFTA country, if the 
    manufacturing process does not result in one of the changes prescribed 
    in the NAFTA Marking Rules as effecting a change in the article's 
    country of origin, the consumer who purchases the article after 
    processing will be regarded as the ultimate purchaser.
    * * * * *
        (g) Good of a NAFTA country. A ``good of a NAFTA country'' is an 
    article for which the country of origin is Canada, Mexico or the United 
    States as determined under the NAFTA Marking Rules.
        (h) NAFTA. ``NAFTA'' means the North American Free Trade Agreement 
    entered into by the United States, Canada and Mexico on December 17, 
    1992.
        (i) NAFTA country. ``NAFTA country'' means the territory of the 
    United States, Canada or Mexico, as defined in Annex 201.1 of the 
    NAFTA.
        (j) NAFTA Marking Rules. The ``NAFTA Marking Rules'' are the rules 
    promulgated for purposes of determining whether a good is a good of a 
    NAFTA country.
        (k) Conspicuous. ``Conspicuous'' means capable of being easily seen 
    with normal handling of the article or container.
        4. Section 134.22(d) is republished to read as follows:
    
    
    Sec. 134.22  General rules for marking of containers or holders.
    
    * * * * *
        (d) Usual containers--(1) ``Usual container'' defined. For purposes 
    of this subpart, a usual container means the container in which a good 
    will ordinarily reach its ultimate purchaser. Containers which are not 
    included in the price of the goods with which they are sold, or which 
    impart the essential character to the whole, or which have significant 
    uses, or lasting value independent of the contents, will generally not 
    be regarded as usual containers. However, the fact that a container is 
    sturdy and capable of repeated use with its contents does not preclude 
    it from being considered a usual container so long as it is the type of 
    container in which its contents are ordinarily sold. A usual container 
    may be any type of container, including one which is specially shaped 
    or fitted to contain a specific good or set of goods such as a camera 
    case or an eyeglass case, or packing, storage and transportation 
    materials.
        (2) A good of a NAFTA country which is a usual container. A good of 
    a NAFTA country which is a usual container, whether or not disposable 
    and whether or not imported empty or filled, is not required to be 
    marked with its own country of origin. If imported empty, the importer 
    must be able to provide satisfactory evidence to Customs at the time of 
    importation that it will be used only as a usual container (that it is 
    to be filled with goods after importation and that such container is of 
    a type in which these goods ordinarily reach the ultimate purchaser).
    * * * * *
        5. In Sec. 134.32, paragraphs (p) and (q) are republished to read 
    as follows:
    
    
    Sec. 134.32  General exceptions to marking requirements.
    
    * * * * *
        (p) Goods of a NAFTA country which are original works of art; and
        (q) Goods of a NAFTA country which are provided for in subheading 
    6904.10 or heading 8541 or 8542 of the Harmonized Tariff Schedule of 
    the United States (HTSUS) (19 U.S.C. 1202).
    * * * * *
        6. Section 134.35(b) is republished to read as follows: 
    
    [[Page 46363]]
    
    
    
    Sec. 134.35  Articles substantially changed by manufacture.
    
    * * * * *
        (b) Goods of a NAFTA country. A good of a NAFTA country which is to 
    be processed in the United States in a manner that would result in the 
    good becoming a good of the United States under the NAFTA Marking Rules 
    is excepted from marking. Unless the good is processed by the importer 
    or on its behalf, the outermost container of the good shall be marked 
    in accord with this part.
        7. Section 134.45(a) is republished to read as follows:
    
    
    Sec. 134.45  Approved markings of country name.
    
        (a) Language. (1) Except as otherwise provided in paragraph (a)(2) 
    of this section, the markings required by this part shall include the 
    full English name of the country of origin, unless another marking to 
    indicate the English name of the country of origin is specifically 
    authorized by the Commissioner of Customs. Notice of acceptable 
    markings other than the full English name of the country of origin 
    shall be published in the Federal Register and the Customs Bulletin.
        (2) A good of a NAFTA country may be marked with the name of the 
    country of origin in English, French or Spanish.
    * * * * *
    
    PART 162--RECORDKEEPING, INSPECTION, SEARCH, AND SEIZURE
    
        1. The authority citation for part 162 continues to read in part as 
    follows:
    
        Authority: 5 U.S.C. 301; 19 U.S.C. 66, 1624.
    * * * * *
        2. The last sentence of Sec. 162.0 is republished to read as 
    follows:
    
    
    Sec. 162.0  Scope.
    
        * * * Additional provisions concerning records maintenance and 
    examination applicable to U.S. importers, exporters and producers under 
    the North American Free Trade Agreement are contained in part 181 of 
    this chapter.
    
    PART 174--PROTESTS
    
        1. The authority citation for Part 174 continues to read as 
    follows:
    
        Authority: 19 U.S.C. 66, 1514, 1515, 1624.
    
        2. The last sentence of Sec. 174.0 is republished to read as 
    follows:
    
    
    Sec. 174.0  Scope.
    
        * * * Provisions applicable to Canadian and Mexican exporters and 
    producers regarding administrative review and appeal of adverse marking 
    decisions under the North American Free Trade Agreement are contained 
    in part 181 of this chapter.
        3. Section 174.12(a)(5) is republished to read as follows:
    
    
    Sec. 174.12  Filing of protests.
    
        (a) * * *
        (5) With respect to a determination of origin under subpart G of 
    part 181 of this chapter, any exporter or producer of the merchandise 
    subject to that determination, if the exporter or producer completed 
    and signed a Certificate of Origin covering the merchandise as provided 
    for in Sec. 181.11(a) of this chapter; or
    * * * * *
        4. Section 174.12(e)(2) is revised to read as follows:
    
    
    Sec. 174.12 Filing of protests.
    
    * * * * *
        (e) * * *
        (2) The date of the decision, involving neither a liquidation nor 
    reliquidation, as to which the protest is made (e.g., the date of an 
    exaction, the date of written notice excluding merchandise from entry 
    or delivery under any provision of the Customs laws, the date of a 
    refusal to reliquidate under section 520(c)(1) of the Tariff Act of 
    1930, as amended, or the date of written notice of a denial of a claim 
    filed under section 520(d) of the Tariff Act of 1930, as amended); or
    * * * * * 15. Section 174.15 is republished to read as follows:
    
    
    Sec. 174.15  Consolidation of protests filed by different parties.
    
        (a) General. Subject to paragraph (b) of this section, separate 
    protests relating to one category of merchandise covered by an entry 
    shall be considered as a single protest whether filed as a single 
    protest or filed as separate protests relating to the same category by 
    one or more parties in interest or an authorized agent.
        (b) NAFTA transactions. The following rules shall apply to a 
    consolidation of multiple protests concerning a determination of origin 
    under subpart G of part 181 of this chapter if one of the protests is 
    filed by or on behalf of an exporter or producer described in 
    Sec. 174.12(a)(5) of this part:
        (1) If consolidation under paragraph (a) of this section is 
    pursuant to specific written requests for consolidation received from 
    all interested parties who filed protests under this part, those 
    interested parties shall be deemed to have waived their rights to 
    confidentiality as regards business information within the meaning of 
    Sec. 181.121 of this chapter. In such cases, a separate notice of the 
    decision will be issued to each interested party under this part but 
    without regard to whether the notice reflects confidential business 
    information obtained from one but not all of those interested parties.
        (2) If consolidation under paragraph (a) of this section is done by 
    the district director in the absence of specific written requests for 
    consolidation from all interested parties who filed protests under this 
    part, no waiver of confidentiality by those interested parties shall be 
    deemed to have taken place. In such cases, a separate notice of the 
    decision will be issued to each interested party and each such notice 
    shall adhere to the principle of confidentiality set forth in 
    Sec. 181.121 of this chapter.
    
    PART 178--APPROVAL OF INFORMATION COLLECTION REQUIREMENTS
    
        1. The authority citation for part 178 is revised to read as 
    follows:
    
        Authority: 5 U.S.C. 301; 19 U.S.C. 1624; 44 U.S.C. 3501 et seq.
    
        2. Section 178.2 is amended by adding new listings to the table in 
    numerical order to read as follows:
    
    
    Sec. 178.2  Listing of OMB control numbers.
    
                                                                            
    
    [[Page 46364]]
    ------------------------------------------------------------------------
                                                                 OMB control
          19 CFR section                  Description                No.    
    ------------------------------------------------------------------------
                                                                            
                      *        *        *        *        *                 
    Sec.  12.132..............  Country of origin declaration      1515-0205
                                 covering textile and apparel               
                                 goods under the North American             
                                 Free Trade Agreement.                      
                                                                            
                      *        *        *        *        *                 
    Sec.  181.11..............  Certificate of Origin for          1515-0205
                                 purposes of the North American             
                                 Free Trade Agreement.                      
    Secs.  181.22 and 181.32..  Claim for preferential tariff      1515-0205
                                 treatment under the North                  
                                 American Free Trade Agreement.             
    Secs.  181.47 and 181.53..  Claim for refund, waiver or        1515-0205
                                 reduction of duty under the                
                                 drawback and duty deferral                 
                                 provisions of the North                    
                                 American Free Trade Agreement.             
    Sec.  181.64..............  Claim for duty-free or reduced-    1515-0205
                                 duty treatment on repaired or              
                                 altered goods under the North              
                                 American Free Trade Agreement.             
    Sec.  181.72..............  Submission of information in       1515-0205
                                 connection with origin                     
                                 verifications under the North              
                                 American Free Trade Agreement.             
    Sec.  181.82..............  Statement accompanying             1515-0205
                                 corrected declaration or                   
                                 notification of incorrect                  
                                 certification under the North              
                                 American Free Trade Agreement.             
    Secs.  181.93-181.96 and    Submission of information in       1515-0205
     181.102.                    connection with requests for               
                                 issuance or review of advance              
                                 rulings under the North                    
                                 American Free Trade Agreement.             
    Secs.  181.113, 181.115     Submission of information in       1515-0205
     and 181.116.                connection with the review and             
                                 appeal of adverse marking                  
                                 decisions under the North                  
                                 American Free Trade Agreement.             
    Sec.  181.131.............  Claim for preferential tariff      1515-0205
                                 treatment under the North                  
                                 American Free Trade Agreement.             
                                                                            
                      *        *        *        *        *                 
    ------------------------------------------------------------------------
    
    
        1. Part 181 is revised to read as follows:
    
    PART 181--NORTH AMERICAN FREE TRADE AGREEMENT
    
    Sec.
    181.0  Scope.
    
    Subpart A--General Provisions
    
    181.1  Definitions.
    
    Subpart B--Export Requirements
    
    181.11  Certificate of Origin.
    181.12  Maintenance and availability of records.
    181.13  Failure to comply with requirements.
    Subpart C--Import Requirements
    
    181.21  Filing of claim for preferential tariff treatment upon 
    importation.
    181.22  Maintenance of records and submission of Certificate by 
    importer.
    181.23  Effect of noncompliance; failure to provide documentation 
    regarding transshipment.
    
    Subpart D--Post-Importation Duty Refund Claims
    
    181.31  Right to make post-importation claim and refund duties.
    181.32  Filing procedures.
    181.33  Customs processing procedures.
    
    Subpart E--Restrictions on Drawback and Duty-Deferral Programs
    
    181.41  Applicability.
    181.42  Duties and fees not subject to drawback.
    181.43  Eligible goods subject to drawback.
    181.44  Calculation of drawback.
    181.45  Goods eligible for full drawback.
    181.46  Time and place for filing drawback claim.
    181.47  Completion of claim for drawback.
    181.48  Person entitled to receive drawback.
    181.49  Retention of records.
    181.50  Liquidation and payment of drawback claims.
    181.51  Prevention of improper payment of claims.
    181.52  Subsequent claims for preferential tariff treatment.
    181.53  Waiver or reduction of duty under duty-deferral programs.
    181.54  Verification of claim for drawback, waiver or reduction of 
    duties.
    
    Subpart F--Commercial Samples and Goods Returned After Repair or 
    Alteration
    
    181.61  Applicability.
    181.62  Commercial samples of negligible value.
    181.63  [Reserved]
    181.64  Goods re-entered after repair or alteration in Canada or 
    Mexico.
    
    Subpart G--Origin Verifications and Determinations
    
    181.71  Denial of preferential tariff treatment dependent on origin 
    verification and determination.
    181.72  Verification scope and method.
    181.73  Notification of verification visit.
    181.74  Verification visit procedures.
    181.75  Issuance of origin determination.
    181.76  Application of origin determinations.
    
    Subpart H--Penalties
    
    181.81  Applicability to NAFTA transactions.
    181.82  Exceptions to application of penalties.
    
    Subpart I--Advance Ruling Procedures
    
    181.91  Applicability.
    181.92  Definitions and general NAFTA advance ruling practice.
    181.93  Submission of advance ruling requests.
    181.94  Nonconforming requests for advance rulings.
    181.95  Oral discussion of issues.
    181.96  Change in status of transaction.
    181.97  Withdrawal of NAFTA advance ruling requests.
    181.98  Situations in which no NAFTA advance ruling may be issued.
    181.99  Issuance of NAFTA advance rulings or other advice.
    181.100  Effect of NAFTA advance ruling letters; modification and 
    revocation.
    181.101  Publication of decisions.
    181.102  Administrative and judicial review of advance rulings.
    
    Subpart J--Review and Appeal of Adverse Marking Decisions
    
    181.111  Applicability.
    181.112  Definitions.
    181.113  Request for Basis of Adverse Marking Decision.
    181.114  Customs response to request.
    181.115  Intervention in importer's protest.
    181.116  Petition regarding adverse marking decision.
    
    Subpart K--Confidentiality of Business Information
    
    181.121  Maintenance of confidentiality.
    181.122  Disclosure to government authorities.
    
    Subpart L--Rules of Origin
    
    181.131  Rules of origin.
    
    Appendix to Part 181--Rules of Origin Regulations
    
        Authority: 19 U.S.C. 66, 1202 (General Note 20, Harmonized 
    Tariff Schedule of the United States), 1624, 3314.
    Sec. 181.0  Scope.
    
        This part implements the duty preference and related Customs 
    
    [[Page 46365]]
        provisions applicable to imported goods under the North American Free 
    Trade Agreement (the NAFTA) entered into on December 17, 1992, and 
    under the North American Free Trade Agreement Implementation Act (107 
    Stat. 2057) (the Act). Except as otherwise specified in this part, the 
    procedures and other requirements set forth in this part are in 
    addition to the Customs procedures and requirements of general 
    application contained elsewhere in this chapter. Additional provisions 
    implementing certain aspects of the NAFTA and the Act are contained in 
    parts 10, 12, 24, 134 and 174 of this chapter.
    
    Subpart A--General Provisions
    
    
    Sec. 181.1  Definitions.
    
        As used in this part, the following terms shall have the meanings 
    indicated unless either the context in which they are used requires a 
    different meaning or a different definition is prescribed for a 
    particular subpart, section or other portion of this part:
        (a) Canada. Canada, when used in a geographical rather than 
    governmental context, means the territory of Canada as defined in Annex 
    201.1 of the NAFTA.
        (b) Commercial importation. Commercial importation means the 
    importation of a good into the United States, Canada or Mexico for the 
    purpose of sale, or any commercial, industrial or other like use.
        (c) Customs administration. Customs administration means the 
    competent authority that is responsible under the law of the United 
    States, Canada or Mexico for the administration of its customs laws and 
    regulations.
        (d) Customs duty. Customs duty means any customs or import duty and 
    a charge of any kind imposed in connection with the importation of a 
    good, including any form of surtax or surcharge in connection with such 
    importation, other than any:
        (1) Charge equivalent to an internal tax imposed consistently with 
    Article III:2 of the General Agreement on Tariffs and Trade, or any 
    equivalent provision of a successor agreement to which the United 
    States, Canada and Mexico are party, in respect of like, directly 
    competitive or substitutable goods of the United States, Canada or 
    Mexico, or in respect of goods from which the imported good has been 
    manufactured or produced in whole or in part;
        (2) Antidumping or countervailing duty that is applied pursuant to 
    the domestic law of the United States, Canada or Mexico and that is not 
    applied inconsistently with Chapter Nineteen of the NAFTA;
        (3) Fee or other charge in connection with importation commensurate 
    with the cost of services rendered;
        (4) Premium offered or collected on an imported good arising out of 
    any tendering system in respect of the administration of quantitative 
    import restrictions, tariff rate quotas or tariff preference levels; 
    and
        (5) Fee applied pursuant to section 22 of the U.S. Agricultural 
    Adjustment Act, subject to the provisions of Chapter Seven of the 
    NAFTA.
        (e) Determination of origin. Determination of origin means a 
    determination as to whether a good qualifies as a good originating in 
    the United States, Canada and/or Mexico under the rules set forth in 
    General Note 12, HTSUS, and in the appendix to this part.
        (f) Exporter. Exporter means an exporter located, and required 
    under this part to maintain records regarding exportations of a good, 
    in the United States, Canada or Mexico.
        (g) Generally Accepted Accounting Principles. Generally Accepted 
    Accounting Principles means the recognized consensus or substantial 
    authoritative support in the United States, Canada or Mexico with 
    respect to the recording of revenues, expenses, costs, assets and 
    liabilities, the disclosure of information and the preparation of 
    financial statements. Generally Accepted Accounting Principles under 
    this definition may encompass broad guidelines of general application 
    as well as detailed standards, practices and procedures.
        (h) HTSUS. HTSUS means the Harmonized Tariff Schedule of the United 
    States.
        (i) Importer. Importer means an importer located, and required 
    under this part to maintain records regarding importations of a good, 
    in the United States, Canada or Mexico.
        (j) Intermediate material. Intermediate material means an 
    ``intermediate material'' as defined in the appendix to this part.
        (k) Marking Rules. Marking Rules means the ``NAFTA Marking Rules'' 
    as defined in Sec. 134.1(j) of this chapter.
        (l) Measure. Measure means any law, regulation, procedure, 
    requirement or practice.
        (m) Mexico. Mexico, when used in a geographical rather than 
    governmental context, means the territory of Mexico as defined in Annex 
    201.1 of the NAFTA.
        (n) NAFTA. NAFTA means the North American Free Trade Agreement 
    approved by the Congress under section 101(a) of the North American 
    Free Trade Agreement Implementation Act (107 Stat. 2057).
        (o) NAFTA drawback. NAFTA drawback means any drawback, waiver or 
    reduction of U.S. customs duty provided for in subpart E of this part.
        (p) Net cost of a good. Net cost of a good means the ``net cost of 
    a good'' as defined in the appendix to this part.
        (q) Originating. Originating, when used with regard to a good or a 
    material, means a good or material which qualifies as originating in 
    the United States, Canada and/or Mexico under the rules set forth in 
    General Note 12, HTSUS, and in the appendix to this part.
        (r) Person. Person means a natural person or an enterprise.
        (s) Preferential tariff treatment. Preferential tariff treatment 
    means the duty rate applicable to an originating good or to a good to 
    which Appendix 6.B. to Annex 300-B of the NAFTA applies.
         (t) Producer. Producer means a producer as defined in the appendix 
    to this part.
         (u) Production. Production means production as defined in the 
    appendix to this part.
         (v) Transaction value. Transaction value means transaction value 
    as defined in the appendix to this part.
         (w) United States. United States, when used in a geographical 
    rather than governmental context, means the territory of the United 
    States as defined in Annex 201.1 of the NAFTA.
         (x) Used. Used means used as defined in the appendix to this part.
         (y) Value. Value means the value of a good or material for 
    purposes of calculating customs duties or for purposes of applying the 
    provisions of the appendix to this part.
    
    Subpart B--Export Requirements
    
    
    Sec. 181.11  Certificate of Origin.
    
         (a) General. A Certificate of Origin shall be employed to certify 
    that a good being exported either from the United States into Canada or 
    Mexico or from Canada or Mexico into the United States qualifies as an 
    originating good for purposes of preferential tariff treatment under 
    the NAFTA.
         (b) Preparation of Certificate in the United States. An exporter 
    in the United States who completes and signs a Certificate of Origin 
    for the purpose set forth in paragraph (a) of this section shall use 
    Customs Form 434 or such other medium or format as approved by the 
    Canadian or Mexican customs administration for that purpose. Where the 
    U.S. exporter is not the producer of the good, that exporter may 
    complete and sign a Certificate on the basis of: 
    
    [[Page 46366]]
    
         (1) Its knowledge of whether the good qualifies as an originating 
    good;
         (2) Its reasonable reliance on the producer's written 
    representation that the good qualifies as an originating good; or
        (3) A completed and signed Certificate for the good voluntarily 
    provided to the exporter by the producer.
         (c) Submission of Certificate to Customs. An exporter in the 
    United States, and a producer in the United States who has voluntarily 
    provided a copy of a Certificate of Origin to that exporter pursuant to 
    paragraph (b)(3) of this section, shall provide a copy of the 
    Certificate to Customs upon request.
         (d) Notification of errors in Certificate. An exporter or producer 
    in the United States who has completed and signed a Certificate of 
    Origin, and who has reason to believe that the Certificate contains 
    information that is not correct, shall within 30 calendar days after 
    the date of discovery of the error notify in writing all persons to 
    whom the Certificate was given by the exporter or producer of any 
    change that could affect the accuracy or validity of the Certificate.
    
    
    Sec. 181.12  Maintenance and availability of records.
    
         (a) Maintenance of records--(1) General. An exporter or producer 
    in the United States who completes and signs a Certificate of Origin 
    shall maintain in the United States, for five years after the date on 
    which the Certificate was signed, all records relating to the origin of 
    a good for which preferential tariff treatment may be claimed in Canada 
    or Mexico, including records associated with:
         (i) The purchase of, cost of, value of, and payment for, the good 
    that is exported from the United States;
         (ii) The purchase of, cost of, value of, and payment for, all 
    materials, including indirect materials, used in the production of the 
    good that is exported from the United States; and
         (iii) The production of the good in the form in which the good is 
    exported from the United States.
         (2) Method of maintenance. The records referred to in paragraph 
    (a) of this section shall be maintained in accordance with the 
    Generally Accepted Accounting Principles applied in the United States 
    and may be maintained in hard-copy form, on microfilm or microfiche or 
    in automated record storage devices (for example, magnetic discs and 
    tapes) if associated computer programs are available to facilitate 
    retrieval of the data in a usable form.
         (b) Availability of records--(1) To Customs. For purposes of 
    determining compliance with the provisions of this part, the records 
    required to be maintained under this section shall be made available 
    for examination and inspection by the port director or other 
    appropriate Customs officer in the same manner as provided in 
    Sec. 162.1d of this chapter in the case of U.S. importer records.
         (2) To the Canadian or Mexican customs administration. If a U.S. 
    exporter or producer receives notification of, and consents to, an 
    origin verification visit by the Canadian or Mexican customs 
    administration under Article 506 of the NAFTA (see Sec. 181.74(e) of 
    this part), such consent shall constitute agreement by the U.S. 
    exporter or producer to make available to an officer of that customs 
    administration all records required to be maintained under this section 
    and to provide facilities for the inspection thereof. If, during the 
    course of an origin verification of a U.S. producer, the Canadian or 
    Mexican customs administration finds that the U.S. producer has failed 
    to maintain its records in accordance with the Generally Accepted 
    Accounting Principles applied in the United States, that customs 
    administration will so inform the U.S. producer in writing and will 
    give the U.S. producer 60 calendar days to conform the records to those 
    Principles. If a U.S. exporter or producer fails to maintain records or 
    make records available to the Canadian or Mexican customs 
    administration in accordance with the provisions of this section, or if 
    a U.S. producer fails to conform its records to Generally Accepted 
    Accounting Principles as provided in this paragraph, the Canadian or 
    Mexican customs administration may deny preferential tariff treatment 
    to the good that is the subject of the verification visit.
    
    
    Sec. 181.13  Failure to comply with requirements.
    
         The port director may apply such measures as the circumstances may 
    warrant where an exporter or a producer in the United States fails to 
    comply with any requirement of this part.
    
    Subpart C--Import Requirements
    
    
    Sec. 181.21  Filing of claim for preferential tariff treatment upon 
    importation.
    
         (a) Declaration. In connection with a claim for preferential 
    tariff treatment for a good under the NAFTA, the U.S. importer shall 
    make a written declaration that the good qualifies for such treatment. 
    The written declaration may be made by including on the entry summary, 
    or equivalent documentation, the symbol ``CA'' for a good of Canada, or 
    the symbol ``MX'' for a good of Mexico, as a prefix to the subheading 
    of the HTSUS under which each qualifying good is classified. Except as 
    otherwise provided in Sec. 181.22 of this part and except in the case 
    of a good to which Appendix 6.B. to Annex 300-B of the NAFTA applies 
    (see, however, Sec. 12.132 of this chapter), the declaration shall be 
    based on a complete and properly executed original Certificate of 
    Origin, or copy thereof, which is in the possession of the importer and 
    which covers the good being imported.
         (b) Corrected declaration. If, after making the declaration 
    required under paragraph (a) of this section or under Sec. 181.32(b)(2) 
    of this part, the U.S. importer has reason to believe that a 
    Certificate of Origin on which a declaration was based contains 
    information that is not correct, the importer shall within 30 calendar 
    days after the date of discovery of the error make a corrected 
    declaration and pay any duties that may be due. A corrected declaration 
    shall be effected by submission of a letter or other written statement 
    to the Customs office where the original declaration was filed.
    
    
    Sec. 181.22  Maintenance of records and submission of Certificate by 
    importer.
    
         (a) Maintenance of records. Each importer claiming preferential 
    tariff treatment for a good imported into the United States shall 
    maintain in the United States, for five years after the date of entry 
    of the good, all documentation relating to the importation of the good. 
    Such documentation shall include a copy of the Certificate of Origin 
    and any other relevant records as specified in Sec. 162.1a(a) of this 
    chapter.
         (b) Submission of Certificate. An importer who claims preferential 
    tariff treatment on a good under Sec. 181.21 of this part shall 
    provide, at the request of the port director, a copy of each 
    Certificate of Origin pertaining to the good which is in the possession 
    of the importer. A Certificate of Origin submitted to Customs under 
    this paragraph or under Sec. 181.32(b)(3) of this part:
         (1) Shall be on Customs Form 434, including privately-printed 
    copies thereof, or on such other form as approved by the Canadian or 
    Mexican customs administration, or, as an alternative to Customs Form 
    434 or such other approved form, in an approved computerized format or 
    such other medium or format as is approved by the Office of Field 
    Operations, U.S. Customs Service, Washington, DC 20229. An alternative 
    format must contain the 
    
    [[Page 46367]]
    same information and certification set forth on Customs Form 434;
         (2) Shall be signed by the exporter or by the exporter's 
    authorized agent having knowledge of the relevant facts;
         (3) Shall be completed either in the English language or in the 
    language of the country from which the good is exported. If the 
    Certificate is completed in a language other than English, the importer 
    shall also provide to the port director, upon request, a written 
    English translation thereof;
         (4) Shall be accepted by Customs for four years after the date on 
    which the Certificate was signed by the exporter or producer; and
        (5) May be applicable to:
        (i) A single importation of a good into the United States, 
    including a single shipment that results in the filing of one or more 
    entries and a series of shipments that results in the filing of one 
    entry; or
        (ii) Multiple importations of identical goods into the United 
    States that occur within a specified period, not exceeding 12 months, 
    set out therein by the exporter or producer.
        (c) Acceptance of Certificate. A Certificate of Origin shall be 
    accepted by the port director as valid for the purpose set forth in 
    Sec. 181.11(a) of this part, provided that the Certificate is 
    completed, signed and dated in accordance with the requirements of 
    paragraph (b) of this section. If the port director determines that a 
    Certificate is illegible or defective or has not been completed in 
    accordance with paragraph (b) of this section, the importer shall be 
    given a period of not less than five working days to submit a corrected 
    Certificate. Acceptance of a Certificate will result in the granting of 
    preferential tariff treatment to the imported good unless, in 
    connection with an origin verification initiated under subpart G of 
    this part or based on a pattern of conduct within the meaning of 
    Sec. 181.76(c) of this part, the port director determines that the 
    imported good does not qualify as an originating good or should not be 
    accorded such treatment for any other reason as specifically provided 
    for elsewhere in this part. A Certificate shall not be accepted in 
    connection with subsequent importations during a period referred to in 
    paragraph (b)(5)(ii) of this section if, based on an origin 
    verification under subpart G of this part, the port director determined 
    that a previously imported identical good covered by the Certificate 
    did not qualify as an originating good.
        (d) Certificate not required--(1) General. Except as otherwise 
    provided in paragraph (d)(2) of this section, an importer shall not be 
    required to have a Certificate of Origin in his possession for:
        (i) An importation of a good for which the port director has in 
    writing waived the requirement for a Certificate of Origin because the 
    port director is otherwise satisfied that the good qualifies for 
    preferential tariff treatment under the NAFTA;
        (ii) A non-commercial importation of a good; or
        (iii) A commercial importation of a good whose value does not 
    exceed US$2,500, provided that, unless waived by the port director, the 
    producer, exporter, importer or authorized agent includes on, or 
    attaches to, the invoice or other document accompanying the shipment 
    the following signed statement:
    
        I hereby certify that the good covered by this shipment 
    qualifies as an originating good for purposes of preferential tariff 
    treatment under the NAFTA.
    
    Check One:
    ( ) Producer
    ( ) Exporter
    ( ) Importer
    ( ) Agent
    
    ----------------------------------------------------------------------
    Name
    
    ----------------------------------------------------------------------
    Title
    
    ----------------------------------------------------------------------
    Address
    
    ----------------------------------------------------------------------
    Signature and Date
    
        (2) Exception. If the port director determines that an importation 
    described in paragraph (d)(1) of this section forms part of a series of 
    importations that may reasonably be considered to have been undertaken 
    or arranged for the purpose of avoiding a certification requirement set 
    forth in this part, the port director shall notify the importer in 
    writing that for that importation the importer must have in his 
    possession a valid Certificate of Origin to support the claim for 
    preferential tariff treatment. The importer shall have 30 calendar days 
    from the date of the written notice to obtain a valid Certificate, and 
    a failure to timely obtain the Certificate will result in denial of the 
    claim for preferential tariff treatment. For purposes of paragraph 
    (d)(2) of this section, a ``series of importations'' means two or more 
    entries covering goods arriving on the same day from the same exporter 
    and consigned to the same person.
    Sec. 181.23  Effect of noncompliance; failure to provide documentation 
    regarding transshipment.
    
        (a) Effect of noncompliance. If the importer fails to comply with 
    any requirement under this part, including submission of a Certificate 
    of Origin under Sec. 181.22(b) or submission of a corrected Certificate 
    under Sec. 181.22(c), the port director may deny preferential tariff 
    treatment to the imported good.
        (b) Failure to provide documentation regarding transshipment. Where 
    the requirements for preferential tariff treatment set forth elsewhere 
    in this part are met, the port director nevertheless may deny 
    preferential tariff treatment to an originating good if the good is 
    shipped through or transshipped in a country other than the United 
    States, Canada or Mexico and the importer of the good does not provide, 
    at the request of the port director, copies of the customs control 
    documents that indicate to the satisfaction of the port director that 
    the good remained under customs control while in such other country.
    
    Subpart D--Post-Importation Duty Refund Claims
    
    
    Sec. 181.31  Right to make post-importation claim and refund duties.
    
        Notwithstanding any other available remedy, including the right to 
    amend an entry so long as liquidation of the entry has not become 
    final, where a good would have qualified as an originating good when it 
    was imported into the United States but no claim for preferential 
    tariff treatment on that originating good was made at that time under 
    Sec. 181.21(a) of this part, the importer of that good may file a claim 
    for a refund of any excess duties at any time within one year after the 
    date of importation of the good in accordance with the procedures set 
    forth in Sec. 181.32 of this part. Subject to the provisions of 
    Sec. 181.23 of this part, Customs may refund any excess duties by 
    liquidation or reliquidation of the entry covering the good in 
    accordance with Sec. 181.33(c) of this part.
    
    
    Sec. 181.32  Filing procedures.
    
        (a) Place of filing. A post-importation claim for a refund under 
    Sec. 181.31 of this part shall be filed with the director of the port 
    at which the entry covering the good was filed.
        (b) Contents of claim. A post-importation claim for a refund shall 
    be filed by presentation of the following:
        (1) A written declaration stating that the good qualified as an 
    originating good at the time of importation and setting forth the 
    number and date of the entry covering the good;
        (2) Subject to Sec. 181.22(d) of this part, a copy of each 
    Certificate of Origin (see Sec. 181.11 of this part) pertaining to the 
    good;
    
    [[Page 46368]]
    
        (3) A written statement indicating whether or not the importer of 
    the good provided a copy of the entry summary or equivalent 
    documentation to any other person. If such documentation was so 
    provided, the statement shall identify each recipient by name, Customs 
    identification number and address and shall specify the date on which 
    the documentation was provided;
        (4) A written statement indicating whether or not the importer of 
    the good is aware of any claim for refund, waiver or reduction of 
    duties relating to the good within the meaning of Article 303 of the 
    NAFTA (see subpart E of this part). If the importer is aware of any 
    such claim, the statement shall identify each claim by number and date 
    and shall identify the person who made the claim by name, Customs 
    identification number and address; and
        (5) A written statement indicating whether or not any person has 
    filed a protest or a petition or request for reliquidation relating to 
    the good under any provision of law, and if any such protest or 
    petition or request for reliquidation has been filed, the statement 
    shall identify the protest, petition or request by number and date.
    
    
    Sec. 181.33  Customs processing procedures.
    
        (a) Status determination. After receipt of a post-importation claim 
    under Sec. 181.32 of this part, the port director shall determine 
    whether the entry covering the good has been liquidated and, if 
    liquidation has taken place, whether the liquidation has become final.
        (b) Pending protest, petition or request for reliquidation or 
    judicial review. If the port director determines that any protest or 
    any petition or request for reliquidation relating to the good has not 
    been finally decided, the port director shall suspend action on the 
    claim filed under this subpart until the decision on the protest, 
    petition or request becomes final. If a summons involving the tariff 
    classification or dutiability of the good is filed in the Court of 
    International Trade, the port director shall suspend action on the 
    claim filed under this subpart until judicial review has been 
    completed.
        (c) Allowance of claim.--(1) Unliquidated entry. If the port 
    director determines that a claim for a refund filed under this subpart 
    should be allowed and the entry covering the good has not been 
    liquidated, the port director shall take into account the claim for 
    refund under this subpart in connection with the liquidation of the 
    entry.
        (2) Liquidated entry. If the port director determines that a claim 
    for a refund filed under this subpart should be allowed and the entry 
    covering the good has been liquidated, whether or not the liquidation 
    has become final, the entry must be reliquidated in order to effect a 
    refund of duties pursuant to this subpart. If the entry is otherwise to 
    be reliquidated based on administrative review of a protest or petition 
    for reliquidation or as a result of judicial review, the port director 
    shall reliquidate the entry taking into account the claim for refund 
    under this subpart.
        (3) Information to be provided to Canada or Mexico. If any 
    information is provided to Customs pursuant to Sec. 181.32(b) (4) or 
    (5) of this part, that information, together with notice of the 
    allowance of the claim and the amount of duty refunded pursuant to this 
    subpart, shall be provided by the port director to the customs 
    administration of the country from which the good was exported.
        (d) Denial of claim--(1) General. The port director may deny a 
    claim for a refund filed under this subpart if the claim was not filed 
    timely, if the importer has not complied with the requirements of this 
    subpart, if the Certificate of Origin submitted under Sec. 181.32(b)(3) 
    of this part cannot be accepted as valid (see Sec. 181.22(c) of this 
    part), or if, following initiation of an origin verification under 
    Sec. 181.72(a) of this part, the port director determines either that 
    the imported good did not qualify as an originating good at the time of 
    importation or that a basis exists upon which preferential tariff 
    treatment may be denied under Sec. 181.72(d), Sec. 181.74(c) or 
    Sec. 181.76(c) of this part.
        (2) Unliquidated entry. If the port director determines that a 
    claim for a refund filed under this subpart should be denied and the 
    entry covering the good has not been liquidated, the port director 
    shall deny the claim in connection with the liquidation of the entry, 
    and written notice of the denial and the reason therefor shall be given 
    to the importer and, in the case of a denial on the merits, to any 
    person who completed and signed a Certificate of Origin relating to the 
    good. Each notice of denial given to a person who completed and signed 
    a Certificate of Origin shall also include a statement regarding the 
    right to file a protest against the denial under part 174 of this 
    chapter.
        (3) Liquidated entry. If the port director determines that a claim 
    for a refund filed under this subpart should be denied and the entry 
    covering the good has been liquidated, whether or not the liquidation 
    has become final, the claim may be denied without reliquidation of the 
    entry. If the entry is otherwise to be reliquidated based on 
    administrative review of a protest or petition for reliquidation or as 
    a result of judicial review, such reliquidation may include denial of 
    the claim filed under this subpart. In either case, the port director 
    shall give written notice of the denial and the reason therefor to the 
    importer and, in the case of a denial on the merits, to any person who 
    completed and signed a Certificate of Origin relating to the good. Each 
    notice of denial given to a person who completed and signed a 
    Certificate of Origin shall also include a statement regarding the 
    right to file a protest against the denial under part 174 of this 
    chapter.
    
    Subpart E--Restrictions on Drawback and Duty-Deferral Programs
    
    
    Sec. 181.41  Applicability.
    
        This subpart sets forth the provisions regarding drawback claims 
    and duty-deferral programs under Article 303 of the NAFTA and applies 
    to any good that is a ``good subject to NAFTA drawback'' within the 
    meaning of 19 U.S.C. 3333. Except in the case of Sec. 181.42(d), the 
    provisions of this subpart apply to goods which are imported into the 
    United States and then subsequently exported from the United States to 
    Canada on or after January 1, 1996, or to Mexico on or after January 1, 
    2001. The requirements and procedures set forth in this subpart for 
    NAFTA drawback are in addition to the general definitions, requirements 
    and procedures for all drawback claims set forth in part 191 of this 
    chapter, unless otherwise specifically provided in this subpart. Also, 
    the requirements and procedures set forth in this subpart for NAFTA 
    duty-deferral programs are in addition to the requirements and 
    procedures for manipulation, manufacturing and smelting and refining 
    warehouses contained in part 19 and part 144 of this chapter, for 
    foreign trade zones under part 146 of this chapter, and for temporary 
    importations under bond contained in part 10 of this chapter.
    
    
    Sec. 181.42  Duties and fees not subject to drawback.
    
        The following duties or fees which may be applicable to a good 
    entered for consumption in the Customs territory of the United States 
    are not subject to drawback under this subpart:
        (a) Antidumping and countervailing duties;
        (b) A premium offered or collected on a good with respect to 
    quantitative import restrictions, tariff rate quotas or tariff 
    preference levels; 
    
    [[Page 46369]]
    
        (c) Fees applied under section 22 of the U.S. Agricultural 
    Adjustment Act; and
        (d) Customs duties paid or owed under unused merchandise 
    substitution drawback. There shall be no payment of such drawback under 
    19 U.S.C. 1313(j)(2) on goods exported to Canada or Mexico on or after 
    January 1, 1994.
    
    
    Sec. 181.43  Eligible goods subject to drawback.
    
        Except as otherwise provided in this subpart, drawback is 
    authorized for an imported good that is entered for consumption and is:
        (a) Subsequently exported to Canada or Mexico (see 19 U.S.C. 
    1313(j)(1));
        (b) Used as a material in the production of another good that is 
    subsequently exported to Canada or Mexico (see 19 U.S.C. 1313(a)); or
        (c) Substituted by a good of the same kind and quality as defined 
    in Sec. 181.44(c) of this subpart and used as a material in the 
    production of another good that is subsequently exported to Canada or 
    Mexico (see 19 U.S.C. 1313(b)).
    
    
    Sec. 181.44  Calculation of drawback.
    
        (a) General. Except in the case of goods specified in Sec. 181.45 
    of this part, drawback of the duties previously paid upon importation 
    of a good into the United States may be granted by the United States, 
    upon presentation of a NAFTA drawback claim under this subpart, on the 
    lower amount of:
        (1) The total duties paid or owed on the good in the United States; 
    or
        (2) The total amount of duties paid on the exported good upon 
    subsequent importation into Canada or Mexico.
        (b) Individual relative value and duty comparison principle. For 
    purposes of this section, relative value shall be determined, and the 
    comparison between the duties referred to in paragraph (a)(1) of this 
    section and the duties referred to in paragraph (a)(2) of this section 
    shall be made, separately with reference to each individual exported 
    good, including where two components or materials are used to produce 
    one exported good or one component or material is divided among 
    multiple exported goods.
    
        Example. Upon importation of Chemical X into the United States, 
    Company A entered Chemical X and paid $2.00 in duties. Company A 
    processed Chemical X into Products Y and Z, each having the same 
    relative value; that is, $1.00 in duty is attributable to Product Y 
    and $1.00 in duty is attributable to Product Z. Company A exported 
    Product Y to Canada and Canada assessed a free rate of duty. Company 
    A exported Product Z to Mexico and Mexico assessed the equivalent of 
    US$2.00 in duty. There is no entitlement to drawback on the export 
    of Product Y to Canada because zero is the lesser amount when 
    compared to the $1.00 in duty attributable to Product Y as a result 
    of the separation of Chemical X into Products Y and Z. There would 
    be entitlement to drawback on the export to Mexico, consisting of 
    the $1.00 duty attributable to Product Z, because that amount is the 
    lesser amount when comparing the duty paid to the United States and 
    the US$ equivalent duty paid to Mexico.
    
        (c) Direct identification manufacturing drawback under 19 U.S.C. 
    1313(a). Upon presentation of the NAFTA drawback claim under 19 U.S.C. 
    1313(a), in which the amount of drawback payable is based on the lesser 
    amount of the customs duties paid on the good either to the United 
    States or to Canada or Mexico, the amount of drawback refunded shall 
    not exceed 99 percent of the duty paid on such imported merchandise 
    into the United States.
    
        Example 1. Upon the importation of Product X to the United 
    States from Japan, Company A paid $2.00 in duties. Company A 
    manufactured the imported Product X into Product Y, and subsequently 
    exported it to Mexico. Mexico assessed the equivalent of US$11.00 in 
    duties upon importation of Product Y. Upon presenting a drawback 
    claim in the United States, in accordance with 19 U.S.C. 1313(a), 
    Company A would be entitled to a refund of 99 percent of the $2.00, 
    or $1.98. The $2.00 paid by Company A (less 1 percent) on the 
    importation of Product X into the United States is a lesser amount 
    of duties than the total amount of customs duties paid to Mexico 
    (the equivalent of US$11.00) on Product Y.
    
        Example 2. Upon the importation of Product X into the United 
    States from Hong Kong, Company A entered Product X and paid $5.00 in 
    duties. Company A manufactured Product X into Product Y, sold it to 
    Company B in Mexico and subsequently exported it to Mexico. Company 
    A reserved its right to drawback. Upon Product Y's importation, 
    Company B was assessed a free rate of duty. Company A's claim for 
    drawback will be denied because Company A is entitled to zero 
    drawback for the reason that, as between the duty paid in the United 
    States and the duty paid in Mexico, the duty in Mexico was zero.
    
        (d) Substitution manufacturing drawback under 19 U.S.C. 1313(b). 
    Upon presentation of a NAFTA drawback claim under 19 U.S.C. 1313(b), on 
    which the amount of drawback payable is based on the lesser amount of 
    the customs duties paid on the good either to the United States or to 
    Canada or Mexico, the amount of drawback is the same as that which 
    would have been allowed had the substituted merchandise used in 
    manufacture been itself imported. For purposes of drawback under this 
    subpart, the term ``same kind and quality'' used in Sec. 1313(b) (see 
    Sec. 191.2(m) of this chapter) shall have the same meaning as the term 
    ``identical or similar good'' used in Article 303 of the NAFTA except 
    that there shall be no requirement that the good be manufactured in the 
    same country.
    
        Example 1. Upon importation of Product X from Japan to the 
    United States, Company A paid $5.00 in duties. Company A substituted 
    a same kind and quality domestic Product X for the Japanese Product 
    X in its production of Product Y under its 19 U.S.C. 1313(b) 
    drawback contract. Company A sold Product Y to Company B which 
    subsequently exported it to Canada. On the importation of Product Y 
    by Company B, Company B paid the equivalent of US$2.00 in duties 
    assessed by Revenue Canada and waived its right to drawback to 
    Company A. Company A is entitled to obtain drawback under 19 U.S.C. 
    1313(b) in the United States in the amount of $1.98 (or 99 percent 
    of the US$2.00 equivalent Company B paid in duty to Canada) since 
    that $2.00 was the lesser of the total amount of customs duties paid 
    on the product to either Canada or the United States.
    
        Example 2. Same facts as above example, but Company B paid the 
    equivalent of US$5.00 to Revenue Canada. Company A is entitled to 
    obtain $4.95 in drawback (a refund of 99 percent of $5.00 paid to 
    the United States). Since the same amount of duty was assessed by 
    each country, drawback is allowable because the drawback paid does 
    not exceed the lesser amount paid.
    
        (e) Meats cured with imported salt. Meats, whether packed or 
    smoked, which have been cured with imported salt may be eligible for 
    drawback in aggregate amounts of not less than $100 in duties paid on 
    the imported salt upon exportation of the meats to Canada or Mexico 
    (see 19 U.S.C. 1313(f)).
    
        Example. Company Z produced Virginia smoked ham on its 
    Smithfield, Virginia farm, using 4,000 pounds of imported salt in 
    curing the meat. The salt was imported from an HTSUS Column 2 
    country, with a duty of $200. Upon exportation of the hams to 
    Mexico, Company Z pays the equivalent of US$250.00 in duties to 
    Mexico. Company Z is entitled to drawback of the full 100 percent of 
    the $200.00 in duties it paid on the importation of the salt into 
    the United States because that $200.00 is a lesser amount than the 
    total amount of customs duties paid to Mexico on the exported meat.
    
        (f) Jet aircraft engines. A foreign-built jet aircraft engine that 
    has been overhauled, repaired, rebuilt, or reconditioned in the United 
    States with the use of imported merchandise, including parts, may be 
    eligible for drawback of duties paid on the imported merchandise in 
    aggregate amounts of not less than $100 upon exportation of the engine 
    to Canada or Mexico (19 U.S.C. 1313(h)).
    
    
    [[Page 46370]]
    
        Example. A Swedish-made jet aircraft engine is repaired in the 
    United States using imported parts from Korea on which $160.00 in 
    duties have been paid by Company W. The engine is subsequently 
    exported to Canada by Company W and Company W pays the equivalent of 
    US$260.00 in duties to Canada. Upon showing the country in which the 
    engine was manufactured and a description of the processing 
    performed thereon in the United States on Customs Form 7575-A, 
    appropriately modified, Company W is entitled to the full refund of 
    the duties paid to the United States since that $160.00 was a lesser 
    amount than the duties paid on the engine to Canada.
    
        (g) Unused goods under 19 U.S.C. 1313(j)(1) that have changed in 
    condition. An imported good that is unused in the United States under 
    19 U.S.C. 1313(j)(1) and that is shipped to Canada or Mexico not in the 
    same condition within the meaning of Sec. 181.45(b)(1) may be eligible 
    for drawback under this section, except when the shipment to Canada or 
    Mexico does not constitute an exportation under 19 U.S.C. 1313(j)(4).
    
        Example. Upon importation of Product X from Spain to the United 
    States, the U.S. importer pays $10.00 in duties. While in the 
    original package in the importer's warehouse, Product X becomes 
    damaged. A Canadian purchaser buys Product X and imports it into 
    Canada and pays the equivalent of US$5.00 in duties assessed by 
    Revenue Canada. The Canadian purchaser who exported Product X from 
    the United States to Canada and who otherwise qualifies for drawback 
    is entitled to drawback under 19 U.S.C. 1313(j)(1) in the amount of 
    $4.95 (99 percent of the US$5.00 equivalent in duties paid to 
    Canada). Eligibility for full drawback of the $10.00 in U.S. duties 
    under Sec. 181.45(b) would be precluded because Product X, although 
    unused, was not exported to Canada in the same condition as when 
    imported into the United States within the meaning of 
    Sec. 181.45(b)(1).
    
    
    Sec. 181.45  Goods eligible for full drawback.
    
        (a) Goods originating in Canada or Mexico. A Canadian or Mexican 
    originating good that is dutiable and is imported into the United 
    States is eligible for drawback without regard to the limitation on 
    drawback set forth in Sec. 181.44 of this part if that originating good 
    is:
         (1) Subsequently exported to Canada or Mexico;
        (2) Used as a material in the production of another good that is 
    subsequently exported to Canada or Mexico; or
        (3) Substituted by a good of the same kind and quality and used as 
    a material in the production of another good that is subsequently 
    exported to Canada or Mexico.
    
        Example. Company A imports a dutiable (3 percent rate) Canadian 
    originating good. During Company A's manufacturing process, Company 
    A substitutes a German good of the same kind and quality (on which 
    duty was paid at a 2.5 percent rate) in the production of another 
    good that is subsequently exported to Canada. Company A may 
    designate the dutiable Canadian entry and claim full drawback (99 
    percent) on the 3 percent duty paid under 19 U.S.C. 1313(b). (Note: 
    NAFTA originating goods will continue to receive full drawback as 
    they cross NAFTA borders for successive stages of production until 
    NAFTA tariffs are fully phased out.)
    
        (b) Claims under 19 U.S.C 1313(j)(1) for goods in same condition. A 
    good imported into the United States and subsequently exported to 
    Canada or Mexico in the same condition is eligible for drawback under 
    19 U.S.C. 1313(j)(1) without regard to the limitation on drawback set 
    forth in Sec. 181.44 of this part.
    
        Example. X imports a desk into the United States from England 
    and pays $25.00 in duty. X immediately exports the desk to Z in 
    Mexico and Z pays the equivalent of US$10.00 in Mexican duties. X 
    can obtain a refund of 99 percent of the $25.00 paid upon 
    importation of the desk into the United States.
    
        (1) Same condition defined. For purposes of this subpart, a 
    reference to a good in the ``same condition'' includes a good that has 
    been subjected to any of the following operations provided that no such 
    operation materially alters the characteristics of the good:
        (i) Mere dilution with water or another substance;
        (ii) Cleaning, including removal of rust, grease, paint or other 
    coatings;
        (iii) Application of preservative, including lubricants, protective 
    encapsulation, or preservation paint;
        (iv) Trimming, filing, slitting or cutting;
        (v) Putting up in measured doses, or packing, repacking, packaging 
    or repackaging; or
        (vi) Testing, marking, labelling, sorting or grading.
        (2) Commingling of fungible goods--(i) General. Commingling of 
    fungible goods in inventory, such as parts, is permissible (see 
    Sec. 191.141(e) of this chapter), provided that the entries for 
    designation for same condition drawback are identified on the basis of 
    an approved inventory method set forth in the appendix to this part.
        (ii) Exception. Agricultural goods imported from Mexico may not be 
    commingled with fungible agricultural goods in the United States for 
    purposes of same condition drawback under this subpart.
        (c) Goods not conforming to sample or specifications or shipped 
    without consent of consignee under 19 U.S.C. 1313(c). An imported good 
    exported to Canada or Mexico by reason of failure of the good to 
    conform to sample or specification or by reason of shipment of the good 
    without the consent of the consignee is eligible for drawback under 19 
    U.S.C. 1313(c) without regard to the limitation on drawback set forth 
    in Sec. 181.44 of this part. Such a good must be returned to Customs 
    custody for exportation under Customs supervision within three years 
    after the release from Customs custody.
    
         Example. X orders, after seeing a sample in the ABC Company's 
    catalog, a certain quantity of 2-by-4 lumber from ABC Company 
    located in Honduras. ABC Company, having run out of the specific 
    lumber, ships instead a different kind of lumber. X rejects the 
    lumber because it did not conform to the sample and is asked to send 
    it to a customer of ABC in Canada. X exports it within 90 days of 
    its release from Customs custody. X may recover 99 percent of the 
    $500 duties it paid to U.S. Customs upon the exportation of the 
    lumber, or $495.00.
    
        (d) Certain goods exported to Canada. Goods identified in Annex 
    303.6 of the NAFTA and in sections 203(a) (7) and (8) of the North 
    American Free Trade Agreement Implementation Act, if exported to 
    Canada, are eligible for drawback without regard to the limitation on 
    drawback set forth in Sec. 181.44 of this part.
    
    
    Sec. 181.46  Time and place for filing drawback claim.
    
        (a) Time of filing. A drawback claim under this subpart shall be 
    filed or applied for, as applicable, within 3 years after the date of 
    exportation of the goods on which drawback is claimed. No extension 
    will be granted unless it is established that a Customs officer was 
    responsible for the untimely filing. Drawback shall be allowed only if 
    the completed good is exported within 5 years after importation of the 
    merchandise identified or designated to support the claim. A good 
    subject to a claim for same condition drawback must be exported before 
    the close of the 3-year period beginning on the date of importation of 
    the good into the United States.
        (b) Place of filing. A drawback claim must be filed at the port(s) 
    where the manufacturing drawback contract is on file, whether a general 
    rate or specific rate, but exportation need not occur from that port. 
    To facilitate expedited processing of claims, claimants should file 
    same condition drawback claims in the port where the examination would 
    take place (see Sec. 191.141(b)(3) (ii) and (iii) of this chapter). 
    Customs must be notified at least 2 working days in advance of the 
    intended date of 
    
    [[Page 46371]]
    exportation in order to have the opportunity to examine the goods.
    
    
    Sec. 181.47  Completion of claim for drawback.
    
        (a) General. A claim for drawback shall be granted, upon the 
    submission of appropriate documentation to substantiate compliance with 
    the drawback laws and regulations of the United States, evidence of 
    exportation to Canada or Mexico, and satisfactory evidence of the 
    payment of duties to Canada or Mexico. Unless otherwise provided in 
    this subpart, the documentation, filing procedures, time and place 
    requirements and other applicable procedures required to determine 
    whether a good qualifies for drawback shall be in accordance with the 
    provisions of part 191 of this chapter; however, a drawback claim 
    subject to the provisions of this subpart shall be filed separately 
    from any part 191 drawback claim (that is, a claim that involves goods 
    exported to countries other than Canada or Mexico). Claims 
    inappropriately filed or otherwise not completed within the 3-year 
    period specified in Sec. 181.46 of this part shall be considered 
    abandoned.
        (b) Complete drawback claim--(1) General. A complete drawback claim 
    under this subpart shall consist of the filing of the appropriate 
    completed drawback entry form, evidence of exportation (a copy of the 
    Canadian or Mexican customs entry showing the amount of duty paid to 
    Canada or Mexico) and its supporting documents, certificate(s) of 
    delivery, when necessary, or certificate(s) of manufacture and 
    delivery, and a certification from the Canadian or Mexican importer as 
    to the amount of duties paid. Each drawback entry form filed under this 
    subpart shall be conspicuously marked at the top with the word 
    ``NAFTA''.
        (2) Specific claims. The following documentation, for the drawback 
    claims specified below, must be submitted to Customs in order for a 
    drawback claim to be processed under this subpart. Missing 
    documentation or incorrect or incomplete information on required 
    customs forms or supporting documentation will result in an incomplete 
    drawback claim.
        (i) Manufacturing drawback claim. The following shall be submitted 
    in connection with a claim for direct identification manufacturing 
    drawback or substitution manufacturing drawback:
        (A) A completed Customs Form 331, to establish the manufacture of 
    goods made with imported merchandise and, if applicable, the identity 
    of substituted domestic, duty-paid or duty-free merchandise, and 
    including the tariff classification number of the imported merchandise;
        (B) Customs Form 7501 or the import entry number;
        (C) Exporter's summary procedure, if applicable. For purposes of 
    this subpart, the exporter's summary procedure must include the 
    Canadian or Mexican customs entry number and the amount of duty paid to 
    Canada or Mexico;
        (D) Evidence of exportation and satisfactory evidence of the 
    payment of duties in Canada or Mexico, as provided in paragraph (c) of 
    this section;
        (E) Waiver of right to drawback. If the person exporting to Canada 
    or Mexico was not the importer or the manufacturer, written waivers 
    executed by the importer or manufacturer and by any intervening person 
    to whom the good was transferred shall be submitted in order for the 
    claim to be considered complete; and
        (F) An affidavit of the party claiming drawback stating that no 
    other drawback claim has been made on the designated goods, that such 
    party has not provided an exporter's Certificate of Origin pertaining 
    to the exported goods to another party except as stated on the drawback 
    claim, and that the party agrees to notify Customs if he subsequently 
    provides such an exporter's Certificate of Origin to any person.
        (ii) Same condition drawback claim under 19 U.S.C. 1313(j)(1). The 
    following shall be submitted in connection with a drawback claim 
    covering a good in the same condition:
        (A) A completed Customs Form 7539J. In addition, the tariff 
    classification number of the imported goods shall be recorded on the 
    form;
        (B) Customs Form 7501. The form must show the entry number, date of 
    entry, port of importation, date of importation, importing carrier, and 
    importer of record or ultimate consignee name and Customs or taxpayer 
    identification number. Explicit line item information shall be clearly 
    noted on the Customs Form 7501 so that the subject goods are easily 
    discernible;
        (C) Customs Form 7505, if applicable, to trace the movement of the 
    imported goods after importation;
        (D) The certificate of delivery portion of Customs Form 331, if 
    applicable, for purposes of tracing the transfer of ownership of the 
    imported goods from the importer to the claimant. This is required if 
    the drawback claimant is not the original importer of the merchandise 
    which is the subject of a same condition claim;
        (E) Customs Form 7512, if applicable. This is required for 
    merchandise which is examined at one port but exported through border 
    points outside of that port. Such goods must travel in bond from the 
    location where they were examined to the point of the border crossing 
    (exportation). If examination is waived, in-bond transportation is not 
    required;
        (F) Notification of intent to export or waiver of prior notice;
        (G) Evidence of exportation. If a claimant is not approved for the 
    exporter's summary procedure, either a certified Customs Form 7511 or 
    an uncertified Customs Form 7511 supported by documentary evidence of 
    exportation to Canada or Mexico such as a bill of lading, air waybill, 
    freight waybill, export ocean bill of lading, Canadian customs 
    manifest, cargo manifest, or certified copies thereof, issued by the 
    exporting carrier, or any other evidence of exportation provided for in 
    Sec. 191.51 of this chapter. Supporting documentary evidence shall 
    establish fully the time and fact of exportation, the identity of the 
    exporter, and the identity and location of the ultimate consignee of 
    the exported goods;
        (H) Waiver of right to drawback. If the party exporting to Canada 
    or Mexico was not the importer, a written waiver from the importer and 
    from each intermediate person to whom the goods were transferred shall 
    be required in order for the claim to be considered complete; and
        (I) An affidavit of the party claiming drawback stating that no 
    other drawback claim has been made on the designated goods.
        (iii) Nonconforming or improperly shipped goods drawback claim. The 
    following shall be submitted in the case of goods not conforming to 
    sample or specifications or shipped without the consent of the 
    consignee and subject to a drawback claim under 19 U.S.C. 1313(c):
        (A) Customs Form 7539C, completed and submitted at the time the 
    goods are returned to Customs custody;
        (B) Customs Form 7501 to establish the fact of importation, the 
    receipt of the imported goods and the identity of the party to whom 
    drawback is payable (see Sec. 181.48(c) of this part);
        (C) Documentary evidence to support the claim that the goods did 
    not conform to sample or specifications or were shipped without the 
    consent of the consignee. In the case of nonconforming goods, such 
    documentation may include a copy of a purchase order and any related 
    documents such as a specification sheet, catalogue or 
    
    [[Page 46372]]
    advertising brochure from the supplier, the basis for which the order 
    was placed, and copy of a letter or telex or credit memo from the 
    supplier indicating acceptance of the returned merchandise. This 
    documentation is necessary to establish that the goods are, in fact, 
    being returned to the party from which they were procured or that they 
    are being sent to the supplier's other customer directly;
        (D) Customs Form 7512, if applicable; and
        (E) Evidence of exportation, as provided in paragraph (b)(2)(ii)(G) 
    of this section.
        (iv) Meats cured with imported salt. The provisions of paragraph 
    (b)(2)(i) of this section relating to direct identification 
    manufacturing drawback shall apply to claims for drawback on meats 
    cured with imported salt filed under this subpart insofar as applicable 
    to and not inconsistent with the provisions of this subpart, and the 
    forms referred to in that paragraph shall be modified to show that the 
    claim is being made for refund of duties paid on salt used in curing 
    meats.
        (v) Jet aircraft engines. The provisions of paragraph (b)(2)(i) of 
    this section relating to direct identification manufacturing drawback 
    shall apply to claims for drawback on foreign-built jet aircraft 
    engines repaired or reconditioned in the United States filed under this 
    subpart insofar as applicable to and not inconsistent with the 
    provisions of this subpart and the provisions of subpart L of part 191 
    of this chapter.
        (c) Evidence of exportation and of duties paid in Canada or Mexico. 
    For purposes of this subpart, evidence of exportation and satisfactory 
    evidence of payment of duties in Canada or Mexico shall consist of one 
    of the following types of documentation, provided that, for purposes of 
    evidence of duties paid, such documentation includes the import entry 
    number, the date of importation, the tariff classification number, the 
    rate of duty and the amount of duties paid:
         (1) In the case of Canada, the Canadian entry document, referred 
    to as the Canada Customs Invoice or B-3, presented with either the K-84 
    Statement or the Detailed Coding Statement. A Canadian customs document 
    that is not accompanied by a valid receipt is not adequate evidence of 
    exportation and payment of duty in Canada;
         (2) In the case of Mexico, the Mexican entry document (the 
    ``pedimento'');
         (3) The final customs duty determination of Canada or Mexico, or a 
    copy thereof, respecting the relevant entry; or
         (4) An affidavit, from the person claiming drawback, which is 
    based on information received from the importer of the good in Canada 
    or Mexico.
    
    
    Sec. 181.48  Person entitled to receive drawback.
    
         (a) Manufacturing drawback. The person named as exporter on the 
    notice of exportation or on the bill of lading, air waybill, freight 
    waybill, Canadian or Mexican customs manifest, cargo manifest, or 
    certified copies of these documents, shall be considered the exporter 
    and entitled to manufacturing drawback, unless the manufacturer or 
    producer shall reserve the right to claim drawback. The manufacturer or 
    producer who reserves this right may claim drawback, and he shall 
    receive payment upon production of satisfactory evidence that the 
    reservation was made with the knowledge and consent of the exporter. 
    Drawback also may be granted to the agent of the manufacturer, 
    producer, or exporter, or to the person the manufacturer, producer, 
    exporter, or agent directs in writing to receive the drawback of 
    duties.
         (b) Nonconforming or improperly shipped goods drawback. Only the 
    importer of record or the actual owner of the merchandise or its agent 
    may claim drawback under 19 U.S.C. 1313(c).
         (c) Same condition drawback. The importer of record on the 
    consumption entry is entitled to claim same condition drawback under 19 
    U.S.C. 1313(j)(1) unless he has in writing waived his right to claim 
    drawback.
    
    
    Sec. 181.49  Retention of records.
    
         All records required to be kept by the exporter, importer, 
    manufacturer or producer under this subpart with respect to 
    manufacturing drawback claims, and all records kept by others which 
    complement the records of the importer, exporter, manufacturer or 
    producer (see Sec. 191.5 of this chapter) shall be retained for at 
    least three years after payment of such claims. However, any person who 
    issues a drawback certificate that enables another person to make or 
    perfect a drawback claim shall keep records in support of that 
    certificate commencing on the date that the certificate is issued and 
    shall retain those records for three years following the date of 
    payment of the claim.
    
    
    Sec. 181.50  Liquidation and payment of drawback claims.
    
         (a) General. When the drawback claim has been fully completed by 
    the filing of all required documents, and exportation of the articles 
    has been established and the amount of duties paid to Canada or Mexico 
    has been established, the entry will be liquidated to determine the 
    proper amount of drawback due either in accordance with the limitation 
    on drawback set forth in Sec. 181.44 of this part or in accordance with 
    the regular drawback calculation. The liquidation procedures of subpart 
    G of part 191 of this chapter shall control for purposes of this 
    subpart.
         (b) Time for liquidation. A drawback claim shall not be liquidated 
    until either a written waiver of the right to protest under 19 U.S.C. 
    1514 is filed with Customs or the liquidation of the import entry has 
    become final under U.S. law. In addition, except in the case of goods 
    covered by Sec. 181.45 of this part, a drawback claim shall not be 
    liquidated for a period of 3 years after the date of entry of the goods 
    in Canada or Mexico. A drawback claim may be adjusted pursuant to 19 
    U.S.C. 1508(b)(2)(B)(iii) even after liquidation of the U.S. import 
    entry has become final.
         (c) Accelerated payment. Accelerated drawback payment procedures 
    shall apply as set forth in Sec. 191.72 of this chapter. However, a 
    person who receives drawback of duties under this procedure shall repay 
    the duties paid if a NAFTA drawback claim is adversely affected 
    thereafter by administrative or court action.
    
    
    Sec. 181.51  Prevention of improper payment of claims.
    
         (a) Double payment of claim. The drawback claimant shall certify 
    to Customs that he has not earlier received payment on the same import 
    entry for the same designation of goods. If, notwithstanding such a 
    certification, such an earlier payment was in fact made to the 
    claimant, the claimant shall repay any amount paid on the second claim.
         (b) Preparation of Certificate of Origin. The drawback claimant 
    shall, within 30 calendar days after the filing of the drawback claim 
    under this subpart, submit to Customs a written statement as to whether 
    he has prepared, or has knowledge that another person has prepared, a 
    Certificate of Origin provided for under Sec. 181.11(a) of this part 
    and pertaining to the goods which are covered by the claim. If, 
    following such 30-day period, the claimant prepares, or otherwise 
    learns of the existence of, any such Certificate of Origin, the 
    claimant shall, within 30 calendar days thereafter, disclose that fact 
    to Customs. 
    
    [[Page 46373]]
    
    
    
    Sec. 181.52  Subsequent claims for preferential tariff treatment.
    
         If a claim for a refund of duties is allowed by the Canadian or 
    Mexican customs administration under Article 502(3) of the NAFTA (post-
    importation claim) or under any other circumstance after drawback has 
    been granted under this subpart, the appropriate Customs officer shall 
    reliquidate the drawback claim and obtain a refund of the amount paid 
    in drawback in excess of the amount permitted to be paid under 
    Sec. 181.44 of this part.
    
    
    Sec. 181.53  Waiver or reduction of duty under duty-deferral programs.
    
         (a) General--(1) Duty-deferral program defined. For purposes of 
    this section, a ``duty-deferral program'' means a measure which 
    postpones duty payment upon arrival of a good in the United States, 
    including a measure governing manipulation warehouses, manufacturing 
    warehouses, smelting and refining warehouses, foreign trade zones, or 
    temporary importations under bond under Chapter 98, HTSUS, until 
    withdrawn or removed for exportation to Canada or Mexico.
         (2) Treatment as entered or withdrawn for domestic consumption. 
    Where a ``good subject to NAFTA drawback'' within the meaning of 19 
    U.S.C. 3333 is imported into the United States pursuant to a duty-
    deferral program and is subsequently exported to Canada or Mexico or is 
    used as a material in the production of another good that is 
    subsequently exported to Canada or Mexico, the exported good shall be 
    treated, for purposes of this section, as if it had been entered or 
    withdrawn for domestic consumption and thus subject to duty. However, 
    the provisions of this paragraph shall not apply to goods covered by 
    Sec. 181.45.
         (3) Adjustment to duties paid. Customs shall waive or reduce the 
    duties paid or owed under paragraph (a)(2) of this section by the 
    person who exports the good to Canada or Mexico in accordance with 
    paragraphs (b) through (f) of this section, provided that evidence of 
    exportation and satisfactory evidence of duties paid in Canada or 
    Mexico (see Sec. 181.47(c) of this part) are submitted within 60 
    calendar days of the date of exportation.
         (b) Manipulation in warehouse. Where a good subject to NAFTA 
    drawback under this subpart is withdrawn from a bonded warehouse (19 
    U.S.C. 1562) after manipulation for exportation to Canada or Mexico, 
    duty shall be assessed on the good in its condition and quantity, and 
    at its weight, at the time of such withdrawal from the warehouse and 
    with such additions to, or deductions from, the final appraised value 
    as may be necessary by reason of its change in condition. Such duty 
    shall be paid no later than 60 calendar days after the date of 
    exportation except that, upon presentation of evidence of exportation 
    and satisfactory evidence of the amount of any customs duties paid to 
    Canada or Mexico on the exported good, the duty shall be waived or 
    reduced in an amount that does not exceed the lesser of either the 
    total amount of duty payable on the good under this section or the 
    total amount of customs duties paid to Canada or Mexico.
    
        Example. Company B imports toys in bulk and makes a warehouse 
    entry into a Class 8 warehouse, whereupon Company B repackages the 
    toys for retail sale. Upon withdrawal of the goods from the 
    warehouse, $200 in U.S. duty is assessed. Company B exports this 
    merchandise to Mexico and pays the equivalent of US$300 in duties. 
    Thirty days after exportation from the United States, Company B 
    submits to Customs evidence of exportation and a copy of the Mexican 
    consumption entry (``pedimento'') as evidence of the payment of the 
    US$300 equivalent to Mexico. Customs will waive the collection of 
    the $200 assessment since $200 is a lesser amount than the total 
    amount of duties paid to Mexico.
    
         (c) Bonded manufacturing warehouse. Where a good is manufactured 
    in a bonded warehouse (19 U.S.C. 1311) with imported materials and is 
    then withdrawn for exportation to Canada or Mexico, duty shall be 
    assessed on the materials in their condition and quantity, and at their 
    weight, at the time of their importation into the United States. Such 
    duty shall be paid no later than 60 calendar days after the date of 
    exportation except that, upon presentation of evidence of exportation 
    and satisfactory evidence of the amount of any customs duties paid to 
    Canada or Mexico on the exported good, the duty shall be waived or 
    reduced in an amount that does not exceed the lesser of either the 
    total amount of duty payable on the materials under this section or the 
    total amount of customs duties paid to Canada or Mexico.
    
        Example. Company N imports tea into the United States and makes 
    a Class 6 warehouse entry. Company N manufactures sweetened ice tea 
    mix by combining the imported tea with refined cane sugar and other 
    flavorings and packaging it in retail size canisters. Upon 
    withdrawal of the ice tea mix from the warehouse for immediate 
    exportation to Canada, U.S. duty is assessed on the basis of the 
    unmanufactured tea in the amount of $900. Company N, however, does 
    not pay the duties at this time. Canada assesses the equivalent of 
    US$800 on the exported ice tea mix. Company N submits to Customs 
    both evidence of exportation to Canada and a Canadian K-84 Statement 
    showing payment of the US$800 equivalent in duties to Canada. 
    Company N will only be required to pay $100 in U.S. duties out of 
    the original $900 bill.
    
        (d) Bonded smelting or refining warehouse. For any qualifying 
    imported metal-bearing materials (19 U.S.C. 1312), duty shall be 
    assessed on the imported materials and the charges against the bond 
    canceled no later than 60 calendar days after the date of exportation 
    of the treated materials to Canada or Mexico either from the bonded 
    smelting or refining warehouse or from such other customs bonded 
    warehouse after the transfer of the same quantity of material from a 
    bonded smelting or refining warehouse. However, upon presentation of 
    evidence of exportation and satisfactory evidence of the amount of any 
    customs duties paid to Canada or Mexico on the exported treated 
    materials, the duty on the imported materials shall be waived or 
    reduced in an amount that does not exceed the lesser of either the 
    total amount of duty payable on the imported materials under this 
    section or the total amount of customs duties paid to Canada or Mexico.
        Example. Company Z imports 47 million pounds of electrolytic 
    zinc which is entered into a bonded smelting and refining warehouse 
    (Class 7) for processing. Thereafter, Company Z withdraws the 
    merchandise and pays $90,000 in U.S. duty on the dutiable quantity 
    of metal contained in the imported metal-bearing materials and 
    Customs cancels the bond charges. Two weeks later, Company Z secures 
    a buyer, Company B, in Canada and exports the merchandise. Upon 
    importation of the processed zinc into Canada, the equivalent of 
    US$50,000 in duties are assessed against Company B. Company Z would 
    like to claim a NAFTA refund under this section. Company Z must 
    secure from Company B the necessary Canadian documentation to show 
    exportation and to show that the US$50,000 equivalent in duties was 
    paid to Revenue Canada in order for Company Z to obtain a refund of 
    that amount from Customs.
    
        (e) Foreign trade zone. For a good that is manufactured or 
    otherwise changed in condition in a foreign trade zone (19 U.S.C. 
    81c(a)) and then exported from the zone to Canada or Mexico, the duty 
    assessed, as calculated under paragraph (e)(1) or (e)(2) of this 
    section, shall be paid no later than 60 calendar days after the date of 
    exportation of the good to Canada or Mexico except that, upon 
    presentation of evidence of exportation and satisfactory evidence of 
    the amount of any customs duties paid to Canada or Mexico on the 
    exported good, the duty shall be waived or reduced in an amount that 
    does not exceed the lesser of either the total amount of duty payable 
    on the good under this section 
    
    [[Page 46374]]
    or the total amount of customs duties paid to Canada or Mexico.
        (1) Nonprivileged foreign status. In the case of a nonprivileged 
    foreign status good, duty is assessed on the good in its condition and 
    quantity, and at its weight, at the time of its exportation from the 
    zone to Canada or Mexico.
    
        Example. CMG imports $1,000,000 worth of auto parts from Korea 
    and admits them into Foreign-Trade Subzone number 00, claiming 
    nonprivileged foreign status. (If the auto parts had been regularly 
    entered they would have been dutiable at 4 percent, or $40,000.) CMG 
    manufactures subcompact automobiles. Automobiles are dutiable at 2.5 
    percent ($25,000) if entered for consumption in the United States. 
    CMG withdraws the automobiles from the zone and sells them to XYZ 
    who ships them to Mexico. XYZ enters the automobiles in Mexico, pays 
    the equivalent of US$20,000 in duty, and does not claim NAFTA 
    preferential tariff treatment. Before the expiration of 60 calendar 
    days from exportation, CMG submits the required documentation 
    showing exportation and payment of duty in Mexico and pays $5,000 in 
    duty to Customs representing the difference between the $25,000 
    which would have been paid if the automobiles had been entered for 
    consumption from the zone and the US$20,000 equivalent paid to 
    Mexico by XYZ.
    
        (2) Privileged foreign status. In the case of a privileged foreign 
    status good, duty is assessed on the good in its condition and 
    quantity, and at its weight, at the time privileged status is granted 
    in the zone.
    
        Example. O&G, Inc. admits Kuwaiti crude petroleum into its zone 
    and requests, one month later, privileged foreign status on the 
    crude before refining the crude into motor gasoline and kerosene. 
    Upon entry of the refined goods from the zone by O&G, Inc., U.S. 
    duty is assessed on the imported crude petroleum in the amount of 
    $700 rather than on the refined goods (which would have been 
    assessed $1,200). O&G, Inc. then ships the refined goods to Canada. 
    D&O is the consignee in Canada and pays the Canadian customs duty 
    assessment of the equivalent of US$1,500 on the goods. D&O claims 
    NAFTA preferential tariff treatment in Canada. O&G, Inc. potentially 
    is entitled to a duty remission of the full $700 assessed in the 
    United States. However, if D&O's NAFTA claim is approved and results 
    in a refund of duty by Canada, O&G, Inc.'s actual duty remission or 
    refund will be reduced by that amount of refund received by D&O in 
    excess of $800.
    
        (f) Temporary importation under bond. Where a good, regardless of 
    its origin, was imported temporarily free of duty for repair, 
    alteration or processing (subheading 9813.00.05, HTSUS) and is 
    subsequently exported to Canada or Mexico, duty shall be assessed on 
    the good on the basis of its condition at the time of its importation 
    into the United States. Such duty shall be paid no later than 60 
    calendar days after the date of exportation except that, upon 
    presentation of evidence of exportation and satisfactory evidence of 
    the amount of any customs duties paid to Canada or Mexico on the 
    exported good, the duty shall be waived or reduced in an amount that 
    does not exceed the lesser of the total amount of duty payable on the 
    good under this section or the total amount of customs duties paid to 
    Canada or Mexico.
    
        Example. Company A imports glassware under subheading 
    9813.00.05, HTSUS. The glassware is from France and would be 
    dutiable under a regular consumption entry at $6,000. Company A 
    alters the glassware by etching hotel logos on the glassware. Two 
    weeks later, Company A sells the glassware to Company B, a Mexican 
    company, and ships the glassware to Mexico. Company B enters the 
    glassware and is assessed duties in an amount equivalent to US$6,200 
    and claims NAFTA preferential tariff treatment. Company B provides a 
    copy of the Mexican landing certificate to Company A showing that 
    the US$6,200 equivalent in duties was assessed but not yet paid to 
    Mexico, and Customs sends a bill to Company A for the $6,000 in U.S. 
    duty which Company A pays. If Mexico ultimately denies Company B's 
    NAFTA claim and the Mexican duty payment becomes final, Company A, 
    upon submission to Customs of evidence of the finality of the 
    collection of the US$6,200 equivalent by Mexico, is entitled to a 
    refund of the full $6,000 in U.S. duty.
    
        (g) Recordkeeping requirements. If a person intends to claim a 
    waiver or reduction of duty on goods under this section, that person 
    shall maintain records concerning the value of all involved goods or 
    materials at the time of their importation into the United States and 
    concerning the value of the goods at the time of their exportation to 
    Canada or Mexico. Failure to maintain adequate records will result in 
    denial of the claim for waiver or reduction of duty.
        (h) Failure to timely provide evidence of duties paid or owed to 
    Canada or Mexico. If the person who exports the goods to Canada or 
    Mexico fails to provide satisfactory evidence of duties paid or owed to 
    Canada or Mexico within the 60-day period specified in this section, 
    that person will be liable for payment of the full duties assessed 
    under this section and without any waiver or reduction thereof.
        (i) Subsequent claims for preferential tariff treatment. If a claim 
    for a refund of duties is allowed by the Canadian or Mexican customs 
    administration under Article 502(3) of the NAFTA or under any other 
    circumstance after duties have been waived or reduced under this 
    section, Customs shall reliquidate the NAFTA drawback claim and obtain 
    a refund of the amount waived or reduced in excess of the amount 
    permitted to be waived or reduced under this section.
    
    
    Sec. 181.54  Verification of claim for drawback, waiver or reduction of 
    duties.
    
        The allowance of a claim for drawback, waiver or reduction of 
    duties submitted under this subpart shall be subject to such 
    verification, including verification with the Canadian or Mexican 
    customs administration of any documentation obtained in Canada or 
    Mexico and submitted in connection with the claim, as Customs may deem 
    necessary.
    
    Subpart F--Commercial Samples and Goods Returned After Repair or 
    Alteration
    
    
    Sec. 181.61  Applicability.
    
        This subpart sets forth the rules which apply for purposes of duty-
    free entry of commercial samples of negligible value as provided for in 
    Article 306 of the NAFTA and for purposes of the re-entry of goods 
    after repair or alteration in Canada or Mexico as provided for in 
    Article 307 of the NAFTA.
    
    
    Sec. 181.62  Commercial samples of negligible value.
    
        (a) General. Commercial samples of negligible value imported from 
    Canada or Mexico may qualify for duty-free entry under subheading 
    9811.00.60, HTSUS. For purposes of this section, ``commercial samples 
    of negligible value'' means commercial samples which have a value, 
    individually or in the aggregate as shipped, of not more than US$1, or 
    the equivalent amount in the currency of Canada or Mexico, or which are 
    so marked, torn, perforated, or otherwise treated that they are 
    unsuitable for sale or for use except as commercial samples.
        (b) Qualification for duty-free entry. Commercial samples of 
    negligible value imported from Canada or Mexico will qualify for duty-
    free entry under subheading 9811.00.60, HTSUS, only if:
        (1) The samples are imported solely for the purpose of soliciting 
    orders for foreign goods; and
        (2) If valued over US$1, the samples are properly marked, torn, 
    perforated or otherwise treated prior to arrival in the United States 
    so that they are unsuitable for sale or for use except as commercial 
    samples.
    
    
    Sec. 181.63  [Reserved]
    
    
    Sec. 181.64  Goods re-entered after repair or alteration in Canada or 
    Mexico.
    
        (a) General. This section sets forth the rules which apply for 
    purposes of 
    
    [[Page 46375]]
    obtaining duty-free or reduced-duty treatment on goods returned after 
    repair or alteration in Canada or Mexico as provided for in subheadings 
    9802.00.40 and 9802.00.50, HTSUS. Goods returned after having been 
    repaired or altered in Mexico, whether or not pursuant to a warranty, 
    and goods returned after having been repaired or altered in Canada 
    pursuant to a warranty, are eligible for duty-free treatment, provided 
    that the requirements of this section are met. Goods returned after 
    having been repaired or altered in Canada other than pursuant to a 
    warranty are subject to duty upon the value of the repairs or 
    alterations using the applicable duty rate under the United States-
    Canada Free-Trade Agreement (see Sec. 10.301 of this chapter), provided 
    that the requirements of this section are met. For purposes of this 
    section, ``repairs or alterations'' means restoration, addition, 
    renovation, redyeing, cleaning, resterilizing, or other treatment which 
    does not destroy the essential characteristics of, or create a new or 
    commercially different good from, the good exported from the United 
    States.
    
        Example. Glass mugs produced in the United States are exported 
    to Canada for etching and tempering operations, after which they are 
    returned to the United States for sale. The foreign operations 
    exceed the scope of an alteration because they are manufacturing 
    processes which create commercially different products with distinct 
    new characteristics.
    
         (b) Goods not eligible for duty-free or reduced-duty treatment 
    after repair or alteration. The duty-free or reduced-duty treatment 
    referred to in paragraph (a) of this section shall not apply to goods 
    which, in their condition as exported from the United States to Canada 
    or Mexico, are incomplete for their intended use and for which the 
    processing operation performed in Canada or Mexico constitutes an 
    operation that is performed as a matter of course in the preparation or 
    manufacture of finished goods.
    
        Example. Unflanged metal wheel rims are exported to Canada for a 
    flanging operation to strengthen them so as to conform to U.S. Army 
    specifications for wheel rims; although the goods when exported from 
    the United States are dedicated for use in the making of wheel rims, 
    they cannot be used for that purpose until flanged. The flanging 
    operation does not constitute a repair or alteration because that 
    operation is necessary for the completion of the wheel rims.
    
        (c) Documentation--(1) Declarations required. Except as otherwise 
    provided in this section, the following declarations shall be filed in 
    connection with the entry of goods which are returned from Canada or 
    Mexico after having been exported for repairs or alterations and which 
    are claimed to be duty free or subject to duty only on the value of the 
    repairs or alterations performed abroad:
        (i) A declaration from the person who performed such repairs or 
    alterations, in substantially the following form:
    
        I/We, ____________, declare that the goods herein specified are 
    the goods which, in the condition in which they were exported from 
    the United States, were received by me (us) on ____________, 
    19________, from ____________ (name and address of owner or exporter 
    in the United States); that they were received by me (us) for the 
    sole purpose of being repaired or altered; that only the repairs or 
    alterations described below were performed by me (us); that such 
    repairs or alterations were (were not) performed pursuant to a 
    warranty; that the full cost or (when no charge is made) value of 
    such repairs or alterations is correctly stated below; and that no 
    substitution whatever has been made to replace any of the goods 
    originally received by me (us) from the owner or exporter thereof 
    mentioned above.
    
    ----------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------
                                                         Full cost or (when no charge                               
                          Description of goods and of    is made) value of repairs or    Total value of goods after 
     Marks and numbers       repairs or alterations      alterations (see Subchapter       repairs or alterations   
                                                            II, Chapter 98, HTSUS)                                  
    ----------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------
                         .............................  .............................  .............................
                         .............................  .............................  .............................
                         .............................  .............................  .............................
    ----------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------
    
    ----------------------------------------------------------------------
    Date
    
    Signature
    
    ----------------------------------------------------------------------
    Address
    
    ----------------------------------------------------------------------
    ----------------------------------------------------------------------
    Capacity
    
    ----------------------------------------------------------------------
    
        (ii) A declaration by the owner, importer, consignee, or agent 
    having knowledge of the pertinent facts in substantially the following 
    form:
    
        I, ________________, declare that the (above) (attached) 
    declaration by the person who performed the repairs or alterations 
    abroad is true and correct to the best of my knowledge and belief; 
    that the goods ________ were ________ were not (check one) subject 
    to NAFTA drawback; that such goods were exported from the United 
    States for repairs or alterations from ________ (port) on ________, 
    19____; and that the goods entered in their repaired or altered 
    condition are the same goods that were exported on the above date 
    and that are identified in the (above) (attached) declaration.
    
    ----------------------------------------------------------------------
    Date
    Signature-------------------------------------------------------------
    
    Address---------------------------------------------------------------
    
    ----------------------------------------------------------------------
    Capacity
    
    ----------------------------------------------------------------------
        (2) Additional documentation. The port director may require such 
    additional documentation as is deemed necessary to prove actual 
    exportation of the goods from the United States for repairs or 
    alterations, such as a foreign customs entry, a foreign customs 
    invoice, a foreign landing certificate, bill of lading, or airway bill.
        (3) Waiver of declarations. If the port director concerned is 
    satisfied, because of the nature of the goods or production of other 
    evidence, that the goods are imported under circumstances meeting the 
    requirements of this section, he may waive submission of the 
    declarations provided for in paragraph (c)(1) of this section.
        (4) Deposit of estimated duties. For goods returned after having 
    been repaired or altered in Canada other than pursuant to a warranty, 
    the port director shall require a deposit of estimated duties based 
    upon the full cost or value of the repairs or alterations. The cost or 
    value of the repairs or alterations performed in Canada other than 
    pursuant to a warranty, which is to be set forth in the invoice and 
    entry papers as the basis for the assessment of duty for such goods, 
    shall be limited to the cost or value of the repairs or alterations 
    actually performed in Canada, which shall include all domestic and 
    foreign articles furnished for the repairs or alterations but shall not 
    include any of the expenses incurred in the United States whether by 
    way of engineering costs, preparation of plans or specifications, 
    furnishing of tools or equipment for doing the repairs or alterations 
    in Canada, or otherwise. 
    
    [[Page 46376]]
    
    
    Subpart G--Origin Verifications and Determinations
    
    
    Sec. 181.71  Denial of preferential tariff treatment dependent on 
    origin verification and determination.
    
        Except where a Certificate of Origin either is not submitted when 
    requested under Sec. 181.22(b) of this part or is not acceptable and a 
    corrected Certificate is not submitted or accepted as provided in 
    Sec. 181.22(c) of this part and except as otherwise provided in 
    Sec. 181.23 of this part and except in the case of a pattern of conduct 
    provided for in Sec. 181.76(c) of this part, Customs shall deny 
    preferential tariff treatment on an imported good, or shall deny a 
    post-importation claim for a refund filed under subpart D of this part, 
    only after initiation of an origin verification under Sec. 181.72(a) of 
    this part which results in a determination that the imported good does 
    not qualify as an originating good or should not be accorded such 
    treatment for any other reason as specifically provided for elsewhere 
    in this part.
    
    
    Sec. 181.72  Verification scope and method.
    
        (a) General. Subject to paragraph (e) of this section, Customs may 
    initiate a verification in order to determine whether a good imported 
    into the United States qualifies as an originating good for purposes of 
    preferential tariff treatment under the NAFTA as stated on the 
    Certificate of Origin pertaining to the good. Such a verification:
        (1) May also involve a verification of the origin of a material 
    that is used in the production of a good that is the subject of a 
    verification under this section;
        (2) May include verification of the applicable rate of duty applied 
    to an originating good in accordance with Annex 302.2 of the NAFTA and 
    may include a determination of whether a good is a qualifying good for 
    purposes of Annex 703.2 of the NAFTA; and
        (3) Shall be conducted only by means of one or more of the 
    following:
        (i) A verification letter which requests information from a 
    Canadian or Mexican exporter or producer, including a Canadian or 
    Mexican producer of a material, and which identifies the good or 
    material that is the subject of the verification. The verification 
    letter may be on Customs Form 28 or other appropriate format and may be 
    sent:
        (A) By certified or registered mail, or by any other method that 
    produces a confirmation of receipt by the exporter or producer; or
        (B) By any other method, regardless of whether it produces proof of 
    receipt by the exporter or producer;
        (ii) A written questionnaire sent to an exporter or a producer, 
    including a producer of a material, in Canada or Mexico. The 
    questionnaire:
        (A) May be sent by certified or registered mail, or by any other 
    method that produces a confirmation of receipt by the exporter or 
    producer; or
        (B) May be sent by any other method, regardless of whether it 
    produces proof of receipt by the exporter or producer; and
        (C) May be completed by the Canadian or Mexican exporter or 
    producer either in the English language or in the language of the 
    country in which that exporter or producer is located;
        (iii) Visits to the premises of an exporter or a producer, 
    including a producer of a material, in Canada or Mexico to review the 
    types of records referred to in Sec. 181.12 of this part and observe 
    the facilities used in the production of the good or material; and
        (iv) Any other method which results in information from a Canadian 
    or Mexican exporter or producer, including a Canadian or Mexican 
    producer of a material, that is relevant to the origin determination. 
    The information so obtained may form a basis for a negative 
    determination regarding a good (see Sec. 181.75(b) of this part) only 
    if the information is in writing and is signed by the exporter or 
    producer.
        (b) Applicable accounting principles. Any verification of a 
    regional value-content requirement undertaken pursuant to paragraph (a) 
    of this section shall be conducted in accordance with the Generally 
    Accepted Accounting Principles applied in the country from which the 
    good was exported to the United States.
        (c) Inquiries to importer not precluded. Nothing in paragraph (a) 
    of this section shall preclude Customs from directing inquiries or 
    requests to a U.S. importer for documents or other information 
    regarding the imported good. If such an inquiry or request involves 
    requesting the importer to obtain and provide written information from 
    the exporter or producer of the good or from the producer of a material 
    that is used in the production of the good, such information shall be 
    requested by the importer and provided to the importer by the exporter 
    or producer only on a voluntary basis, and a failure or refusal on the 
    part of the importer to obtain and provide such information shall not 
    be considered a failure of the exporter or producer to provide the 
    information and shall not constitute a ground for denying preferential 
    tariff treatment on the good.
        (d) Failure to respond to letter or questionnaire.--(1) Nonresponse 
    to initial letter or questionnaire. If the exporter or producer, 
    including a producer of a material, fails to respond to a verification 
    letter or questionnaire sent under paragraph (a)(2)(i) or (a)(2)(ii) of 
    this section within 30 calendar days from the date on which the letter 
    or questionnaire was sent, or such longer period as may be specified in 
    the letter or questionnaire, Customs shall send a follow-up 
    verification letter or questionnaire to that exporter or producer. The 
    follow-up letter or questionnaire:
        (i) Except where the verification letter or questionnaire only 
    involved the origin of a material used in the production of a good and 
    was sent to the producer of the material, may include the written 
    determination referred to in Sec. 181.75 of this part, provided that 
    the information specified in paragraph (b) of that section is also 
    included; and
        (ii) Shall be sent:
        (A) By certified or registered mail, or by any other method that 
    produces a confirmation of receipt by the exporter or producer, if so 
    requested by the customs administration of Canada or Mexico from which 
    the good was exported; or
        (B) By any method, if no request under paragraph (d)(1)(ii)(A) of 
    this section has been made by the Canadian or Mexican customs 
    administration.
        (2) Nonresponse to follow-up letter or questionnaire--(i) Producer 
    of a material. If a producer of a material fails to respond to a 
    follow-up verification letter or questionnaire sent under paragraph 
    (d)(1) of this section, Customs may consider the material to be non-
    originating for purposes of determining whether the good to which that 
    material relates is an originating good.
        (ii) Exporter or producer of a good. If the exporter or producer of 
    a good fails to respond to a follow-up verification letter or 
    questionnaire sent under paragraph (d)(1) of this section, Customs may 
    consider the good to be non-originating and consequently may deny 
    preferential tariff treatment on the good as follows:
        (A) If the follow-up letter or questionnaire included a written 
    determination as provided for in paragraph (d)(1)(i) of this section 
    and the exporter or producer fails to respond to the follow-up letter 
    or questionnaire within 30 calendar days or such longer period as 
    specified therein:
        (1) From the date on which the follow-up letter or questionnaire 
    and 
    
    [[Page 46377]]
    written determination were received by the exporter or producer, if 
    sent pursuant to paragraph (d)(1)(ii)(A) of this section; or
        (2) From the date on which the follow-up letter or questionnaire 
    and written determination were either received by the exporter or 
    producer or sent by Customs, if sent in accordance with paragraph 
    (d)(1)(ii)(B) of this section; or
        (B) Provided that the procedures set forth in Secs. 181.75 and 
    181.76 of this part are followed, if the follow-up letter or 
    questionnaire does not include a written determination as provided for 
    in paragraph (d)(1)(i) of this section and the exporter or producer 
    fails to respond to the follow-up letter or questionnaire within 30 
    calendar days or such longer period as specified in the letter or 
    questionnaire:
        (1) From the date on which the follow-up letter or questionnaire 
    was received by the exporter or producer, if sent pursuant to paragraph 
    (d)(1)(ii)(A) of this section; or
        (2) From the date on which the follow-up letter or questionnaire 
    was either received by the exporter or producer or sent by Customs, if 
    sent in accordance with paragraph (d)(1)(ii)(B) of this section.
        (e) Calculation of regional value content under net cost method--
    (1) General. Where a Canadian or Mexican producer of a good elects to 
    calculate the regional value content of a good under the net cost 
    method as set forth in General Note 12, HTSUS, and in the appendix to 
    this part, Customs may not, during the time period over which that net 
    cost is calculated, conduct a verification under Sec. 181.72(a) of this 
    part with respect to the regional value content of that good.
        (2) Cost submission for motor vehicles. Where, pursuant to General 
    Note 12, HTSUS, and the appendix to this part, a Canadian or Mexican 
    producer of a light duty vehicle or heavy duty vehicle, as defined in 
    the appendix to this part, elects to average its regional value content 
    calculation over its fiscal year, Customs may request, in writing, that 
    the producer provide a cost submission reflecting the actual costs 
    incurred in the production of the category of motor vehicles for which 
    the election was made. Such a written request shall constitute a 
    verification letter under paragraph (a)(2)(i) of this section, and the 
    requested cost submission shall be submitted to Customs within 180 
    calendar days after the close of the producer's fiscal year or within 
    60 days from the date on which the request was made, whichever is 
    later.
    
    
    Sec. 181.73  Notification of verification visit.
    
        (a) Written notification required. Prior to conducting a 
    verification visit in Canada or Mexico pursuant to 
    Sec. 181.72(a)(2)(iii) of this part, Customs shall give written 
    notification of the intention to conduct the visit. Such notification 
    shall be delivered:
        (1) By certified or registered mail, or by any other method that 
    produces a confirmation of receipt, to the address of the Canadian or 
    Mexican exporter or producer whose premises are to be visited;
        (2) To the customs administration of the country in which the visit 
    is to occur; and
        (3) If requested by the country in which the visit is to occur, to 
    the embassy of that country located in the United States.
        (b) Contents of notification. The notification referred to in 
    paragraph (a) of this section shall include:
        (1) The identity of the Customs office and officer issuing the 
    notification;
        (2) The name of the Canadian or Mexican exporter or producer of the 
    good, or producer of the material, whose premises are to be visited;
        (3) The date and place of the proposed verification visit;
        (4) The object and scope of the proposed verification visit, 
    including specific reference to the good or material that is the 
    subject of the verification;
        (5) The names and titles of the Customs officers performing the 
    proposed verification visit;
        (6) The legal authority for the proposed verification visit; and
        (7) A request that the Canadian or Mexican exporter or producer of 
    the good, or producer of the material, provide its written consent for 
    the proposed verification visit.
    
    
    Sec. 181.74  Verification visit procedures.
    
        (a) Written consent required. Prior to conducting a verification 
    visit in Canada or Mexico pursuant to Sec. 181.72(a)(2)(iii) of this 
    part, Customs shall obtain the written consent of the Canadian or 
    Mexican exporter or producer of the good or producer of the material 
    whose premises are to be visited.
        (b) Written consent procedures. The written consent provided for in 
    paragraph (a) of this section shall be delivered by certified or 
    registered mail, or by any other method that generates a reliable 
    receipt, to the Customs officer who gave the notification provided for 
    in Sec. 181.73 of this part.
        (c) Failure to provide written consent or to cooperate or to 
    maintain records. Except as otherwise provided in paragraph (d) of this 
    section, where a Canadian or Mexican exporter or producer of a good, or 
    a Canadian or Mexican producer of a material, has not given its written 
    consent to a proposed verification visit within 30 calendar days of 
    receipt of notification pursuant to Sec. 181.73 of this part, Customs 
    may deny preferential tariff treatment to that good, or for purposes of 
    determining whether a good is an originating good may consider as non-
    originating that material, that would have been the subject of the 
    visit, provided that, as regards the good, notice of intent to deny 
    such treatment is given to that exporter or producer of the good and to 
    the U.S. importer thereof prior to taking such action. A failure on the 
    part of the Canadian or Mexican exporter or producer of a good, or on 
    the part of the Canadian or Mexican producer of a material, to maintain 
    records or provide access to such records or otherwise cooperate during 
    the verification visit shall mean that the verification visit never 
    took place and may be treated by Customs in the same manner as a 
    failure to give written consent to a verification visit. However, in 
    the case of a Canadian or Mexican producer of a good who is found 
    during a verification visit to have not maintained records in 
    accordance with the Generally Accepted Accounting Principles applied in 
    the producer's country, Customs may deny preferential tariff treatment 
    on the good based solely on a failure to so maintain those records only 
    if the producer does not conform the records to those Principles within 
    60 calendar days after Customs informs the producer in writing of that 
    failure.
        (d) Postponement of visit in Canada or Mexico. Following receipt of 
    the notification provided for in Sec. 181.73 of this part, the Canadian 
    or Mexican customs administration may, within 15 calendar days of 
    receipt of the notification, postpone the proposed verification visit 
    for a period not exceeding 60 calendar days from the date of such 
    receipt by providing written notice of the postponement to the Customs 
    officer who issued the notification of the verification visit, unless a 
    longer period is requested and agreed to by Customs. Such a 
    postponement shall not constitute a failure to provide written consent 
    within the meaning of paragraph (c) of this section and shall not 
    otherwise by itself constitute a valid basis upon which Customs may:
        (1) Consider a material that is used in the production of a good to 
    be a non-originating material; or
        (2) Deny preferential tariff treatment to a good. 
    
    [[Page 46378]]
    
        (e) Verification visits within the United States--(1) Notification 
    and consent procedure. When the Canadian or Mexican customs 
    administration intends to conduct a verification visit in the United 
    States, notification of such intent will be given, and consent will be 
    required, as provided for under Article 506 of the NAFTA. For purposes 
    of the required notification to Customs, such notification shall be 
    sent to Project North Star Coordination Center, P.O. Box 400, Buffalo, 
    New York 14225-0400.
        (2) Postponement of visit. Following receipt of notification from 
    the Canadian or Mexican customs administration of its intention to 
    conduct a verification visit in the United States, Customs may, within 
    15 calendar days of receipt of the notification, postpone the proposed 
    verification visit for a period not exceeding 60 calendar days from the 
    date of such receipt by providing written notice of the postponement to 
    the Canadian or Mexican customs administration.
        (3) Designation of observers. A U.S. exporter or producer, 
    including a producer of a material, whose good or material is the 
    subject of a verification visit by the Canadian or Mexican customs 
    administration shall be allowed to designate two observers to be 
    present during the visit, subject to the following conditions:
        (i) The U.S. exporter or producer shall not be required to 
    designate observers;
        (ii) There shall be no restriction on the class of persons that may 
    be designated as observers by the U.S. exporter or producer;
        (iii) The observers to be present are designated in the written 
    consent to the proposed visit or subsequent thereto;
        (iv) The observers do not participate in the verification visit in 
    a manner other than as passive observers;
        (v) The presence of observers shall in no way affect the right to 
    have legal counsel or other advisors present during the visit;
        (vi) There shall be no obligation on the part of the United States 
    government or on the part of the Canadian or Mexican government to 
    designate observers from its staff, even when the U.S. exporter or 
    producer fails to, or specifically declines to, designate observers; 
    and
        (vii) The failure of the U.S. exporter or producer to designate 
    observers shall not result in the postponement of the visit.
    
    
    Sec. 181.75  Issuance of origin determination.
    
        (a) General. Except in the case of a pattern of conduct within the 
    meaning of Sec. 181.76(c) of this part, following receipt and analysis 
    of the results of an origin verification initiated under Sec. 181.72(a) 
    of this part in regard to a good imported into the United States and 
    prior to denying preferential tariff treatment on the import 
    transaction which gave rise to the origin verification, Customs shall 
    provide the exporter or producer whose good is the subject of the 
    verification with a written determination of whether the good qualifies 
    as an originating good. Subject to paragraph (b) of this section, the 
    written origin determination shall be sent within 60 calendar days 
    after conclusion of the origin verification process, unless 
    circumstances require additional time, and shall set forth:
        (1) A description of the good that was the subject of the 
    verification together with the identifying numbers and dates of the 
    export and import documents pertaining to the good;
        (2) Subject to the provisions of Sec. 181.131 of this part and 
    except in the case of a negative origin determination where specific 
    findings of fact cannot be made because of a failure to respond to a 
    follow-up verification letter or questionnaire sent under Sec. 181.72 
    of this part, a statement setting forth the findings of fact made in 
    connection with the verification and upon which the determination is 
    based; and
        (3) With specific reference to the rules applicable to originating 
    goods as set forth in General Note 12, HTSUS, and in the appendix to 
    this part, the legal basis for the determination.
        (b) Negative origin determinations. If Customs determines, as a 
    result of an origin verification initiated under Sec. 181.72(a) of this 
    part, that the good which is the subject of the verification does not 
    qualify as an originating good, the written determination required 
    under paragraph (a) of this section:
        (1) Shall be sent by certified or registered mail, or by any other 
    method that produces a confirmation of receipt by the exporter or 
    producer, if so requested by the customs administration of Canada or 
    Mexico from which the good was exported; and
        (2) Shall, in addition to the information specified in paragraph 
    (a) of this section, set forth the following:
        (i) A notice of intent to deny preferential tariff treatment on the 
    good which is the subject of the determination;
        (ii) The specific date after which preferential tariff treatment 
    will be denied, as established in accordance with Sec. 181.76(a)(1) of 
    this part;
        (iii) The period, established in accordance with Sec. 181.76(a)(1) 
    of this part, during which the exporter or producer of the good may 
    provide written comments or additional information regarding the 
    determination; and
        (iv) A statement advising the exporter or producer of the right to 
    file a protest under 19 U.S.C. 1514 and part 174 of this chapter:
        (A) Within 90 days after notice of liquidation is provided pursuant 
    to part 159 of this chapter; or
        (B) In cases where the negative origin determination does not 
    result in a liquidation, within 90 days after the date of issuance of 
    the written determination.
    Sec. 181.76  Application of origin determinations.
    
        (a) General. Except as otherwise provided in this section, an 
    origin determination may be applied upon issuance of the determination 
    under Sec. 181.75 of this part.
        (b) Negative origin determinations. In the case of a negative 
    origin determination issued under Sec. 181.75(b) of this part:
        (1) The date on which preferential tariff treatment may be denied 
    shall be no earlier than 30 calendar days from the date on which:
        (i) Receipt of the written determination by the exporter or 
    producer is confirmed, if a request under Sec. 181.75(b)(1) of this 
    part has been made; or
        (ii) The written determination is sent by Customs, if no request 
    under Sec. 181.75(b)(1) of this part has been made; and
        (2) Before denying preferential tariff treatment, Customs shall 
    take into account any comments or additional information provided by 
    the exporter or producer during the period established in accordance 
    with paragraph (b)(1) of this section.
        (c) Cases involving a pattern of conduct. Where multiple origin 
    verifications initiated under Sec. 181.72(a) of this part indicate a 
    pattern of conduct by an exporter or producer involving false or 
    unsupported representations on Certificates of Origin that a good 
    imported into the United States qualifies as an originating good, 
    Customs may deny subsequent claims for preferential tariff treatment on 
    identical goods exported or produced by such person until that person 
    establishes compliance with the rules applicable to originating goods 
    as set forth in General Note 12, HTSUS, and in this part, provided that 
    advance written notice of the intent to deny such claims is given to 
    the importer. For purposes of this paragraph, a ``pattern of conduct'' 
    means repeated instances of 
    
    [[Page 46379]]
    false or unsupported representations by an exporter or producer as 
    established by Customs on the basis of not fewer than two origin 
    verifications of two or more importations of the good that result in 
    the issuance of not fewer than two written determinations issued to 
    that exporter or producer pursuant to Sec. 181.75 of this part which 
    conclude, as a finding of fact, that Certificates of Origin completed 
    and signed by that exporter or producer with respect to identical goods 
    contain false or unsupported representations.
        (d) Differing determinations. Where Customs determines, either as a 
    result of an origin verification initiated under Sec. 181.72(a) of this 
    part or under any other circumstance, that a certain good imported into 
    the United States does not qualify as an originating good based on a 
    tariff classification or a value applied in the United States to one or 
    more materials used in the production of the good, including a material 
    used in the production of another material that is used in the 
    production of the good, which differs from the tariff classification or 
    value applied to the materials by the country from which the good was 
    exported, the Customs determination shall not become effective until 
    Customs provides written notification thereof both to the U.S. importer 
    of the good and to the person who completed and signed the Certificate 
    of Origin upon which the claim for preferential tariff treatment for 
    the good was based.
        (e) Applicability of a determination to prior importations. Customs 
    shall not apply a determination made under paragraph (c) of this 
    section to an importation made before the effective date of the 
    determination if, prior to notification of the determination, the 
    customs administration of the country from which the good was exported 
    either issued an advance ruling under Article 509 of the NAFTA or any 
    other ruling on the tariff classification or on the value of such 
    materials, or gave consistent treatment to the entry of the materials 
    under the tariff classification or value at issue, on which a person is 
    entitled to rely and on which that person did in fact rely. For 
    purposes of this paragraph, the person who received notification of the 
    determination shall demonstrate to the satisfaction of Customs, in 
    writing within 30 calendar days of receipt of the notification, that 
    the conditions set forth herein have been met. For purposes of this 
    paragraph:
        (1) A ``ruling'' on which a person is entitled to rely in the case 
    of Canada must be issued pursuant to section 43.1(1) of the Customs Act 
    (Advance Rulings) or in accordance with Departmental Memorandum 11-11-1 
    (National Customs Rulings) and in the case of Mexico must be issued 
    pursuant to Article 34 of the Codigo Fiscal de la Federacion and 
    pursuant to Article 30 of the Ley Aduanera or the applicable provision 
    of Mexican law related to advance rulings under Article 509 of the 
    NAFTA; and
        (2) ``Consistent treatment'' means the established application by 
    the Canadian or Mexican customs administration that can be 
    substantiated by the continued acceptance by the customs administration 
    of the tariff classification or value of identical materials on 
    importations of the materials into Canada or Mexico by the same 
    importer over a period of not less than two years immediately prior to 
    the date of signature of the Certificate of Origin for the good that is 
    the subject of the determination referred to in paragraph (d) of this 
    section, provided that with regard to those importations:
        (i) The tariff classification or value of the materials was not the 
    subject of a verification, review or appeal by that customs 
    administration on the date of the determination under paragraph (d) of 
    this section; and
        (ii) The materials had not been accorded a different tariff 
    classification or value by one or more district, regional or local 
    offices of that customs administration on the date of the determination 
    under paragraph (d) of this section.
        (f) Detrimental reliance. If Customs proposes to deny preferential 
    tariff treatment to a good pursuant to a determination made under 
    paragraph (d) of this section, Customs shall postpone the application 
    of the determination for a period not exceeding 90 calendar days from 
    the date of issuance of the determination where the U.S. importer of 
    the good, or the person who completed and signed the Certificate of 
    Origin upon which the claim for preferential tariff treatment for the 
    good was based, demonstrates to the satisfaction of Customs that it has 
    relied in good faith to its detriment on the tariff classification or 
    value applied to such materials by the customs administration of the 
    country from which the good was exported.
    
    Subpart H--Penalties
    
    
    Sec. 181.81  Applicability to NAFTA transactions.
    
        Except as otherwise provided in Sec. 181.82 of this part, all 
    criminal, civil or administrative penalties which may be imposed on 
    U.S. importers, exporters and producers for violations of the Customs 
    and related laws and regulations shall also apply to U.S. importers, 
    exporters and producers for violations of the laws and regulations 
    relating to the NAFTA.
    
    
    Sec. 181.82  Exceptions to application of penalties.
    
        (a) General. A U.S. importer who makes a corrected declaration 
    under Sec. 181.21(b) of this part shall not be subject to civil or 
    administrative penalties for having made an incorrect declaration, 
    provided that the corrected declaration was voluntarily made. In 
    addition, civil or administrative penalties provided for under the U.S. 
    Customs laws and regulations shall not be imposed on an exporter or 
    producer in the United States who voluntarily provides written 
    notification pursuant to Sec. 181.11(d) of this part with respect to 
    the making of an incorrect certification.
        (b) ``Voluntarily'' defined--(1) General. For purposes of paragraph 
    (a) of this section, the making of a corrected declaration or the 
    providing of written notification of an incorrect certification will be 
    deemed to have been done voluntarily if:
        (i) Done before the commencement of a formal investigation;
        (ii) Done before any of the events specified in Sec. 162.74(g) of 
    this chapter have occurred;
        (iii) Done within 30 calendar days after either the U.S. importer 
    with respect to a declaration that an imported good qualified as an 
    originating good, or the U.S. exporter or producer with respect to a 
    certification pertaining to a good exported to Canada or Mexico, had 
    reason to believe that the declaration or certification was not 
    correct;
        (iv) Accompanied by a written statement setting forth the 
    information specified in paragraph (b)(3) of this section; and
        (v) In the case of a corrected declaration, accompanied or followed 
    by a tender of any actual loss of duties in accordance with paragraph 
    (b)(5) of this section.
        (2) Cases involving fraud. Notwithstanding paragraph (b)(1) of this 
    section, a person who acted by means of fraud in making an incorrect 
    declaration or certification may not make a voluntary correction 
    thereof. For purposes of this paragraph (b)(2), the term ``fraud'' 
    shall have the meaning set forth in paragraph (B)(3) of appendix B to 
    part 171 of this chapter.
        (3) Written statement. For purposes of paragraph (a) of this 
    section, each corrected declaration or notification of an incorrect 
    certification shall be 
    
    [[Page 46380]]
    accompanied by a written statement which:
        (i) Identifies the class or kind of good to which the incorrect 
    declaration or certification relates;
        (ii) Identifies each import or export transaction affected by the 
    incorrect declaration or certification with reference to each port of 
    importation or exportation and the approximate date of each importation 
    or exportation. A U.S. producer who provides written notification that 
    certain information in a Certificate of Origin is incorrect and who is 
    unable to identify the specific export transactions under this 
    paragraph shall provide as much information concerning those 
    transactions as the producer, by the exercise of good faith and due 
    diligence, is able to obtain;
        (iii) Specifies the nature of the incorrect statements or omissions 
    regarding the declaration or certification; and
        (iv) Sets forth, to the best of the person's knowledge, the true 
    and accurate information or data which should have been covered by or 
    provided in the declaration or certification, and states that the 
    person will provide any additional information or data which is unknown 
    at the time of making the corrected declaration or certification within 
    30 calendar days or within any extension of that 30-day period as 
    Customs may permit in order for the person to obtain the information or 
    data.
        (4) Substantial compliance. For purposes of this section, a person 
    shall be deemed to have voluntarily corrected a declaration or 
    certification even though that person provides corrected information in 
    a manner which does not conform to the requirements of the written 
    statement specified in paragraph (b)(3) of this section, provided that:
        (i) Customs is satisfied that the information was provided before 
    the commencement of a formal investigation; and
        (ii) The information provided includes, orally or in writing, 
    substantially the same information as that specified in paragraph 
    (b)(3) of this section.
        (5) Tender of actual loss of duties. A U.S. importer who makes a 
    corrected declaration shall tender any actual loss of duties at the 
    time of making the corrected declaration, or within 30 calendar days 
    thereafter, or within any extension of that 30-day period as Customs 
    may allow in order for the importer to obtain the information or data 
    necessary to calculate the duties owed.
        (6) Applicability of prior disclosure provisions. Where a person 
    fails to meet the requirements of this section because the correction 
    of the declaration or the written notification of an incorrect 
    certification is not considered to be done voluntarily as provided in 
    this section, that person may nevertheless qualify for prior disclosure 
    treatment under 19 U.S.C. 1592(c)(4) and the regulations issued 
    thereunder.
    
    Subpart I--Advance Ruling Procedures
    
    
    Sec. 181.91  Applicability.
    
        This subpart sets forth the rules which govern the issuance and 
    application of advance rulings under Article 509 of the NAFTA and the 
    procedures which apply for purposes of review of advance rulings under 
    Article 510 of the NAFTA. Importers in the United States and exporters 
    and producers located in Canada or Mexico may request and obtain an 
    advance ruling on a NAFTA transaction only in accordance with the 
    provisions of this subpart whenever the requested ruling involves a 
    subject matter specified in Sec. 181.92(b)(6) of this part. 
    Accordingly, the provisions of this subpart shall apply in lieu of the 
    administrative ruling provisions contained in subpart A of part 177 of 
    this chapter except where the request for a ruling involves a subject 
    matter not specified in Sec. 181.92(b)(6).
    
    
    Sec. 181.92  Definitions and general NAFTA advance ruling practice.
    
        (a) Definitions. For purposes of this subpart:
        (1) An advance ruling is a written statement issued by the 
    Headquarters Office or the National Commodity Specialist Division or by 
    such other office as designated by the Commissioner of Customs that 
    interprets and applies the provisions of NAFTA to a specific set of 
    facts involving any subject matter specified in Sec. 181.92(b)(6) of 
    this part. An ``advance ruling letter'' is an advance ruling issued in 
    response to a written request and set forth in a letter addressed to 
    the person making the request or his designee. A ``published advance 
    ruling'' is an advance ruling which has been published in full text in 
    the Customs Bulletin.
        (2) An authorized agent is a person expressly authorized by a 
    principal to act on his or her behalf. An advance ruling requested by 
    an attorney or other person acting as an agent must include a statement 
    describing the authority under which the request is made. With the 
    exception of attorneys whose authority to represent is known, any 
    person appearing before Customs as an agent in connection with an 
    advance ruling request may be required to present evidence of his or 
    her authority to represent the principal. The foregoing requirements 
    will not apply to an individual representing his or her full-time 
    employer or to a bona-fide officer, director or other qualified 
    representative of a corporation, association, or organized group.
        (3) The term Headquarters Office, means the Office of Regulations 
    and Rulings at Headquarters, United States Customs Service, Washington, 
    DC.
        (4) An information letter is a written statement issued by the 
    Headquarters Office or the National Commodity Specialist Division or by 
    such other office as designated by the Commissioner of Customs that 
    does no more than call attention to a well-established interpretation 
    of principles under the NAFTA, without applying it to a specific set of 
    facts. If Customs believes that general information may be of some 
    benefit to the person making the request, an information letter may be 
    issued in response to a request for an advance ruling when:
        (i) The request suggests that general information, rather than an 
    advance ruling, is actually being sought;
        (ii) The request is incomplete or otherwise fails to meet the 
    requirements set forth in this subpart; or
        (iii) The requested advance ruling cannot be issued for any other 
    reason.
        (5) A NAFTA transaction is an act or activity to which the NAFTA 
    provisions apply. A ``prospective'' NAFTA transaction is one that is 
    merely contemplated or is currently being undertaken but has not 
    resulted in any arrival or in the filing of any entry or entry summary 
    or other document or in any other act so as to bring the transaction, 
    or any part of it, under the jurisdiction of any Customs office. A 
    ``current'' NAFTA transaction is one which is presently under 
    consideration by a field office of Customs. A ``completed'' NAFTA 
    transaction is one which has been acted upon by a Customs field office 
    and with respect to which that office has issued a determination which 
    is final in nature, but is (or was) subject to appeal, petition, 
    protest or other review as provided in the applicable Customs laws and 
    regulations. An ``ongoing'' NAFTA transaction is a series of identical, 
    recurring transactions, consisting of current and completed 
    transactions where future transactions are contemplated.
        (6) The term National Commodity Specialist Division means the 
    National Commodity Specialist Division, United States Customs Service, 
    New York, New York. 
    
    [[Page 46381]]
    
        (b) General advance ruling practice. An advance ruling may be 
    requested under the provisions of this subpart with respect to 
    prospective NAFTA transactions. An advance ruling will be based on the 
    facts and circumstances presented by the requester.
        (1) Prospective NAFTA transactions. It is in the interest of the 
    sound administration of the NAFTA that persons engaging in any 
    transaction affected by NAFTA fully understand the consequences of that 
    transaction prior to its consummation. For this reason, Customs will 
    give full and careful consideration to written requests from importers 
    in the United States and exporters or producers in Canada or Mexico for 
    advance rulings or information setting forth, with respect to a 
    specifically described transaction, a definitive interpretation of 
    applicable law or other appropriate information.
        (2) Current or ongoing NAFTA transactions. A question arising in 
    connection with a NAFTA transaction already before a Customs field 
    office by reason of arrival, entry or otherwise will be resolved by 
    that office in accordance with the principles and precedents previously 
    announced by the Headquarters Office. If such a question cannot be 
    resolved on the basis of clearly established rules set forth in the 
    NAFTA or the regulations thereunder, or in applicable Treasury 
    Decisions, rulings, opinions, or court decisions published in the 
    Customs Bulletin, that field office may, if it believes it appropriate, 
    forward the question to the Headquarters Office for consideration.
        (3) Completed NAFTA transactions. A question arising in connection 
    with an entry of merchandise which has been liquidated, or in 
    connection with any other completed NAFTA transaction, may not be the 
    subject of an advance ruling request under this subpart.
        (4) Oral advice. Customs will not issue an advance ruling in 
    response to an oral request. Oral opinions or advice of Customs 
    personnel are not binding on Customs. However, oral inquiries may be 
    made to Customs offices regarding existing advance rulings, the scope 
    of such advance rulings, the types of transactions with respect to 
    which Customs will issue advance rulings, the scope of the advance 
    rulings which may be issued, or the procedures to be followed in 
    submitting advance ruling requests, as prescribed in this subpart.
        (5) Who may request an advance ruling. An advance ruling may be 
    requested by any of the following persons (individuals, corporations, 
    partnerships, associations, or other entities or groups) having a 
    direct and demonstrable interest in the question or questions presented 
    in the advance ruling request, or by the authorized agent of any such 
    person:
        (i) An importer in the United States;
        (ii) An exporter or a producer of a good in Canada or Mexico; or
        (iii) A Canadian or Mexican producer of a material that is used in 
    the production of a good imported into the United States, but only with 
    regard to that material and only in regard to a matter described in 
    paragraphs (b)(6)(i) through (v) and (vii) of this section.
        (6) Subject matter of advance rulings. Customs shall issue advance 
    rulings under this subpart concerning the following:
        (i) Whether materials imported from a country other than the United 
    States, Canada or Mexico and used in the production of a good undergo 
    an applicable change in tariff classification set forth in General Note 
    12, HTSUS, as a result of production occurring entirely in the United 
    States, Canada and/or Mexico;
        (ii) Whether a good satisfies a regional value-content requirement 
    under the transaction value method or under the net cost method as 
    provided for in General Note 12, HTSUS, and in this part;
         (iii) For purposes of determining whether a good satisfies a 
    regional value-content requirement under General Note 12, HTSUS, and 
    under this part, the appropriate basis or method for value to be 
    applied by an exporter or a producer in Canada or Mexico, in accordance 
    with the principles set forth in the appendix to this part, for 
    calculating the transaction value of the good or of the materials used 
    in the production of the good;
         (iv) For purposes of determining whether a good satisfies a 
    regional value-content requirement under General Note 12, HTSUS, and 
    under this part, the appropriate basis or method for reasonably 
    allocating costs, in accordance with the allocation methods set forth 
    in the appendix to this part, for calculating the net cost of the good 
    or the value of an intermediate material;
         (v) Whether a good qualifies as an originating good under General 
    Note 12, HTSUS, and under the appendix to this part;
         (vi) Whether a good that re-enters the United States after having 
    been exported from the United States to Canada or Mexico for repair or 
    alteration qualifies for duty-free treatment in accordance with 
    Sec. 181.64 of this part;
         (vii) Whether the proposed or actual marking of a good satisfies 
    country of origin marking requirements under part 134 of this chapter 
    and under the Marking Rules set forth in part 102 of this chapter;
         (viii) Whether an originating good qualifies as a good of Canada 
    or Mexico under Annex 300-B, Annex 302.2 and Chapter Seven of the 
    NAFTA; and
         (ix) Whether a good is a qualifying good under Chapter Seven of 
    the NAFTA.
    
    
    Sec. 181.93  Submission of advance ruling requests.
    
         (a) Form. A request for an advance ruling should be written in the 
    English language and in the form of a letter. For any subject matter 
    specified in Sec. 181.92(b)(6) (i), (v), (vi), (vii), (viii) or (ix) of 
    this part, the request may be directed either to the Commissioner of 
    Customs, Attention: Office of Regulations and Rulings, Washington, DC 
    20229, or to the National Commodity Specialist Division, United States 
    Customs Service, 6 World Trade Center, New York, NY 10048. For any 
    subject matter specified in Sec. 181.92(b)(6)(ii), (iii) or (iv) of 
    this part, the request must be directed to the Commissioner of Customs, 
    Attention: Office of Regulations and Rulings, Washington, DC 20229.
         (b) Content--(1) General. Each request for an advance ruling must 
    identify the specific subject matter under Sec. 181.92(b)(6) of this 
    part to which the request relates, must contain a complete statement of 
    all relevant facts relating to the NAFTA transaction and must state 
    that the information presented is accurate and complete. The following 
    facts must be included: the names, addresses, and other identifying 
    information of all interested parties (if known); the name of the port 
    or place at which any good involved in the transaction will be imported 
    or which will otherwise have jurisdiction with respect to the act or 
    activity described in the transaction; and a description of the 
    transaction itself, appropriate in detail to the subject matter of the 
    requested advance ruling. Where the request for an advance ruling is 
    submitted by or on behalf of the importer of the good involved in the 
    transaction, the request must include the name and address of the 
    exporter and, if known, producer of the good. Where the request for an 
    advance ruling is submitted by or on behalf of the exporter of the good 
    involved in the transaction, the request must include the name and 
    address of the producer and importer of the good, if known. Where the 
    request for an advance ruling is submitted by or on behalf of the 
    producer of the good involved in the transaction, the request must 
    include the name and address of the exporter 
    
    [[Page 46382]]
    and importer of the good, if known. In addition, where relevant to the 
    issue that is the subject of the request for an advance ruling, and 
    regardless of the specific nature of the advance ruling requested, the 
    request must include:
         (i) A copy of any advance ruling or other ruling with respect to 
    the tariff classification of the good that has been issued by Customs 
    to the person submitting the request; or
         (ii) Sufficient information to enable Customs to classify the good 
    where no advance ruling or other ruling with respect to the tariff 
    classification of the good has been issued by Customs to the person 
    submitting the request. Such information includes a full description of 
    the good, including, where relevant, the composition of the good, a 
    description of the process by which the good is manufactured, a 
    description of the packaging in which the good is contained, the 
    anticipated use of the good and its commercial, common or technical 
    designation, and product literature, drawings, photographs or 
    schematics.
         (2) Description of transaction--(i) General. The prospective 
    Customs transaction to which the advance ruling request relates must be 
    described in sufficient detail to permit proper application of the 
    relevant NAFTA provisions.
         (ii) Tariff change rulings--(A) General. If the transaction 
    involves the importation of a good or material for which a ruling is 
    requested as to whether a change in tariff classification has occurred, 
    the request should set forth: The principal or chief use of the good or 
    material in the United States and the commercial, common, or technical 
    designation of the good or material; if the good or material is 
    composed of two or more substances, the relative quantity (by both 
    weight and by volume) and value of each substance; any applicable 
    special invoicing requirements set forth in part 141 of this chapter 
    (if known); and any other information which may assist in determining 
    the appropriate tariff classification of the good or material. The 
    advance ruling request should also note, whenever germane, the purchase 
    price of the good or material, and its approximate selling price in the 
    United States. Each individual request for an advance ruling must be 
    limited to five merchandise items, all of which must be of the same 
    class or kind. Only NAFTA tariff change rulings will be issued under 
    this subpart. Tariff classification rulings which do not involve the 
    application of the NAFTA shall be issued under part 177 of this 
    chapter.
         (B) Issues involving a change in tariff classification of a 
    material. Where the request for the advance ruling involves the 
    application of a rule of origin that requires an assessment of whether 
    materials used in the production of an imported good undergo an 
    applicable change in tariff classification, the request must list each 
    material used in the production of the good and must:
         (1) Identify each material which is claimed to be an originating 
    material and provide a complete description of each such material, 
    including the basis for the claim as to originating status;
         (2) Identify each material which is a non-originating material, or 
    for which the origin is unknown, and provide a complete description of 
    each such material, including its tariff classification if known; and
         (3) Describe all processing operations employed in the production 
    of the good, the location of each operation and the sequence in which 
    the operations occur.
         (iii) NAFTA rulings on regional value content. NAFTA advance 
    ruling requests, if involving the issue of whether a good satisfies a 
    regional value content requirement under the transaction value method 
    or under the net cost method, or under both methods, as provided for in 
    General Note 12, HTSUS, and in the appendix to this part, must specify 
    each method under which eligibility is sought. Where the transaction 
    value method is specified, the advance ruling request must include: 
    information sufficient to calculate the transaction value of the good 
    in accordance with schedule II of the appendix to this part with 
    respect to the transaction of the producer of the good, adjusted to an 
    F.O.B. basis; information sufficient to calculate the value of each 
    non-originating material, or material the origin of which is unknown, 
    that is used by the producer in the production of the good in 
    accordance with the provisions of section 7 and, where applicable, 
    section 6(10) of the appendix to this part; a complete description of 
    each material that is claimed to be an originating material and that is 
    used in the production of the good, including the basis for the claim 
    as to originating status; information sufficient to permit an 
    examination of the factors enumerated in schedule III or VIII of the 
    appendix to this part where the advance ruling request involves an 
    issue of whether, with respect to the good or material under the 
    applicable schedule, the transaction value is acceptable; and 
    information sufficient for any other circumstance to make any 
    determination relevant to the application of the regional value content 
    requirement to the good. Where the net cost method is specified, the 
    advance ruling request must include: a list of all product, period and 
    other costs relevant to determining the total cost of the good as 
    defined in the appendix to this part; a list of all excluded costs to 
    be subtracted from the total cost of the good as provided in the 
    appendix to this part; information sufficient to calculate the value of 
    each non-originating material, or material the origin of which is 
    unknown, that is used in the production of the good, in accordance with 
    section 7 of the appendix to this part; the basis for any allocation of 
    costs in accordance with schedule VII of the appendix to this part; the 
    period over which the net cost calculation is to be made; and any other 
    information relevant to determining the appropriate value of any cost 
    under this part. Where the advance ruling request concerns only the 
    calculation of an element of a regional value content formula, and with 
    regard to the information specified in paragraphs (b)(1) through (b)(5) 
    of this section, the request need only contain the following: the 
    information in paragraph (b)(1), other than the information specified 
    in paragraph (b)(1)(i) or (b)(1)(ii); the information in paragraph 
    (b)(5); and any information in this paragraph (b)(2)(iii) which is 
    relevant to the issue that is the subject of the request.
        (iv) NAFTA rulings on producer materials. Where the advance ruling 
    request involves an issue with respect to an intermediate material 
    under Article 402(10) of the NAFTA (see section 7(4) of the appendix to 
    this part), the request must contain sufficient information to 
    determine the origin and value of the material in accordance with 
    Article 402(11) of the NAFTA (see section 7(6) of the appendix to this 
    part). Where the advance ruling request is submitted by a Canadian or 
    Mexican producer of a material under Sec. 181.92(b)(5)(iii) of this 
    part and concerns only the origin of such material, and with regard to 
    the information specified in paragraphs (b)(1) through (b)(5) of this 
    section, the request need only include the following: the information 
    in paragraph (b)(1), including any information specified in paragraph 
    (b)(1)(i) or (b)(1)(ii) which is relevant to the issue that is the 
    subject of the request; any information in paragraph (b)(2)(ii)(B) 
    which is relevant to the issue that is the subject of the request; a 
    sample as provided for in paragraph (b)(3) if relevant to the issue 
    that is the subject of the request; and the information in paragraph 
    (b)(5).
        (3) Samples. Each request for an advance ruling should be 
    accompanied by photographs, drawings, or other 
    
    [[Page 46383]]
    pictorial representations of the good and, whenever possible, by a 
    sample of the good unless a precise description of the good is not 
    essential to the advance ruling requested. Any good consisting of 
    materials in chemical or physical combination for which a laboratory 
    analysis has been prepared by or for the manufacturer should include a 
    copy of that analysis, flow charts, CAS number, and related 
    information. A sample submitted in connection with a request for an 
    advance ruling becomes a part of the Customs file in the matter and 
    will be retained until the advance ruling is issued or the advance 
    ruling request is otherwise disposed of. A sample should only be 
    submitted with the understanding that all or a part of it may be 
    damaged or consumed in the course of examination, testing, analysis, or 
    other actions undertaken in connection with the advance ruling request.
        (4) Related documents. If the question or questions presented in 
    the advance ruling request directly relate to matters set forth in any 
    invoice, contract, agreement, or other document, a copy of the document 
    must be submitted with the request. (Original documents should not be 
    submitted inasmuch as any documents or exhibits furnished with the 
    advance ruling request become a part of the Customs file in the matter 
    and cannot be returned.) The relevant facts reflected in any documents 
    submitted, and an explanation of their bearing on the question or 
    questions presented, must be expressly set forth in the advance ruling 
    request.
        (5) Prior or current transactions.--(i) General. Each request for 
    an advance ruling must state:
        (A) Whether, to the knowledge of the person submitting the request, 
    the same transaction or issue, or one identical to it, has ever been 
    considered, or is currently being considered by any Customs office;
        (B) Whether, to the knowledge of the person submitting the request, 
    the issue involved has ever been, or is currently, the subject of:
        (1) Review by the United States Court of International Trade, the 
    United States Court of Appeals for the Federal Circuit, or any court of 
    appeal therefrom, or review by a judicial or quasi-judicial body in 
    Canada or Mexico;
        (2) A verification of origin performed in the United States, Canada 
    or Mexico;
        (3) An administrative appeal in the United States, Canada or 
    Mexico; or
        (4) A request for an advance ruling under this subpart, or a 
    request for an advance ruling in Canada or Mexico under an appropriate 
    authority referred to in Sec. 181.76(d)(1) of this part;
        (C) The status or disposition of any matter on which an affirmative 
    statement is made under paragraph (b)(5)(i)(B) of this section; and
        (D) Whether the transaction described in the advance ruling request 
    is but one of a series of similar and related transactions.
        (ii) Change in status of transaction. If a prospective transaction 
    which is the subject of an advance ruling request becomes a current 
    transaction, the person who submitted the request shall so notify the 
    office processing the request.
        (6) Statement of position. If the request for an advance ruling 
    asks that a particular determination or conclusion be reached in the 
    advance ruling letter, a statement must be included in the request 
    setting forth the basis for that determination or conclusion, together 
    with a citation of all relevant supporting authority.
        (7) Privileged or confidential information. Information which is 
    claimed to constitute trade secrets or privileged or confidential 
    commercial or financial information regarding the business transactions 
    of private parties the disclosure of which would cause substantial harm 
    to the competitive position of the person making the request (or of 
    another interested party) must be identified clearly, and the reasons 
    such information should not be disclosed, including, where applicable, 
    the reasons the disclosure of the information would prejudice the 
    competitive position of the person making the request (or of another 
    interested party), must be set forth. An advance ruling will not be 
    issued until all trade secret, privilege or confidentiality issues are 
    resolved (see Sec. 181.99(a)(3) of this part).
        (c) Signing; instruction as to reply. The request for an advance 
    ruling must be signed by a person authorized to make the request, as 
    described in Sec. 181.92(b)(5) of this part. An advance ruling 
    requested by a principal or authorized agent may direct that the 
    advance ruling letter be addressed to the other.
        (d) Requests for immediate consideration. Customs will normally 
    process requests for advance rulings in the order they are received and 
    as expeditiously as possible, as specified in Sec. 181.99 of this part. 
    However, a request that a particular matter be given consideration 
    ahead of its regular order, if made in writing at the time the request 
    is submitted, or subsequent thereto, and showing a clear need for such 
    treatment, will be given consideration as the particular circumstances 
    warrant and permit. Requests for special consideration made by telegram 
    or electronic transmission will be treated in the same manner as 
    requests made by letter, but advance rulings will not be issued by 
    telegram or electronic transmission. A telegram or electronic 
    transmission must be followed up with a signed original within 14 
    calendar days of the submission of the telegram or electronic 
    transmission. In no event can any assurance be given that a particular 
    request for an advance ruling will be acted upon by the time requested.
    
    
    Sec. 181.94  Nonconforming requests for advance rulings.
    
        A person submitting a request for an advance ruling that does not 
    comply with all of the provisions of this subpart will be so notified 
    in writing, and the requirements that have not been met will be pointed 
    out. Such person will be given a period of 30 calendar days from the 
    date of the notice (or such longer period as the notice may provide) to 
    supply any additional information that is requested or otherwise 
    conform the advance ruling request to the requirements referred to in 
    the notice. The Customs file with respect to advance ruling requests 
    which are not brought into compliance with the provisions of this 
    subpart within the period of time allowed will be administratively 
    closed and the request removed from active consideration. A request for 
    an advance ruling that is removed from active consideration by reason 
    of failure to comply with the provisions of this subpart may be treated 
    as withdrawn. A failure to comply with the provisions of this subpart 
    will result in the rejection of the advance ruling request with the 
    notice specifying the deficiencies.
    
    
    Sec. 181.95  Oral discussion of issues.
    
        (a) General. A person submitting a request for an advance ruling 
    and desiring an opportunity to orally discuss the issue or issues 
    involved should indicate that desire in writing at the time the advance 
    ruling request is filed. Such a discussion will only be scheduled when, 
    in the opinion of the Customs personnel by whom the advance ruling 
    request is under consideration, a conference will be helpful in 
    deciding the issue or issues involved or when a determination or 
    conclusion contrary to that advocated in the advance ruling request is 
    contemplated. Conferences are scheduled for the purpose of affording 
    the parties an opportunity to freely and openly discuss the matters set 
    forth in the advance ruling request. Accordingly, the parties will not 
    be bound by any 
    
    [[Page 46384]]
    argument or position advocated or agreed to, expressly or by 
    implication, during the conference unless either party subsequently 
    agrees to be so bound in writing. The conference will not conclude with 
    the issuance of an advance ruling letter.
        (b) Time, place and number of conferences. If a request for a 
    conference is granted, the person making the request will be notified 
    of the time and place of the conference. No more than one conference 
    with respect to the matters set forth in an advance ruling request will 
    be scheduled, unless, in the opinion of the Customs personnel by whom 
    the advance ruling request is under consideration, additional 
    conferences are necessary.
        (c) Representation. A person whose request for a conference has 
    been granted may be accompanied at that conference by counsel or other 
    representatives, or may designate such persons to attend the conference 
    in his or her place.
        (d) Additional information presented at conferences. It will be the 
    responsibility of the person submitting the request for an advance 
    ruling to provide for inclusion in the Customs file in the matter a 
    written record setting forth any and all additional information, 
    documents, and exhibits introduced during the conference to the extent 
    that person considers such material relevant to the consideration of 
    the advance ruling request. Such information, documents and exhibits 
    shall be given consideration only if received by Customs within 30 
    calendar days following the conference.
    
    
    Sec. 181.96   Change in status of transaction.
    
        Each person submitting a request for an advance ruling in 
    connection with a NAFTA transaction must immediately advise Customs in 
    writing of any change in the status of that transaction upon becoming 
    aware of the change. In particular, Customs must be advised when any 
    transaction described in the advance ruling request as prospective 
    becomes current and under the jurisdiction of a Customs field office. 
    In addition, any person engaged in a NAFTA transaction coming under the 
    jurisdiction of a Customs field office who has previously requested a 
    NAFTA advance ruling with respect to that transaction must advise the 
    field office of that fact.
    
    
    Sec. 181.97  Withdrawal of NAFTA advance ruling requests.
    
        Any request for an advance ruling may be withdrawn by the person 
    submitting it at any time before the issuance of an advance ruling 
    letter or any other final disposition of the request. All 
    correspondence, documents, and exhibits submitted in connection with 
    the request will be retained in the Customs file and will not be 
    returned. In addition, the Headquarters Office may forward, to Customs 
    field offices which have or may have jurisdiction over the transaction 
    to which the advance ruling request relates, its views in regard to the 
    transaction or the issues involved therein, as well as appropriate 
    information derived from materials in the Customs file.
    Sec. 181.98  Situations in which no NAFTA advance ruling may be issued.
    
        (a) General. No advance ruling letter will be issued in response to 
    a request therefor which fails to comply with the provisions of this 
    subpart. No advance ruling letter will be issued in regard to a 
    completed transaction.
        (b) Pending matters. Where a request for an advance ruling involves 
    an issue that is under review in connection with an origin verification 
    under subpart G of this part or that is the subject of an 
    administrative review procedure provided for in subpart J of this part 
    or in part 174 of this chapter, Customs may decline to issue the 
    requested advance ruling. In addition, no NAFTA advance ruling letter 
    will be issued with respect to any issue which is pending before the 
    United States Court of International Trade, the United States Court of 
    Appeals for the Federal Circuit, or any court of appeal therefrom. 
    Litigation before any other court will not preclude the issuance of an 
    advance ruling letter, provided neither Customs nor any of its officers 
    or agents is named as a party to the action.
    
    
    Sec. 181.99  Issuance of NAFTA advance rulings or other advice.
    
        (a) NAFTA advance ruling letters--(1) General. Except as otherwise 
    provided in paragraph (a)(2) of this section, Customs will, within 120 
    calendar days of receipt of a request, including any required 
    information supplemental thereto, issue an advance ruling letter in the 
    English language setting forth the position of Customs and the reasons 
    therefor with respect to a specifically described Customs transaction 
    whenever a request for such an advance ruling is submitted in 
    accordance with the provisions of this subpart and it is in the sound 
    administration of the NAFTA provisions to do so. Otherwise, a request 
    for an advance ruling will be answered by an information letter or, in 
    those situations in which general information is likely to be of little 
    or no value, by a letter stating that no advance ruling can be issued. 
    In the course of evaluating the advance ruling request Customs may 
    solicit supplemental information from the person requesting the advance 
    ruling. The submission of supplemental information will extend the time 
    for response. The time for response will also be extended if it is 
    necessary to obtain information from other government agencies or in 
    the form of a laboratory analysis.
        (2) Submission of NAFTA advance ruling letters to field offices. 
    Any importer engaging in a NAFTA transaction with respect to which an 
    advance ruling letter has been issued under this subpart either must 
    ensure that a copy of the advance ruling letter is attached to the 
    documents filed with the appropriate Customs office in connection with 
    that transaction or must otherwise indicate with the information filed 
    for that transaction that an advance ruling has been received. Any 
    person receiving an advance ruling stating Customs determination must 
    set forth such determination in the documents or information filed in 
    connection with any subsequent entry of that merchandise; failure to do 
    so may result in a rejection of the entry and the imposition of such 
    penalties as may be appropriate. An advance ruling received after the 
    filing of such documents or information must immediately be brought to 
    the attention of the appropriate Customs field office.
        (3) Disclosure of NAFTA advance ruling letters. No part of the 
    advance ruling letter, including names, addresses, or information 
    relating to the business transactions of private parties, shall be 
    deemed to constitute privileged or confidential commercial or financial 
    information or trade secrets exempt from disclosure pursuant to the 
    Freedom of Information Act, as amended (5 U.S.C. 552), and part 103 of 
    this chapter, or shall be deemed to be subject to the confidentiality 
    principle set forth in Sec. 181.121 of this part, unless, as provided 
    in Sec. 181.93(b)(7) of this part, the information claimed to be exempt 
    from disclosure is clearly identified and a valid basis for 
    nondisclosure is set forth. Before the issuance of the advance ruling 
    letter, the person submitting the advance ruling request will be 
    notified of any decision adverse to his request for nondisclosure and 
    will, upon written request to Customs within 10 working days of the 
    date of notification, be permitted to withdraw the advance ruling 
    request. If in the opinion of Customs an impasse exists on the issue of 
    confidentiality and the person who submitted the advance ruling request 
    does not withdraw the request, Customs 
    
    [[Page 46385]]
    will decline to issue the advance ruling. All advance ruling letters 
    issued by Customs will be available, upon written request, for 
    inspection and copying by any person (with any portions determined to 
    be exempt from disclosure deleted).
        (4) Penalties for misrepresented or omitted material facts or for 
    noncompliance. If Customs determines that an issued advance ruling was 
    based on incorrect information, the person to whom the advance ruling 
    was issued may be subject to appropriate penalties unless that person 
    demonstrates that he used reasonable care and acted in good faith in 
    presenting the facts and circumstances on which the advance ruling was 
    based. In addition, Customs may apply such measures as the 
    circumstances may warrant in a case where a person to whom an advance 
    ruling was issued has failed to act in accordance with the terms and 
    conditions of the advance ruling.
        (b) Other NAFTA advice and guidance. The Headquarters Office may on 
    its own initiative from time to time issue other external advice and 
    guidance with respect to issues or transactions arising under the NAFTA 
    which come to its attention. Such NAFTA advice and guidance, which 
    represent the official position of Customs and which are likely to be 
    of widespread interest and application, are published in the Customs 
    Bulletin, as described in Sec. 181.101 of this part. Nothing in this 
    subpart shall preclude Customs from issuing advice and guidance to its 
    field offices concerning the application of the NAFTA.
    Sec. 181.100  Effect of NAFTA advance ruling letters; modification and 
    revocation.
    
        (a) Effect of NAFTA advance ruling letters--(1) General. An advance 
    ruling letter issued by Customs under the provisions of this subpart 
    represents the official position of Customs with respect to the 
    particular transaction or issue described therein and is binding on all 
    Customs personnel in accordance with the provisions of this subpart 
    until modified or revoked. In the absence of a change of practice or 
    other modification or revocation which affects the principle of the 
    advance ruling set forth in the advance ruling letter, that principle 
    may be cited as authority in the disposition of transactions involving 
    the same circumstances. An advance ruling letter is generally effective 
    on the date it is issued or such later date as may be specified in the 
    advance ruling and, commencing on its effective date, may be applied to 
    entries for consumption and warehouse withdrawals for consumption which 
    are unliquidated, or to other transactions with respect to which 
    Customs has not taken final action on that date. See, however, 
    paragraph (b) of this section (ruling letters which modify previous 
    advance ruling letters) and Sec. 181.101 of this part (advance ruling 
    letters published in the Customs Bulletin).
        (2) Application of NAFTA rulings to transactions--(i) General. Each 
    NAFTA ruling letter is issued on the assumption that all of the 
    information furnished in connection with the ruling request and 
    incorporated in the ruling letter, either directly, by reference, or by 
    implication, is accurate and complete in every material respect. The 
    application of an advance ruling letter by a Customs field office to 
    the transaction to which it is purported to relate is subject to the 
    verification of the facts incorporated in the advance ruling letter, a 
    comparison of the transaction described therein to the actual 
    transaction, and the satisfaction of any conditions on which the 
    advance ruling was based, and if the facts are materially different or 
    a condition has not been satisfied, the treatment specified in the 
    advance ruling will not be applied to the actual transaction. If, in 
    the opinion of any Customs field office by whom the transaction is 
    under consideration or review, the advance ruling letter should be 
    modified or revoked, the findings and recommendations of that office 
    will be forwarded to the Headquarters Office for consideration, prior 
    to any final disposition with respect to the transaction by that 
    office. If the transaction described in the NAFTA advance ruling letter 
    and the actual transaction are the same, and any and all conditions set 
    forth in the advance ruling letter have been satisfied, the advance 
    ruling will be applied to the transaction.
        (ii) Tariff change rulings. Each advance ruling letter concerning 
    whether a change in tariff classification has occurred will be applied 
    only with respect to transactions involving either articles which are 
    identical to the sample submitted with the advance ruling request and 
    reflect the same processing or articles which conform to the 
    description set forth in the advance ruling letter.
        (iii) Regional value content rulings. Each advance ruling letter 
    concerning the application of a regional value content requirement will 
    be applied only with respect to transactions involving the same 
    merchandise and identical facts.
        (3) Reliance on NAFTA advance rulings by others. An advance ruling 
    letter is subject to modification or revocation without notice to any 
    person other than the person to whom the letter was addressed. 
    Accordingly, no other person may rely on the advance ruling letter or 
    assume that the principles of that advance ruling will be applied in 
    connection with any transaction other than the one described in the 
    letter. However, any person eligible to request an advance ruling under 
    Sec. 181.92(b)(5) of this part may request information as to whether a 
    previously-issued advance ruling letter has been modified or revoked by 
    writing the Commissioner of Customs, Attention: Office of Regulations 
    and Rulings, Washington, DC 20229, and either enclosing a copy of the 
    advance ruling letter or furnishing other information sufficient to 
    permit the advance ruling letter in question to be identified.
        (b) Modification or revocation of NAFTA advance ruling letters--(1) 
    General. Any NAFTA advance ruling letter may be modified or revoked by 
    Customs Headquarters in any of the following circumstances or for any 
    of the following purposes, provided that written notice of the 
    modification or revocation is given to the person to whom the advance 
    ruling letter was addressed:
        (i) If the ruling letter reflects or is based on an error:
        (A) Of fact;
        (B) In the tariff classification of a good or material that is the 
    subject of the ruling;
        (C) In the application of a regional value-content requirement 
    under General Note 12, HTSUS, and under this part;
        (D) In the application of the rules for determining whether a good 
    qualifies as a good of Canada or Mexico under Annex 300-B, Annex 302.2 
    or Chapter Seven of the NAFTA;
        (E) In the application of the rules for determining whether a good 
    is a qualifying good under Chapter Seven of the NAFTA; or
        (F) In the application of the rules for determining whether a good 
    qualifies for duty-free treatment under Sec. 181.64 of this part when 
    the good re-enters the United States after having been exported to 
    Canada or Mexico for repair or alteration;
        (ii) If the ruling letter is not in accordance with an 
    interpretation agreed on by the United States, Canada and Mexico 
    regarding Chapter Three or Chapter Four of the NAFTA;
        (iii) If there is a change in the material facts or circumstances 
    on which the ruling is based;
        (iv) To conform to a modification of Chapter Three, Four, Five or 
    Seven of the NAFTA, or of the Marking Rules, or 
    
    [[Page 46386]]
    of the regulations set forth in this part; or
        (v) To conform to a judicial decision or change in domestic law.
        (2) Application of modification or revocation of NAFTA advance 
    ruling letters. The modification or revocation of a NAFTA advance 
    ruling letter will not be applied to entries or warehouse withdrawals 
    for consumption which were made prior to the effective date of such 
    modification or revocation, except where the person to whom the advance 
    ruling was issued has not acted in accordance with its terms and 
    conditions.
        (3) Effective dates. Generally, a NAFTA letter modifying or 
    revoking an earlier advance ruling will be effective on the date it is 
    issued. However, Customs may, upon request or on its own initiative, 
    delay the effective date of such a modification or revocation for a 
    period of up to 90 calendar days from the date of issuance. Such a 
    delay may be granted at the request of the party to whom the ruling 
    letter was issued, provided such party can demonstrate to the 
    satisfaction of Customs that it relied on the earlier advance ruling in 
    good faith and to its detriment. The evidence of such reliance must 
    cover the period from the date of the letter modifying or revoking the 
    advance ruling back to the date of that advance ruling and must list 
    all transactions claimed to be covered by the modified or revoked 
    advance ruling by entry number (or other Customs assigned number), the 
    quantity and value of merchandise covered by each such transaction 
    (where applicable), the ports of entry, and the dates of final action 
    by Customs. Such evidence must also include contracts, purchase orders, 
    or other materials tending to establish that future transactions were 
    arranged based on the earlier advance ruling. The request for delay 
    must specifically identify the prior ruling on which reliance is 
    claimed. All persons requesting a delay will be issued a separate 
    letter setting forth the period, if any, of the delay to be provided. 
    In appropriate circumstances, Customs may decide to make its decision, 
    with respect to a delay, applicable to all persons, irrespective of 
    demonstrated reliance; in this event, a notice announcing the delay 
    will be published in the Customs Bulletin and individual ruling letters 
    will not be issued.
    
    
    Sec. 181.101  Publication of decisions.
    
        Within 90 days after issuing any precedential decision relating to 
    any NAFTA transaction, Customs shall publish the decision in the 
    Customs Bulletin or otherwise make it available for public inspection. 
    Disclosure is governed by 31 CFR part 1, part 103 of this chapter, and 
    Sec. 181.99(a)(3) of this part.
    
    
    Sec. 181.102  Administrative and judicial review of advance rulings.
    
        (a) Administrative review--(1) Submission of request for review. 
    Any person who received an advance ruling issued under this subpart, or 
    an authorized agent of such person, may request administrative review, 
    at Customs Headquarters, of that advance ruling, including any 
    modification or revocation thereof, by letter addressed to the 
    Assistant Commissioner, Office of Regulations and Rulings, U.S. Customs 
    Service, Washington, DC 20229. Such request shall be filed within 30 
    calendar days after issuance of the advance ruling and shall set forth 
    the following information:
        (i) The name and address of the person seeking review and the name 
    and address of his authorized agent if the request is signed by such an 
    agent;
        (ii) The Customs identification number or employer identification 
    number in the case of a U.S. importer and authorized agent thereof, the 
    employer number or importer/exporter number assigned by Revenue Canada 
    in the case of a Canadian exporter or producer and authorized agent 
    thereof, and the federal taxpayer registry number (RFC) in the case of 
    a Mexican exporter or producer and authorized agent thereof;
        (iii) The number and date of the advance ruling at issue;
        (iv) The numbers and dates of any involved entries for consumption 
    or warehouse withdrawals for consumption;
        (v) The nature of, and justification for, the objection to the 
    advance ruling set forth distinctly and specifically with respect to 
    each aspect of the advance ruling for which administrative review is 
    sought; and
        (vi) Whether an oral discussion of the issues, as provided in 
    Sec. 181.95 of this part, is desired.
        (2) Issuance of review decision. Customs will normally issue a 
    written decision within 120 days of receipt of the request for 
    administrative review submitted under this section. However, Customs 
    will, upon a reasonable showing of business necessity, issue a written 
    decision within 60 days of receipt of the request for administrative 
    review. For purposes of this paragraph, the date of receipt of the 
    request for administrative review shall be the date on which all 
    information necessary to process the request, including any information 
    provided after submission of the request in connection with a 
    conference, is filed with Customs.
        (b) Judicial review. Any person whose claims with regard to a 
    request for administrative review of an advance ruling have been denied 
    in whole or in part under this section may seek judicial review by 
    filing a civil action in the United States Court of International Trade 
    in accordance with 28 U.S.C. 2632 within 180 days after the date of 
    mailing of notice of the denial.
    Subpart J--Review and Appeal of Adverse Marking Decisions
    
    
    Sec. 181.111  Applicability.
    
        This subpart sets forth the circumstances and procedures under 
    which exporters and producers of merchandise imported into the United 
    States may obtain information about, and administrative and judicial 
    review of, an adverse marking decision, as provided for in Article 510 
    of the NAFTA. This subpart does not apply to the review of advance 
    rulings issued under Article 509 of the NAFTA (see subpart I of this 
    part) or to the review of determinations that a good is not an 
    originating good under General Note 12, HTSUS, and the appendix to this 
    part (see part 174 of this chapter).
    
    
    Sec. 181.112  Definitions.
    
         For purposes of this subpart, the following words and phrases have 
    the meanings indicated:
        (a) Adverse marking decision means a decision made by the port 
    director which an exporter or producer of merchandise believes to be 
    contrary to the provisions of Annex 311 of the NAFTA and which may be 
    protested by the importer pursuant to Sec. 514, Tariff Act of 1930, as 
    amended (19 U.S.C. 1514), and part 174 of this chapter. Notification of 
    an adverse marking decision is given to an importer in the form of a 
    Customs Form 4647 (Notice to Mark and/or Notice to Redeliver) and/or by 
    assessing marking duties on improperly marked merchandise. Examples of 
    adverse marking decisions include determinations by the port director: 
    that an imported article is not a good of a NAFTA country, as 
    determined under the Marking Rules, and that it therefore cannot be 
    marked ``Canada'' or ``Mexico''; that a good of a NAFTA country is not 
    marked in a manner which is sufficiently permanent; and that a good of 
    a NAFTA country does not qualify for an exception from marking 
    specified in Annex 311 of the NAFTA. Adverse marking decisions do not 
    include: decisions issued in response to requests for advance rulings 
    under subpart I of 
    
    [[Page 46387]]
    this part or for internal advice under part 177 of this chapter; 
    decisions on protests under part 174 of this chapter; and 
    determinations that an article does not qualify as an originating good 
    under General Note 12, HTSUS, and the appendix to this part.
        (b) An exporter of merchandise is an exporter located in Canada or 
    Mexico who must maintain records in that country relating to the 
    transaction to which the adverse marking decision relates. The records 
    must be sufficient to enable Customs to evaluate the merits of the 
    exporter's claim(s) regarding the adverse marking decision.
        (c) A producer of merchandise is a person who grows, mines, 
    harvests, fishes, traps, hunts, manufactures, processes or assembles 
    such merchandise in Canada or Mexico.
    
    
    Sec. 181.113  Request for basis of adverse marking decision.
    
        (a) Request; form and filing. The exporter or producer of the 
    merchandise which is the subject of an adverse marking decision may 
    request a statement concerning the basis for the decision by filing a 
    typewritten request, in English, with the port director who issued the 
    decision. The request should be on letterhead paper in the form of a 
    letter and clearly designated as a ``Request for Basis of Adverse 
    Marking Decision'' and shall be signed by the exporter, producer or his 
    authorized agent. The provisions of Sec. 174.3 of this chapter shall 
    apply for purposes of signature by a person other than the principal.
        (b) Content. The Request for Basis of Adverse Marking Decision 
    letter shall set forth the following information:
        (1) The name and address of the exporter or producer of the 
    merchandise and the name and address of any authorized agent filing the 
    request on behalf of such principal;
        (2) A statement that the inquirer is the exporter or producer of 
    the merchandise that was the subject of the adverse marking decision;
        (3) In the case of a Canadian exporter or producer, the employer 
    number assigned by Revenue Canada, Customs and Excise; in the case of a 
    Mexican exporter or producer, the Federal taxpayer registry number 
    (RFC); and the Customs identification number of an authorized agent 
    filing the request on behalf of such principal;
        (4) The number and date of each entry involved in the request;
        (5) A specific description of the merchandise which is the subject 
    of the adverse marking decision; and
        (6) A complete statement of all relevant facts relating to the 
    adverse marking decision and the transaction to which it relates, 
    including the date of the decision.
    
    
    Sec. 181.114  Customs response to request.
    
        (a) Time for response. The port director will issue a written 
    response to the requestor within 30 days of receipt of a request 
    containing the information specified in Sec. 181.113 of this part. If 
    the request is incomplete, such that the transaction in question cannot 
    be identified, the port director will notify the requestor in writing 
    within 30 days of receipt of the request regarding what information is 
    needed.
        (b) Content. The response by the port director shall include the 
    following:
        (1) A statement concerning the basis for the adverse marking 
    decision;
        (2) A copy of the relevant Customs Form 4647 (Notice to Mark and/or 
    Notice to Redeliver), if one was issued to the importer and is 
    available. If the basis for the adverse marking decision is indicated 
    on the Customs Form 4647, no statement under paragraph (b)(1) of this 
    section is required;
        (3) A statement as to whether the importer has filed a protest 
    regarding the adverse marking decision and, if so, where the protest 
    was filed and the protest number; and
        (4) A statement concerning the exporter's or producer's right to 
    either intervene in the importer's protest as provided in Sec. 181.115 
    of this part or file a petition as provided in Sec. 181.116 of this 
    part.
    
    
    Sec. 181.115  Intervention in importer's protest.
    
        (a) Conditional right to intervene. An exporter or producer of 
    merchandise does not have an independent right to protest an adverse 
    marking decision. However, if an importer protests the adverse marking 
    decision in accordance with section 514, Tariff Act of 1930, as amended 
    (19 U.S.C. 1514), and part 174 of this chapter, the exporter or 
    producer of the merchandise which is the subject of the adverse marking 
    decision may intervene in the importer's protest. Such intervention 
    shall not affect any time limits applicable to the protest or delay 
    action on the protest.
        (b) Form and filing of intervention. In order to intervene in an 
    importer's protest, as provided for in paragraph (a) of this section, 
    the exporter or producer of the merchandise shall file, in triplicate, 
    a typewritten statement of intervention, in English, with the port 
    director with whom the protest was filed. The statement should be on 
    letterhead paper in the form of a letter and should be clearly 
    designated ``NAFTA Exporter or Producer Intervention in Protest''. The 
    statement shall be signed by the exporter, producer or his authorized 
    agent. The provisions of Sec. 174.3 of this chapter shall apply for 
    purposes of signature by a person other than the principal.
        (c) Content. The NAFTA Exporter or Producer Intervention in Protest 
    letter shall include the following:
        (1) The name and address of the exporter or producer of the 
    merchandise and the name and address of any authorized agent filing the 
    request on behalf of such principal;
        (2) In the case of a Canadian exporter or producer, the employer 
    number assigned by Revenue Canada, Customs and Excise; in the case of a 
    Mexican exporter or producer, the Federal taxpayer registry number 
    (RFC); and the Customs identification number of an authorized agent 
    filing the request on behalf of such principal;
        (3) The number and date of each entry involved in the adverse 
    marking decision;
        (4) A specific description of the merchandise which is the subject 
    of the adverse marking decision;
        (5) A complete statement of all relevant facts relating to the 
    adverse marking decision and the transaction to which it relates, 
    including the date of the decision;
        (6) A detailed statement of position regarding why the exporter or 
    producer believes the adverse marking decision is contrary to the 
    provision of Annex 311 of the NAFTA;
        (7) A statement as to whether a Request for Basis of Adverse 
    Marking Decision was filed under Sec. 181.113 of this part, and if so, 
    the date of such Request and of any Customs response thereto issued 
    under Sec. 181.114 of this part. Copies of the Request and the Customs 
    response shall be submitted, if available;
        (8) The number assigned to the importer's protest;
        (9) A statement that the intervenor is the exporter or producer of 
    the merchandise that was the subject of the adverse marking decision 
    being protested by the importer and, if the intervenor is the exporter, 
    a statement that it maintains sufficient records to enable Customs to 
    evaluate the merits of its claim(s) regarding the adverse marking 
    decision; and
        (10) If the intervenor prefers that the principle of 
    confidentiality set forth in Sec. 181.121 of this part be applied to 
    the information submitted under this section, a statement to that 
    effect. If no such statement is included in the letter, the 
    intervention and information submitted in connection therewith shall be 
    subject to the same treatment as that 
    
    [[Page 46388]]
    provided in the case of requests by all interested parties for 
    consolidation of protests as set forth in Sec. 174.15(b)(1) of this 
    chapter.
        (d) Effect of Intervention. The rights of the intervenor under this 
    section are subordinate to the importer's protest rights. Accordingly, 
    intervention by an exporter or producer of merchandise will not affect 
    the procedures under part 174 of this chapter, and the importer's 
    elections concerning accelerated disposition and application for 
    further review of the protest will govern how the protest is handled 
    and how the intervention is considered. If the importer withdraws or 
    settles the protest, the exporter or producer has no right to continue 
    the intervention action.
        (e) Action by port director. If final administrative action has 
    already been taken with respect to the importer's protest at the time 
    the intervention is filed, the port director shall so advise the 
    exporter or producer and, if the importer has filed a civil action in 
    the Court of International Trade as a result of a denial of the 
    protest, the port director shall advise the exporter or producer of 
    that filing and of the exporter's or producer's right to seek to 
    intervene in such judicial proceeding. If final administrative action 
    has not been taken on the protest, the port director shall forward the 
    intervention letter to the Customs office which has the importer's 
    protest under review for consideration in connection with the protest.
        (f) Final disposition. The intervenor shall be notified in writing 
    of the final disposition of the protest. If the protest is denied in 
    whole or in part, the intervenor shall be furnished a copy of the 
    notice given to the importer under Sec. 174.29.
    
    
    Sec. 181.116  Petition regarding adverse marking decision.
    
        (a) Right to petition. If the importer does not protest an adverse 
    marking decision in accordance with section 514, Tariff Act of 1930, as 
    amended (19 U.S.C. 1514), and part 174 of this chapter, the exporter or 
    producer of the merchandise which was the subject of the adverse 
    marking decision may file a petition with Customs requesting 
    reconsideration of the decision. The petition may not be filed until 
    after the importer's time to protest the adverse marking decision has 
    expired (see Sec. 174.12(e) of this chapter for the time limits for 
    filing protests). If the importer filed a protest upon which final 
    administrative action has been taken, the exporter or producer may file 
    a petition under this section, provided that the exporter or producer 
    was not given notice of the pending protest pursuant to Sec. 181.114 of 
    this part. If the importer filed a protest on which final 
    administrative action has not been taken and notice of the pending 
    protest was not provided to the exporter or producer under Sec. 181.114 
    of this part, a petition filed under this section shall be treated by 
    the port director as an intervention under Sec. 181.115 of this part.
        (b) Form and filing of petition. A petition under this section 
    shall be typewritten, in English, and shall be filed, in triplicate, 
    with the port director who issued the adverse marking decision. The 
    petition under this subpart should be on letterhead paper in the form 
    of a letter, clearly designated as a ``Petition for NAFTA Review of 
    Adverse Marking Decision'' and shall be signed by the exporter, 
    producer or his authorized agent. The provisions of Sec. 174.3 of this 
    chapter shall apply for purposes of signature by a person other than 
    the principal.
        (c) Content. The Petition for NAFTA Review of Adverse Marking 
    Decision letter shall contain all the information specified 
    Sec. 181.115 of this part, except for the protest number. It shall also 
    include a statement that petitioner was not notified by Customs in 
    writing of a pending protest.
        (d) Review of petition--(1) Review by port director. Within 60 days 
    of the date of receipt of the petition, the port director shall 
    determine if the petition is to be granted or denied, in whole or in 
    part. If, after reviewing the petition, the port director agrees with 
    all of the petitioner's claims and determines that the initial adverse 
    marking decision was not correct, a written notice granting the 
    petition shall be issued to the petitioner. A description of the 
    merchandise, a brief summary of the issue(s) and the port director's 
    findings shall be forwarded to the Director, Tariff Classification 
    Appeals Division, Customs Headquarters, for publication in the Customs 
    Bulletin. If, after reviewing the petition, the port director 
    determines that the initial adverse marking decision was correct in its 
    entirety, a written notice shall be issued to the petitioner advising 
    that the matter has been forwarded to the Director, Tariff 
    Classification Appeals Division, Customs Headquarters, for further 
    review and decision. All relevant background information, including 
    available samples, a description of the adverse marking decision and 
    the reasons for the decision, and the port director's recommendation 
    shall be furnished to Headquarters.
        (2) Review by Headquarters. Within 120 days of the date the 
    petition and background information are received at Customs 
    Headquarters, the Director, Tariff Classification Appeals Division, 
    shall determine if the petition is to be granted or denied, in whole or 
    in part, and the petitioner shall be notified in writing of the 
    determination. If the petition is granted in whole or in part, a 
    description of the merchandise, a brief summary of the issue(s) and the 
    director's findings will be published in the Customs Bulletin.
        (3) Effect of granting the petition. The decision on the petition, 
    if contrary to the initial adverse marking decision, will be 
    implemented with respect to merchandise entered or withdrawn from 
    warehouse for consumption after 30 days from the date on which the 
    notice of determination is published in the Customs Bulletin.
        (e) Pending litigation. No decision on a petition will be issued 
    under this section with respect to any issue which is pending before 
    the United States Court of International Trade, the United States Court 
    of Appeals for the Federal Circuit, or any court of appeal therefrom. 
    Litigation before any other court will not preclude the issuance of a 
    decision on a petition under this section, provided neither Customs nor 
    any of its officers or agents is named as a party to the action.
        (f) Judicial review of denial of petition.
        Any person whose petition under this section has been denied, in 
    whole or in part, may contest the denial by filing a civil action in 
    the United States Court of International Trade within 30 days after the 
    date of mailing of the notice of denial.
    Subpart K--Confidentiality of Business Information
    
    
    Sec. 181.121  Maintenance of confidentiality.
    
        The port director or other Customs officer who has possession of 
    confidential business information collected pursuant to this part 
    shall, in accordance with part 103 of this chapter, maintain its 
    confidentiality and protect it from any disclosure that could prejudice 
    the competitive position of the persons providing the information.
    
    
    Sec. 181.122  Disclosure to government authorities.
    
        Nothing in Sec. 181.121 of this part shall preclude the disclosure 
    of confidential business information to governmental authorities in the 
    United States responsible for the administration and enforcement of 
    determinations of origin and of customs and revenue matters. 
    
    [[Page 46389]]
    
    
    Subpart L--Rules of Origin
    
    
    Sec. 181.131  Rules of origin.
    
        (a) The regulations effective October 1, 1995, implementing the 
    rules of origin provisions of General Note 12, HTSUS, and Chapter Four 
    of the NAFTA are contained in the appendix to this part.
        (b) If the fiscal year of a producer of goods begins before October 
    1, 1995, the producer may choose to have the regulations implementing 
    the rules of origin provisions of General Note 12, HTSUS, and Chapter 
    Four of the NAFTA that were in effect prior to October 1, 1995 (see 19 
    CFR chapter I, 1994 edition, appendix to part 181) continue to apply in 
    regard to all goods produced by that producer for the remainder of that 
    fiscal year.
        (c) If a motor vehicle producer's fiscal year that has been chosen 
    by a producer of goods pursuant to section 12(5) of the regulations 
    referred to in paragraph (b) of this section begins before October 1, 
    1995, the producer of the goods may choose to have those regulations 
    continue to apply in regard to the goods produced by that producer for 
    the remainder of that fiscal year, provided that:
        (1) The producer of the goods has made an election under section 
    12(1) of those regulations or has provided a statement referred to in 
    section 9(6) or 10(8) of those regulations that states the value of 
    non-originating materials determined in accordance with section 12(3) 
    of those regulations; and
        (2) The period chosen under section 12(5) of those regulations is 
    the fiscal year of the motor vehicle producer to whom those goods are 
    sold.
    
                Appendix to Part 181--Rules of Origin Regulations           
                                                                            
                               SECTION 1. CITATION                          
                                                                            
      This Appendix may be cited as the NAFTA Rules of Origin Regulations.  
                                                                            
                                     PART I                                 
                    SECTION 2. DEFINITIONS AND INTERPRETATION               
                                   Definitions                              
                                                                            
    (1) For purposes of this Appendix,                                      
    ``accessories, spare parts or tools that are delivered with a good and  
     form part of the good's standard accessories, spare parts or tools''   
     means goods that are delivered with a good, whether or not they are    
     physically affixed to that good, and that are used for the transport,  
     protection, maintenance or cleaning of the good, for instruction in the
     assembly, repair or use of that good, or as replacements for consumable
     or interchangeable parts of that good;                                 
    ``adjusted to an F.O.B. basis'' means, with respect to a good, adjusted 
     by                                                                     
      (a) deducting                                                         
        (i) the costs of transporting the good after it is shipped from the 
         point of direct shipment,                                          
        (ii) the costs of unloading, loading, handling and insurance that   
         are associated with that transportation, and                       
        (iii) the cost of packing materials and containers,                 
      where those costs are included in the transaction value of the good,  
       and                                                                  
      (b) adding                                                            
        (i) the costs of transporting the good from the place of production 
         to the point of direct shipment,                                   
        (ii) the costs of loading, unloading, handling and insurance that   
         are associated with that transportation, and                       
        (iii) the costs of loading the good for shipment at the point of    
         direct shipment,                                                   
      where those costs are not included in the transaction value of the    
       good;                                                                
    ``Agreement'' means the North American Free Trade Agreement;            
    ``applicable change in tariff classification'' means, with respect to a 
     non-originating material used in the production of a good, a change in 
     tariff classification specified in a rule set out in Schedule I for the
     tariff provision under which the good is classified;                   
    ``automotive component'' means a good that is referred to in column I of
     an item of Schedule V;                                                 
    ``automotive component assembly'' means a good, other than a heavy-duty 
     vehicle, that incorporates an automotive component;                    
    ``costs incurred in packing'' means, with respect to a good or material,
     the value of the packing materials and containers in which the good or 
     material is packed for shipment and the labor costs incurred in packing
     it for shipment, but does not include the costs of preparing and       
     packaging it for retail sale;                                          
    ``customs value'' means                                                 
      (a) in the case of Canada, value for duty as defined in the Customs   
       Act, except that for purposes of determining that value the reference
       in section 55 of that Act to ``in accordance with the regulations    
       made under the Currency Act'' shall be read as a reference to ``in   
       accordance with subsection 3(1) of these Regulations'',              
      (b) in the case of Mexico, the valor en aduana as determined in       
       accordance with the Ley Aduanera, converted, in the event such value 
       is not expressed in Mexican currency, to Mexican currency at the rate
       of exchange determined in accordance with subsection 3(1) of these   
       Regulations, and                                                     
      (c) in the case of the United States, the value of imported           
       merchandise as determined by the Customs Service in accordance with  
       section 402 of the Tariff Act of 1930, as amended, converted, in the 
       event such value is not expressed in United States currency, to      
       United States currency at the rate of exchange determined in         
       accordance with subsection 3(1) of these Regulations.                
    ``days'' means calendar days, and includes weekends and holidays;       
    ``direct labor costs'' means costs, including fringe benefits, that are 
     associated with employees who are directly involved in the production  
     of a good;                                                             
    ``direct material costs'' means the value of materials, other than      
     indirect materials and packing materials and containers, that are used 
     in the production of a good;                                           
    ``direct overhead'' means costs, other than direct material costs and   
     direct labor costs, that are directly associated with the production of
     a good;                                                                
    
    [[Page 46390]]
                                                                            
    ``enterprise'' means any entity constituted or organized under          
     applicable laws, whether or not for profit and whether privately owned 
     or governmentally owned, including any corporation, trust, partnership,
     sole proprietorship, joint venture or other association;               
    ``excluded costs'' means sales promotion, marketing and after-sales     
     service costs, royalties, shipping and packing costs and non-allowable 
     interest costs;                                                        
    ``fungible goods'' means goods that are interchangeable for commercial  
     purposes and the properties of which are essentially identical;        
    ``fungible materials'' means materials that are interchangeable for     
     commercial purposes and the properties of which are essentially        
     identical;                                                             
    ``Harmonized System'' means the Harmonized Commodity Description and    
     Coding System, including its General Rules of Interpretation, Section  
     Notes and Chapter Notes, as set out in                                 
      (a) in the case of Canada, the Customs Tariff,                        
      (b) in the case of Mexico, the Tarifa de la Ley del Impuesto General  
       de Importacion, and                                                  
      (c) in the case of the United States, the Harmonized Tariff Schedule  
       of the United States;                                                
    ``heavy-duty vehicle'' means a motor vehicle provided for in any of     
     heading 8701, tariff items 8702.10.30 and 8702.90.30 (vehicles for the 
     transport of 16 or more persons), subheadings 8704.10, 8704.22,        
     8704.23, 8704.32 and 8704.90 and heading 8705 and 8706;                
    ``identical goods'' means, with respect to a good, goods that           
      (a) are the same in all respects as that good, including physical     
       characteristics, quality and reputation but excluding minor          
       differences in appearance,                                           
      (b) were produced in the same country as that good, and               
      (c) were produced                                                     
        (i) by the producer of that good, or                                
        (ii) by another producer, where no goods that satisfy the           
         requirements of paragraphs (a) and (b) were produced by the        
         producer of that good;                                             
    ``identical materials'' means, with respect to a material, materials    
     that                                                                   
      (a) are the same as that material in all respects, including physical 
       characteristics, quality and reputation but excluding minor          
       differences in appearance,                                           
      (b) were produced in the same country as that material, and           
      (c) were produced                                                     
        (i) by the producer of that material, or                            
        (ii) by another producer, where no materials that satisfy the       
         requirements of paragraphs (a) and (b) were produced by the        
         producer of that material;                                         
    ``incorporated'' means, with respect to the production of a good, a     
     material that is physically incorporated into that good, and includes a
     material that is physically incorporated into another material before  
     that material or any subsequently produced material is used in the     
     production of the good;                                                
    ``indirect material'' means a good used in the production, testing or   
     inspection of a good but not physically incorporated into the good, or 
     a good used in the maintenance of buildings or the operation of        
     equipment associated with the production of a good, and includes       
      (a) fuel and energy,                                                  
      (b) tools, dies and molds,                                            
      (c) spare parts and materials used in the maintenance of equipment and
       buildings,                                                           
      (d) lubricants, greases, compounding materials and other materials    
       used in production or used to operate equipment and buildings,       
      (e) gloves, glasses, footwear, clothing, safety equipment and         
       supplies,                                                            
      (f) equipment, devices and supplies used for testing or inspecting the
       other goods,                                                         
      (g) catalysts and solvents, and                                       
      (h) any other goods that are not incorporated into the good but the   
       use of which in the production of the good can reasonably be         
       demonstrated to be part of that production;                          
    ``interest costs'' means all costs paid or payable by a person to whom  
     credit is, or is to be advanced, for the advancement of credit or the  
     obligation to advance credit;                                          
    ``intermediate material'' means a self-produced material that is used in
     the production of a good and is designated as an intermediate material 
     under section 7(4) ;                                                   
    ``light-duty automotive good'' means a light-duty vehicle or a good of a
     tariff provision listed in Schedule IV that is subject to a regional   
     value-content requirement and is for use as original equipment in the  
     production of a light-duty vehicle;                                    
    ``light-duty vehicle'' means a motor vehicle provided for in any of     
     tariff items 8702.10.60 and 8702.90.60 (vehicles for the transport of  
     15 or fewer persons) and subheadings 8703.21 through 8703.90, 8704.21  
     and 8704.31;                                                           
    ``listed material'' means a good that is referred to in column II of an 
     item of Schedule V;                                                    
    ``location of the producer'' means,                                     
      (a) where the warehouse or other receiving station at which a producer
       receives materials for use by the producer in the production of a    
       good is located within a radius of 75 km (46.60 miles) from the place
       at which the producer produces the good, the location of that        
       warehouse or other receiving station, and                            
      (b) in any other case, the place at which the producer produces the   
       good in which a material is to be used;                              
    ``material'' means a good that is used in the production of another     
     good, and includes a part or ingredient;                               
    ``motor vehicle assembler'' means a producer of motor vehicles and any  
     related person with whom, or joint venture in which, the producer      
     participates with respect to the production of motor vehicles;         
    ``month'' means a calendar month;                                       
    ``NAFTA country'' means a Party to the Agreement;                       
    ``national'' means a natural person who is a citizen or permanent       
     resident of a NAFTA country, and includes                              
    
    [[Page 46391]]
                                                                            
      (a) with respect to Mexico, a national or citizen according to        
       Articles 30 and 34, respectively, of the Mexican Constitution, and   
      (b) with respect to the United States, a ``national of the United     
       States'' as defined in the Immigration and Nationality Act on the    
       date of entry into force of the Agreement;                           
    ``net cost method'' means the method of calculating the regional value  
     content of a good that is set out in section 6(3);                     
    ``non-allowable interest costs'' means interest costs incurred by a     
     producer on the producer's debt obligations that are more than 700     
     basis points above the yield on debt obligations of comparable         
     maturities issued by the federal government of the country in which the
     producer is located;                                                   
    ``non-originating good'' means a good that does not qualify as          
     originating under this Appendix;                                       
    ``non-originating material'' means a material that does not qualify as  
     originating under this Appendix;                                       
    ``original equipment'' means a material that is incorporated into a     
     motor vehicle before the first transfer of title or consignment of the 
     motor vehicle to a person who is not a motor vehicle assembler, and    
     that is                                                                
      (a) a good of a tariff provision listed in Schedule IV, or            
      (b) an automotive component assembly, automotive component, sub-      
       component or listed material;                                        
    ``originating good'' means a good that qualifies as originating under   
     this Appendix;                                                         
    ``originating material'' means a material that qualifies as originating 
     under this Appendix;                                                   
    ``other costs,'' with respect to total cost, means all costs that are   
     not product costs or period costs;                                     
    ``packaging materials and containers'' means materials and containers in
     which a good is packaged for retail sale;                              
    ``packing materials and containers'' means materials and containers that
     are used to protect a good during transportation, but does not include 
     packaging materials and containers;                                    
    ``payments'' means, with respect to royalties and sales promotion,      
     marketing and after-sales service costs, the costs expensed on the     
     books of a producer, whether or not an actual payment is made;         
    ``period costs'' means costs, other than product costs, that are        
     expensed in the period in which they are incurred;                     
    ``person'' means a natural person or an enterprise;                     
    ``person of a NAFTA country'' means a national, or an enterprise        
     constituted or organized under the laws of a NAFTA country;            
    ``point of direct shipment'' means the location from which a producer of
     a good normally ships that good to the buyer of the good;              
    ``producer'' means a person who grows, mines, harvests, fishes, traps,  
     hunts, manufactures, processes or assembles a good;                    
    ``product costs'' means costs that are associated with the production of
     a good, and includes the value of materials, direct labor costs and    
     direct overhead;                                                       
    ``production'' means growing, mining, harvesting, fishing, trapping,    
     hunting, manufacturing, processing or assembling a good;               
    ``related person'' means a person related to another person on the basis
     that                                                                   
      (a) they are officers or directors of one another's businesses,       
      (b) they are legally recognized partners in business,                 
      (c) they are employer and employee,                                   
      (d) any person directly or indirectly owns, controls or holds 25      
       percent or more of the outstanding voting stock or shares of each of 
       them,                                                                
      (e) one of them directly or indirectly controls the other,            
      (f) both of them are directly or indirectly controlled by a third     
       person, or                                                           
      (g) they are members of the same family (members of the same family   
       are natural or adopted children, brothers, sisters, parents,         
       grandparents, or spouses);                                           
    ``reusable scrap or by-product'' means waste and spoilage that is       
     generated by the producer of a good and that is used in the production 
     of a good or sold by that producer;                                    
    ``right to use,'' for purposes of the definition of royalties, includes 
     the right to sell or distribute a good;                                
    ``royalties'' means payments of any kind, including payments under      
     technical assistance agreements or similar agreements, made as         
     consideration for the use of, or right to use, any copyright, literary,
     artistic, or scientific work, patent, trademark, design, model, plan,  
     secret formula or process, excluding those payments under technical    
     assistance agreements or similar agreements that can be related to     
     specific services such as                                              
      (a) personnel training, without regard to where performed, and        
      (b) if performed in the territory of one or more of the NAFTA         
       countries, engineering, tooling, die-setting, software design and    
       similar computer services, or other services;                        
    ``sales promotion, marketing and after-sales service costs'' means the  
     following costs related to sales promotion, marketing and after-sales  
     service:                                                               
      (a) sales and marketing promotion; media advertising; advertising and 
       market research; promotional and demonstration materials; exhibits;  
       sales conferences, trade shows and conventions; banners; marketing   
       displays; free samples; sales, marketing and after-sales service     
       literature (product brochures, catalogs, technical literature, price 
       lists, service manuals, sales aid information); establishment and    
       protection of logos and trademarks; sponsorships; wholesale and      
       retail restocking charges; entertainment;                            
      (b) sales and marketing incentives; consumer, retailer or wholesaler  
       rebates; merchandise incentives;                                     
      (c) salaries and wages, sales commissions, bonuses, benefits (for     
       example, medical, insurance, pension), traveling and living expenses,
       membership and professional fees, for sales promotion, marketing and 
       after-sales service personnel;                                       
      (d) recruiting and training of sales promotion, marketing and after-  
       sales service personnel, and after-sales training of customers'      
       employees, where such costs are identified separately for sales      
       promotion, marketing and after-sales service of goods on the         
       financial statements or cost accounts of the producer;               
      (e) product liability insurance;                                      
    
    [[Page 46392]]
                                                                            
      (f) office supplies for sales promotion, marketing and after-sales    
       service of goods, where such costs are identified separately for     
       sales promotion, marketing and after-sales service of goods on the   
       financial statements or cost accounts of the producer;               
      (g) telephone, mail and other communications, where such costs are    
       identified separately for sales promotion, marketing and after-sales 
       service of goods on the financial statements or cost accounts of the 
       producer;                                                            
      (h) rent and depreciation of sales promotion, marketing and after-    
       sales service offices and distribution centers;                      
      (i) property insurance premiums, taxes, cost of utilities, and repair 
       and maintenance of sales promotion, marketing and after-sales service
       offices and distribution centers, where such costs are identified    
       separately for sales promotion, marketing and after-sales service of 
       goods on the financial statements or cost accounts of the producer;  
       and                                                                  
      (j) payments by the producer to other persons for warranty repairs;   
    ``self-produced material'' means a material that is produced by the     
     producer of a good and used in the production of that good;            
    ``shipping and packing costs'' means the costs incurred in packing a    
     good for shipment and shipping the good from the point of direct       
     shipment to the buyer, excluding the costs of preparing and packaging  
     the good for retail sale;                                              
    ``similar goods'' means, with respect to a good, goods that             
      (a) although not alike in all respects to that good, have similar     
       characteristics and component materials that enable the goods to     
       perform the same functions and to be commercially interchangeable    
       with that good,                                                      
      (b) were produced in the same country as that good, and               
      (c) were produced                                                     
        (i) by the producer of that good, or                                
        (ii) by another producer, where no goods that satisfy the           
         requirements of paragraphs (a) and (b) were produced by the        
         producer of that good;                                             
    ``similar materials'' means, with respect to a material, materials that 
      (a) although not alike in all respects to that material, have similar 
       characteristics and component materials that enable the materials to 
       perform the same functions and to be commercially interchangeable    
       with that material,                                                  
      (b) were produced in the same country as that material, and (c) were  
       produced                                                             
        (i) by the producer of that material, or                            
        (ii) by another producer, where no materials that satisfy the       
         requirements of paragraphs (a) and (b) were produced by the        
         producer of that material;                                         
    ``subject to a regional value-content requirement'' means, with respect 
     to a good, that the provisions of this Appendix that are applied to    
     determine whether the good is an originating good include a regional   
     value-content requirement;                                             
    ``sub-component'' means a good that comprises a listed material and one 
     or more other materials or listed materials;                           
    ``tariff provision'' means a heading, subheading or tariff item;        
    ``territory'' means, with respect to                                    
      (a) Canada, the territory to which its customs laws apply, including  
       any areas beyond the territorial seas of Canada within which, in     
       accordance with international law and its domestic law, Canada may   
       exercise rights with respect to the seabed and subsoil and their     
       natural resources,                                                   
      (b) Mexico,                                                           
        (i) the states of the Federation and the Federal District,          
        (ii) the islands, including the reefs and keys, in adjacent seas,   
        (iii) the islands of Guadalupe and Revillagigedo situated in the    
         Pacific Ocean,                                                     
        (iv) the continental shelf and the submarine shelf of such islands, 
         keys and reefs,                                                    
        (v) the waters of the territorial seas, in accordance with          
         international law, and its interior maritime waters,               
        (vi) the space located above the national territory, in accordance  
         with international law, and                                        
        (vii) any areas beyond the territorial seas of Mexico within which, 
         in accordance with international law, including the United Nations 
         Convention on the Law of the Sea, and its domestic law, Mexico may 
         exercise rights with respect to the seabed and subsoil and their   
         natural resources, and                                             
      (c) the United States,                                                
        (i) the customs territory of the United States, which includes the  
         50 states, the District of Columbia and Puerto Rico,               
        (ii) the foreign trade zones located in the United States and Puerto
         Rico, and                                                          
        (iii) any areas beyond the territorial seas of the United States    
         within which, in accordance with international law and its domestic
         law, the United States may exercise rights with respect to the     
         seabed and subsoil and their natural resources;                    
    ``total cost'' means the total of all product costs, period costs and   
     other costs incurred in the territory of one or more of the NAFTA      
     countries;                                                             
    ``transaction value method'' means the method of calculating the        
     regional value content of a good that is set out in subsection 6(2);   
    ``used'' means used or consumed in the production of a good;            
    ``verification of origin'' means a verification of origin of goods under
      (a) in the case of Canada, paragraph 42.1(1)(a) or subsection 42.2(2) 
       of the Customs Act,                                                  
      (b) in the case of Mexico, Article 506 of the Agreement, and          
      (c) in the case of the United States, section 509 of the Tariff Act of
       1930, as amended.                                                    
                                                                            
                           Interpretation: ``similar''                      
                                                                            
    (2) For purposes of the definitions of ``similar goods'' and ``similar  
     materials,'' the quality of the goods or materials, their reputation   
     and the existence of a trademark are among the factors to be considered
     for purposes of determining whether goods or materials are similar.    
                                                                            
    
    [[Page 46393]]
                                                                            
       Interpretation: terms used to refer to HTSUS; use of term ``books''  
                                                                            
    (3) For purposes of this Appendix,                                      
      (a) ``chapter,'' unless otherwise indicated, refers to a chapter of   
       the Harmonized System;                                               
      (b) ``heading'' refers to any four-digit number, or the first four    
       digits of any number, set out in the column ``Heading/Subheading'' in
       the Harmonized System;                                               
      (c) ``subheading'' refers to any six-digit number, or the first six   
       digits of any number, set out in the column ``Heading/Subheading'' in
       the Harmonized System;                                               
      (d) ``tariff item'' refers to any eight-digit number set out in the   
       column ``Heading/Subheading'' in the Harmonized System;              
      (e) any reference to a tariff item in Chapter Four of the Agreement or
       this Appendix that includes letters shall be reflected as the        
       appropriate eight-digit number in the Harmonized System as           
       implemented in each NAFTA country; and                               
      (f) ``books'' refers to,                                              
        (i) with respect to the books of a person who is located in a NAFTA 
         country,                                                           
          (A) books and other documents that support the recording of       
           revenues, expenses, costs, assets and liabilities and that are   
           maintained in accordance with Generally Accepted Accounting      
           Principles set out in the publications listed in Schedule XII    
           with respect to the territory of the NAFTA country in which the  
           person is located, and                                           
          (B) financial statements, including note disclosures, that are    
           prepared in accordance with Generally Accepted Accounting        
           Principles set out in the publications listed in Schedule XII    
           with respect to the territory of the NAFTA country in which the  
           person is located, and                                           
        (ii) with respect to the books of a person who is located outside   
         the territories of the NAFTA countries,                            
          (A) books and other documents that support the recording of       
           revenues, expenses, costs, assets and liabilities and that are   
           maintained in accordance with generally accepted accounting      
           principles applied in that location or, where there are no such  
           principles, in accordance with the International Accounting      
           Standards, and                                                   
          (B) financial statements, including note disclosures, that are    
           prepared in accordance with generally accepted accounting        
           principles applied in that location or, where there are no such  
           principles, in accordance with the International Accounting      
           Standards.                                                       
                                                                            
          Use of Examples to illustrate the application of a provision      
                                                                            
    (4) Where an example, referred to as an ``Example,'' is set out in this 
     Appendix, the example is for purposes of illustrating the application  
     of a provision, and where there is any inconsistency between the       
     example and the provision, the provision prevails to the extent of the 
     inconsistency.                                                         
                                                                            
                           References to domestic laws                      
                                                                            
    (5) Except as otherwise provided, references in this Appendix to        
     domestic laws of the NAFTA countries apply to those laws as they may be
     amended or superseded.                                                 
                                                                            
                            Calculation of total cost                       
                                                                            
    (6) For purposes of sections 5(9), 6(11) and 7(6) and sections 10(1)(a) 
     (i) and (ii),                                                          
      (a) total cost consists of all product costs, period costs and other  
       costs that are recorded, except as otherwise provided in paragraphs  
       (b) (i) and (ii), on the books of the producer without regard to the 
       location of the persons to whom payments with respect to those costs 
       are made;                                                            
      (b) in calculating total cost,                                        
        (i) the value of materials, other than intermediate materials,      
         indirect materials and packing materials and containers, shall be  
         the value determined in accordance with section 7(1),              
        (ii) the value of intermediate materials used in the production of  
         the good or material with respect to which total cost is being     
         calculated shall be calculated in accordance with section 7(6),    
        (iii) the value of indirect materials and the value of packing      
         materials and containers shall be the costs that are recorded on   
         the books of the producer for those materials, and                 
        (iv) product costs, period costs and other costs, other than costs  
         referred to in subparagraphs (i) and (ii), shall be the costs      
         thereof that are recorded on the books of the producer for those   
         costs;                                                             
      (c) total cost does not include profits that are earned by the        
       producer, regardless of whether they are retained by the producer or 
       paid out to other persons as dividends, or taxes paid on those       
       profits, including capital gains taxes;                              
      (d) gains related to currency conversion that are related to the      
       production of the good shall be deducted from total cost, and losses 
       related to currency conversion that are related to the production of 
       the good shall be included in total cost; and                        
      (e) the value of materials with respect to which production is        
       accumulated under section 14 shall be determined in accordance with  
       that section.                                                        
    (7) For purposes of calculating total cost under sections 5(9) and 7(6) 
     and sections 10(1)(a) (i) and (ii),                                    
      (a) where the regional value content of the good is calculated on the 
       basis of the net cost method and the producer has chosen under       
       section 6(15), 11 (1), (3) or (6), 12(5) or 13(4) to calculate the   
       regional value content over a period, the total cost shall be        
       calculated over that period; and                                     
      (b) in any other case, the producer may choose that the total cost be 
       calculated over                                                      
        (i) a month,                                                        
        (ii) any consecutive three month or six month period that falls     
         within and is evenly divisible into the number of months of the    
         producer's fiscal year remaining at the beginning of that period,  
         or                                                                 
        (iii) the producer's fiscal year.                                   
    (8) A choice made under subsection (7) may not be rescinded or modified 
     with respect to the good or material, or the period, with respect to   
     which the choice is made.                                              
    
    [[Page 46394]]
                                                                            
    (9) Where a producer chooses a one, three or six month period under     
     subsection (7) with respect to a good or material, the producer shall  
     be considered to have chosen under that subsection a period or periods 
     of the same duration for the remainder of the producer's fiscal year   
     with respect to that good or material.                                 
    (10) With respect to a good exported to a NAFTA country, a choice to    
     average is considered to have been made                                
      (a) in the case of a choice referred to in section 11 (1), (3) or (6) 
       or 13(4), if the choice is received by the customs administration of 
       that NAFTA country; and                                              
      (b) in the case of a choice referred to in section 2(7), 6(15) or     
       12(1), if the customs administration of that NAFTA country is        
       informed in writing during the course of a verification of the origin
       of the good that the choice has been made.                           
                                                                            
                         SECTION 3. CURRENCY CONVERSION                     
                                                                            
    (1) Where the value of a good or a material is expressed in a currency  
     other than the currency of the country in which the producer of the    
     good is located, that value shall be converted to the currency of the  
     country in which that producer is located on the basis of              
      (a) in the case of the sale of that good or the purchase of that      
       material, the rate of exchange used by the producer for purposes of  
       recording that sale or purchase, as the case may be; and             
      (b) in the case of a material that is acquired by the producer other  
       than by a purchase,                                                  
        (i) where the producer used a rate of exchange for purposes of      
         recording another transaction in that other currency that occurred 
         within 30 days of the date on which the producer acquired the      
         material, that rate, and                                           
        (ii) in any other case,                                             
          (A) with respect to a producer located in Canada, the rate of     
           exchange referred to in section 5 of the Currency Exchange for   
           Customs Valuation Regulations for the date on which the material 
           was shipped directly to the producer,                            
          (B) with respect to a producer located in Mexico, the rate of     
           exchange published by the Banco de Mexico in the Diario Oficial  
           de la Federacion, under the title ``TIPO de cambio para solventar
           obligaciones denominadas en moneda extranjera pagaderas en la    
           Republica Mexicana'', for the date on which the material was     
           shipped directly to the producer, and                            
          (C) with respect to a producer located in the United States, the  
           rate of exchange referred to in 31 U.S.C. 5151 for the date on   
           which the material was shipped directly to the producer.         
    (2) Where a producer of a good has a statement referred to in section 9,
     10 or 14 that includes information in a currency other than the        
     currency of the country in which that producer is located, the currency
     shall be converted to the currency of the country in which the producer
     is located on the basis of                                             
      (a) if the material was purchased by the producer in the same currency
       as the currency in which the information in the statement is         
       provided, the rate of exchange used by the producer for purposes of  
       recording the purchase;                                              
      (b) if the material was purchased by the producer in a currency other 
       than the currency in which the information in the statement is       
       provided,                                                            
        (i) where the producer used a rate of exchange for purposes of      
         recording a transaction in that other currency that occurred within
         30 days of the date on which the producer acquired the material,   
         that rate, and                                                     
        (ii) in any other case,                                             
          (A) with respect to a producer located in Canada, the rate of     
           exchange referred to in section 5 of the Currency Exchange for   
           Customs Valuation Regulations for the date on which the material 
           was shipped directly to the producer,                            
          (B) with respect to a producer located in Mexico, the rate of     
           exchange published by the Banco de Mexico in the Diario Oficial  
           de la Federacion, under the title ``TIPO de cambio para solventar
           obligaciones denominadas en moneda extranjera pagaderas en la    
           Republica Mexicana'', for the date on which the material was     
           shipped directly to the producer, and                            
          (C) with respect to a producer located in the United States, the  
           rate of exchange referred to in 31 U.S.C. 5151 for the date on   
           which the material was shipped directly to the producer; and     
      (c) if the material was acquired by the producer other than by a      
       purchase,                                                            
        (i) where the producer used a rate of exchange for purposes of      
         recording a transaction in that other currency that occurred within
         30 days of the date on which the producer acquired the material,   
         that rate, and                                                     
        (ii) in any other case,                                             
          (A) with respect to a producer located in Canada, the rate of     
           exchange referred to in section 5 of the Currency Exchange for   
           Customs Valuation Regulations for the date on which the material 
           was shipped directly to the producer,                            
          (B) with respect to a producer located in Mexico, the rate of     
           exchange published by the Banco de Mexico in the Diario Oficial  
           de la Federacion, under the title ``TIPO de cambio para solventar
           obligaciones denominadas en moneda extranjera pagaderas en la    
           Republica Mexicana'', for the date on which the material was     
           shipped directly to the producer, and                            
          (C) with respect to a producer located in the United States, the  
           rate of exchange referred to in 31 U.S.C. 5151 for the date on   
           which the material was shipped directly to the producer.         
                                                                            
                                     PART II                                
                          SECTION 4. ORIGINATING GOODS                      
        Identification of goods which are ``wholly obtained or produced''   
                                                                            
    (1) A good originates in the territory of a NAFTA country where the good
     is                                                                     
      (a) a mineral good extracted in the territory of one or more of the   
       NAFTA countries;                                                     
      (b) a vegetable or other good harvested in the territory of one or    
       more of the NAFTA countries;                                         
      (c) a live animal born and raised in the territory of one or more of  
       the NAFTA countries;                                                 
    
    [[Page 46395]]
                                                                            
      (d) a good obtained from hunting, trapping or fishing in the territory
       of one or more of the NAFTA countries;                               
      (e) fish, shellfish or other marine life taken from the sea by a      
       vessel registered or recorded with a NAFTA country and flying its    
       flag;                                                                
      (f) a good produced on board a factory ship from a good referred to in
       paragraph (e), where the factory ship is registered or recorded with 
       the same NAFTA country as the vessel that took that good and flies   
       that country's flag;                                                 
      (g) a good taken by a NAFTA country or a person of a NAFTA country    
       from or beneath the seabed outside the territorial waters of that    
       country, where a NAFTA country has the right to exploit that seabed; 
      (h) a good taken from outer space, where the good is obtained by a    
       NAFTA country or a person of a NAFTA country and is not processed    
       outside the territories of the NAFTA countries;                      
      (i) waste and scrap derived from                                      
        (i) production in the territory of one or more of the NAFTA         
         countries, or                                                      
        (ii) used goods collected in the territory of one or more of the    
         NAFTA countries, where those goods are fit only for the recovery of
         raw materials; or                                                  
      (j) a good produced in the territory of one or more of the NAFTA      
       countries exclusively from a good referred to in any of paragraphs   
       (a) through (i), or from the derivatives of such a good, at any stage
       of production.                                                       
                                                                            
           Goods made from non-originating materials: change in tariff      
         classification requirement; regional value-content requirement     
                                                                            
    (2) A good originates in the territory of a NAFTA country where         
      (a) each of the non-originating materials used in the production of   
       the good undergoes the applicable change in tariff classification as 
       a result of production that occurs entirely in the territory of one  
       or more of the NAFTA countries, where the applicable rule in Schedule
       I for the tariff provision under which the good is classified        
       specifies only a change in tariff classification, and the good       
       satisfies all other applicable requirements of this Appendix;        
      (b) each of the non-originating materials used in the production of   
       the good undergoes the applicable change in tariff classification as 
       a result of production that occurs entirely in the territory of one  
       or more of the NAFTA countries and the good satisfies the applicable 
       regional value-content requirement, where the applicable rule in     
       Schedule I for the tariff provision under which the good is          
       classified specifies both a change in tariff classification and a    
       regional value-content requirement, and the good satisfies all other 
       applicable requirements of this Appendix; or                         
      (c) the good satisfies the applicable regional value-content          
       requirement, where the applicable rule in Schedule I for the tariff  
       provision under which the good is classified specifies only a        
       regional value-content requirement, and the good satisfies all other 
       applicable requirements of this Appendix.                            
                                                                            
                Goods made exclusively from originating materials           
                                                                            
    (3) A good originates in the territory of a NAFTA country where the good
     is produced entirely in the territory of one or more of the NAFTA      
     countries exclusively from originating materials.                      
                                                                            
          Exceptions to the change in tariff classification requirement     
                                                                            
    (4) A good originates in the territory of a NAFTA country where         
      (a) except in the case of a good provided for in any of Chapters 61   
       through 63,                                                          
        (i) the good is produced entirely in the territory of one or more of
         the NAFTA countries,                                               
        (ii) one or more of the non-originating materials used in the       
         production of the good do not undergo an applicable change in      
         tariff classification because the materials were imported together,
         whether or not with originating materials, into the territory of a 
         NAFTA country as an unassembled or disassembled good, and were     
         classified as an assembled good pursuant to Rule 2(a) of the       
         General Rules for the Interpretation of the Harmonized System,     
        (iii) the regional value content of the good, calculated in         
         accordance with section 6, is not less than 60 percent where the   
         transaction value method is used, or is not less than 50 percent   
         where the net cost method is used, and                             
        (iv) the good satisfies all other applicable requirements of this   
         Appendix, including any applicable, higher regional value-content  
         requirement provided for in section 13 or Schedule I; or           
      (b) except in the case of a good provided for in any of Chapters 61   
       through 63,                                                          
        (i) the good is produced entirely in the territory of one or more of
         the NAFTA countries,                                               
        (ii) one or more of the non-originating materials used in the       
         production of the good do not undergo an applicable change in      
         tariff classification because                                      
          (A) those materials are provided for under the Harmonized System  
           as parts of the good, and                                        
          (B) the heading for the good provides for both the good and its   
           parts and is not further subdivided into subheadings, or the     
           subheading for the good provides for both the good and its parts,
        (iii) the non-originating materials that do not undergo a change in 
         tariff classification in the circumstances described in            
         subparagraph (ii) and the good are not both classified as parts of 
         goods under the heading or subheading referred to in subparagraph  
         (ii)(B),                                                           
        (iv) each of the non-originating materials that is used in the      
         production of the good and is not referred to in subparagraph (iii)
         undergoes an applicable change in tariff classification or         
         satisfies any other applicable requirement set out in Schedule I,  
        (v) the regional value content of the good, calculated in accordance
         with section 6, is not less than 60 percent where the transaction  
         value method is used, or is not less than 50 percent where the net 
         cost method is used, and                                           
        (vi) the good satisfies all other applicable requirements of this   
         Appendix, including any applicable, higher regional value-content  
         requirement provided for in section 13 or Schedule I.              
                                                                            
    Interpretation: heading or subheading which provides for both a good and
                                parts of the good                           
                                                                            
    (5) For purposes of subsection (4)(b),                                  
    
    [[Page 46396]]
                                                                            
      (a) the determination of whether a heading or subheading provides for 
       a good and its parts shall be made on the basis of the nomenclature  
       of the heading or subheading and the relevant Section or Chapter     
       Notes, in accordance with the General Rules for the Interpretation of
       the Harmonized System; and                                           
      (b) where, in accordance with the Harmonized System, a heading        
       includes parts of goods by application of a Section Note or Chapter  
       Note of the Harmonized System and the subheadings under that heading 
       do not include a subheading designated ``Parts'', a subheading       
       designated ``Other'' under that heading shall be considered to cover 
       only the goods and parts of the goods that are themselves classified 
       under that subheading.                                               
    (6) For purposes of subsection (2), where Schedule I sets out two or    
     more alternative rules for the tariff provision under which a good is  
     classified, if the good satisfies the requirements of one of those     
     rules, it need not satisfy the requirements of another of the rules in 
     order to qualify as an originating good.                               
                                                                            
                         Special rule for certain goods                     
                                                                            
    (7) A good originates in the territory of a NAFTA country if the good is
     referred to in Table 308.1.1 of Section B of Annex 308.1 to Chapter    
     Three of the Agreement and is imported from the territory of a NAFTA   
     country at a time when the NAFTA countries' most-favored-nation rate of
     duty for that good is in accordance with paragraph 1 of Section A of   
     that Annex.                                                            
                                                                            
     Self-produced material may be a material for determining applicability 
                               of rules of origin                           
                                                                            
    (8) For purposes of determining whether non-originating materials       
     undergo an applicable change in tariff classification, a self-produced 
     material may, at the choice of the producer of a good into which the   
     self-produced material is incorporated, be considered as an originating
     material or non-originating material, as the case may be, used in the  
     production of that good.                                               
    (9) The following example is an ``Example'' as referred to in section   
     2(4).                                                                  
                                                                            
                                                                            
    
    
    
    Example: section 4(8), Self-produced Materials as Materials for Purposes
     of Determining Whether Non-originating Materials Undergo an Applicable 
     Change in Tariff Classification                                        
        Producer A, located in a NAFTA country, produces Good A. In the     
     production process, Producer A uses originating Material X and non-    
     originating Material Y to produce Material Z. Material Z is a self-    
     produced material that will be used to produce Good A.                 
        The rule set out in Schedule I for the heading under which Good A is
     classified specifies a change in tariff classification from any other  
     heading. In this case, both Good A and the non-originating Material Y  
     are of the same heading. However, the self-produced Material Z is of a 
     heading different than that of Good A.                                 
        For purposes of determining whether the non-originating materials   
     that are used in the production of Good A undergo the applicable change
     in tariff classification, Producer A has the option to consider the    
     self-produced Material Z as the material that must undergo a change in 
     tariff classification. As Material Z is of a heading different than    
     that of Good A, Material Z satisfies the applicable change in tariff   
     classification and Good A would qualify as an originating good.        
                                                                            
    
    
    
                              SECTION 5. DE MINIMIS                         
        De minimis rule for non-originating materials that do not undergo   
               subject to authorization, a required tariff change           
                                                                            
    (1) Except as otherwise provided in subsection (4), a good shall be     
     considered to originate in the territory of a NAFTA country where the  
     value of all non-originating materials that are used in the production 
     of the good and that do not undergo an applicable change in tariff     
     classification as a result of production occurring entirely in the     
     territory of one or more of the NAFTA countries is not more than seven 
     percent                                                                
      (a) of the transaction value of the good determined in accordance with
       Schedule II with respect to the transaction in which the producer of 
       the good sold the good, adjusted to an F.O.B. basis, or              
      (b) of the total cost of the good, where there is no transaction value
       for the good under section 2(1) of Schedule III or the transaction   
       value of the good is unacceptable under section 2(2) of that         
       Schedule,                                                            
    provided that,                                                          
      (c) if, under the rule in which the applicable change in tariff       
       classification is specified, the good is also subject to a regional  
       value-content requirement, the value of those non-originating        
       materials shall be taken into account in calculating the regional    
       value content of the good in accordance with the method set out for  
       that good, and                                                       
      (d) the good satisfies all other applicable requirements of this      
       Appendix.                                                            
    (2) For purposes of subsection (1), where                               
      (a) Schedule I sets out two or more alternative rules for the tariff  
       provision under which the good is classified, and                    
      (b) the good, in accordance with subsection (1), is considered to     
       originate under one of those rules,                                  
    the good is not required to satisfy the requirements specified in any   
     alternative rule referred to in paragraph (a).                         
    (3) For purposes of subsection (1), in the case of a good that is       
     provided for in heading 2402, the percentage shall be nine percent     
     instead of seven percent.                                              
                                                                            
                                   Exceptions                               
                                                                            
    (4) Subsections (1) and (2) do not apply to                             
      (a) a non-originating material provided for in Chapter 4 or tariff    
       items 1901.90.31, 1901.90.41 and 1901.90.81 (dairy preparations      
       containing over 10 percent by weight of milk solids) that is used in 
       the production of a good provided for in Chapter 4;                  
      (b) a non-originating material provided for in Chapter 4 or tariff    
       items 1901.90.31, 1901.90.41 and 1901.90.81 (dairy preparations      
       containing over 10 percent by weight of milk solids) that is used in 
       the production of a good provided for in any of tariff items         
       1901.10.10 (infant preparations containing over 10 percent by weight 
       of milk solids), 1901.20.10 (mixes and doughs, containing over 25    
       percent by weight of butterfat, not put up for retail sale),         
       1901.90.31, 1901.90.41 and 1901.90.81 (dairy preparations containing 
       over 10 percent by weight of milk solids), heading 2105 and tariff   
       items 2106.90.05, 2106.90.13, 2106.90.41, 2106.90.51 and 2106.90.61  
       (preparations containing over 10 percent by weight of milk solids),  
       2202.90.10 and 2202.90.20 (beverages containing milk) and 2309.90.31 
       (animal feeds containing over 10 percent by weight of milk solids);  
    
    [[Page 46397]]
                                                                            
      (c) a non-originating material provided for in any of heading 0805 and
       subheadings 2009.11 through 2009.30 that is used in the production of
       a good provided for in any of subheadings 2009.11 through 2009.30 and
       tariff items 2106.90.16 and 2106.90.17 (concentrated fruit or        
       vegetable juice of any single fruit or vegetable, fortified with     
       minerals or vitamins) and 2202.90.30, 2202.90.35 and 2202.90.36      
       (fruit or vegetable juice of any single fruit or vegetable, fortified
       with minerals or vitamins);                                          
      (d) a non-originating material provided for in Chapter 9 that is used 
       in the production of a good provided for in tariff item 2101.10.21   
       (instant coffee, not flavored);                                      
      (e) a non-originating material provided for in Chapter 15 that is used
       in the production of a good provided for in any of headings 1501     
       through 1508, 1512, 1514 and 1515;                                   
      (f) a non-originating material provided for in heading 1701 that is   
       used in the production of a good provided for in any of headings 1701
       through 1703;                                                        
      (g) a non-originating material provided for in Chapter 17 or heading  
       1805 that is used in the production of a good provided for in        
       subheading 1806.10; (h) a non-originating material provided for in   
       any of headings 2203 through 2208 that is used in the production of a
       good provided for in any of headings 2207 through 2208;              
      (i) a non-originating material that is used in the production of a    
       good provided for in any of tariff item 7321.11.30 (gas stove or     
       range), subheadings 8415.10, 8415.81 through 8415.83, 8418.10 through
       8418.21, 8418.29 through 8418.40, 8421.12, 8422.11, 8450.11 through  
       8450.20 and 8451.21 through 8451.29, Mexican tariff item 8479.82.03  
       (trash compactors) or Canadian or U.S. tariff item 8479.89.55 (trash 
       compactors), and tariff item 8516.60.40 (electric stove or range);   
      (j) a printed circuit assembly that is a non-originating material used
       in the production of a good, where the applicable change in tariff   
       classification for the good places restrictions on the use of that   
       non-originating material, such as by prohibiting, or limiting the    
       quantity of, that non-originating material;                          
      (k) a non-originating material that is a single juice ingredient      
       provided for in heading 2009 that is used in the production of a good
       provided for in any of subheading 2009.90 and tariff items 2106.90.18
       (concentrated mixtures of fruit or vegetable juice, fortified with   
       minerals or vitamins) and 2202.90.37 (mixtures of fruit or vegetable 
       juices, fortified with minerals or vitamins);                        
      (l) a non-originating material that is used in the production of a    
       good provided for in any of Chapters 1 through 27, unless the non-   
       originating material is of a different subheading than the good for  
       which origin is being determined under this section; or              
      (m) a non-originating material that is used in the production of a    
       good provided for in any of Chapters 50 through 63.                  
                                                                            
             De minimis rule for regional value-content requirement         
                                                                            
    (5) A good that is subject to a regional value-content requirement shall
     be considered to originate in the territory of a NAFTA country and     
     shall not be required to satisfy that requirement where                
      (a) the value of all non-originating materials used in the production 
       of the good is not more than seven percent                           
        (i) of the transaction value of the good determined in accordance   
         with Schedule II with respect to the transaction in which the      
         producer of the good sold the good, adjusted to an F.O.B. basis, or
        (ii) of the total cost of the good, where there is no transaction   
         value for the good under section 2(1) of Schedule III or the       
         transaction value of the good is unacceptable under section 2(2) of
         that Schedule; and                                                 
      (b) the good satisfies all other applicable requirements of this      
       Appendix.                                                            
                                                                            
                        De minimis rule for textile goods                   
                                                                            
    (6) A good provided for in any of Chapters 50 through 63, that does not 
     originate in the territory of a NAFTA country because certain fibers or
     yarns that are used in the production of the component of the good that
     determines the tariff classification of the good do not undergo an     
     applicable change in tariff classification as a result of production   
     occurring entirely in the territory of one or more of the NAFTA        
     countries, shall be considered to originate in the territory of a NAFTA
     country if                                                             
      (a) the total weight of all those fibers or yarns is not more than    
       seven percent of the total weight of that component; and             
      (b) the good satisfies all other applicable requirements of this      
       Appendix.                                                            
    (7) For purposes of subsection (6),                                     
      (a) the component of a good that determines the tariff classification 
       of that good shall be identified in accordance with the first of the 
       following General Rules for the Interpretation of the Harmonized     
       System under which the identification can be determined, namely, Rule
       3(b), Rule 3(c) and Rule 4; and                                      
      (b) where the component of the good that determines the tariff        
       classification of the good is a blend of two or more yarns or fibers,
       all yarns and fibers used in the production of the component shall be
       taken into account in determining the weight of fibers and yarns in  
       that component.                                                      
    (8) For purposes of subsections (1) and (5), the value of non-          
     originating materials shall be determined in accordance with sections  
     7(1) through (4).                                                      
                                                                            
      Calculation of ``total cost'' for de minimis rules: choice of methods 
                                                                            
    (9) For purposes of subsection (1)(b) and subsection (5)(a)(ii), the    
     total cost of a good shall be, at the choice of the producer of the    
     good,                                                                  
      (a) the total cost incurred with respect to all goods produced by the 
       producer that can be reasonably allocated to that good in accordance 
       with Schedule VII; or                                                
      (b) the aggregate of each cost that forms part of the total cost      
       incurred with respect to that good that can be reasonably allocated  
       to that good in accordance with Schedule VII.                        
                                                                            
     
    [[Page 46398]]
                                                                            
        Calculation of total cost; application of Schedules IX and X for    
                 determining value of non-originating materials             
                                                                            
    (10) Total cost under subsection (9) consists of the costs referred to  
     in section 2(6), and is calculated in accordance with that subsection  
     and section 2(7).                                                      
    (11) For purposes of determining the value under subsection (1) of non- 
     originating materials that do not undergo an applicable change in      
     tariff classification, where Schedule X is not being used to determine 
     the value of those non-originating materials,                          
      (a) if the value of those non-originating materials is being          
       determined as a percentage of the transaction value of the good and  
       the producer chooses under section 6(10) that one of the methods set 
       out in Schedule IX be used to determine the value of those non-      
       originating materials for purposes of calculating the regional value 
       content of the good, the value of those non-originating materials    
       shall be determined in accordance with that method;                  
      (b) if                                                                
        (i) the value of those non-originating materials is being determined
         as a percentage of the total cost of the good,                     
        (ii) under the rule in which the applicable change in tariff        
         classification is specified, the good is also subject to a regional
         value-content requirement and subsection (5)(a) does not apply with
         respect to that good,                                              
        (iii) the regional value content of the good is calculated on the   
         basis of the net cost method, and                                  
        (iv) the producer chooses under section 6(15), 11(1), (3) or (6),   
         12(1) or 13(4) that the regional value content of the good be      
         calculated over a period,                                          
      the value of those non-originating materials shall be the sum of the  
       values of non-originating materials determined in accordance with    
       that choice, divided by the number of units of the goods with respect
       to which the choice is made;                                         
      (c) if                                                                
        (i) the value of those non-originating materials is being determined
         as a percentage of the total cost of the good,                     
        (ii) under the rule in which the applicable change in tariff        
         classification is specified, the good is not also subject to a     
         regional value-content requirement or subsection (5)(a) applies    
         with respect to that good, and                                     
        (iii) the producer chooses under section 2(7)(b) that, for purposes 
         of section 5(9), the total cost of the good be calculated over a   
         period,                                                            
      the value of those non-originating materials shall be the sum of the  
       values of non-originating materials divided by the number of units   
       produced during that period; and                                     
      (d) in any other case, the value of those non-originating materials   
       may, at the choice of the producer, be determined in accordance with 
       one of the methods set out in Schedule IX.                           
    (12) For purposes of subsection (5), the value of the non-originating   
     materials used in the production of the good may, at the choice of the 
     producer, be determined in accordance with one of the methods set out  
     in Schedule IX.                                                        
                                                                            
                     Examples illustrating de minimis rules                 
                                                                            
    (13) Each of the following examples is an ``Example'' as referred to in 
     section 2(4).                                                          
                                                                            
                                                                            
    
    
    
    Example 1: section 5(1)                                                 
        Producer A, located in a NAFTA country, uses originating materials  
     and non-originating materials in the production of copper anodes       
     provided for in heading 7402. The rule set out in Schedule I for       
     heading 7402 specifies a change in tariff classification from any other
     chapter. There is no applicable regional value-content requirement for 
     this heading. Therefore, in order for the copper anode to qualify as an
     originating good under the rule set out in Schedule I, Producer A may  
     not use in the production of the copper anode any non-originating      
     material provided for in Chapter 74.                                   
        All of the materials used in the production of the copper anode are 
     originating materials, with the exception of a small amount of copper  
     scrap provided for in heading 7404, that is in the same chapter as the 
     copper anode. Under section 5(1), if the value of the non-originating  
     copper scrap does not exceed seven percent of the transaction value of 
     the copper anode or the total cost of the copper anode, whichever is   
     applicable, the copper anode would be considered an originating good.  
    Example 2: section 5(2)                                                 
        Producer A, located in a NAFTA country, uses originating materials  
     and non-originating materials in the production of ceiling fans        
     provided for in subheading 8414.51. There are two alternative rules set
     out in Schedule I for subheading 8414.51, one of which specifies a     
     change in tariff classification from any other heading. The other rule 
     specifies both a change in tariff classification from the subheading   
     under which parts of the ceiling fans are classified and a regional    
     value-content requirement. Therefore, in order for the ceiling fan to  
     qualify as an originating good under the first of the alternative      
     rules, all of the materials that are classified under the subheading   
     for parts of ceiling fans and used in the production of the completed  
     ceiling fan must be originating materials.                             
        In this case, all of the non-originating materials used in the      
     production of the ceiling fan satisfy the change in tariff             
     classification set out in the rule that specifies a change in tariff   
     classification from any other heading, with the exception of one non-  
     originating material that is classified under the subheading for parts 
     of ceiling fans. Under section 5(1), if the value of the non-          
     originating material that does not satisfy the change in tariff        
     classification specified in the first rule does not exceed seven       
     percent of the transaction value of the ceiling fan or the total cost  
     of the ceiling fan, whichever is applicable, the ceiling fan would be  
     considered an originating good. Therefore, under section 5(2), the     
     ceiling fan would not be required to satisfy the alternative rule that 
     specifies both a change in tariff classification and a regional value- 
     content requirement.                                                   
    Example 3: section 5(2)                                                 
    
    [[Page 46399]]
                                                                            
        Producer A, located in a NAFTA country, uses originating materials  
     and non-originating materials in the production of plastic bags        
     provided for in subheading 3923.29. The rule set out in Schedule I for 
     subheading 3923.29 specifies both a change in tariff classification    
     from any other heading, except from subheadings 3920.20 or 3920.71,    
     under which certain plastic materials are classified, and a regional   
     value-content requirement. Therefore, with respect to that part of the 
     rule that specifies a change in tariff classification, in order for the
     plastic bag to qualify as an originating good, any plastic materials   
     that are classified under subheading 3920.20 or 3920.71 and that are   
     used in the production of the plastic bag must be originating          
     materials.                                                             
        In this case, all of the non-originating materials used in the      
     production of the plastic bag satisfy the specified change in tariff   
     classification, with the exception of a small amount of plastic        
     materials classified under subheading 3920.71. Section 5(1) provides   
     that the plastic bag can be considered an originating good if the value
     of the non-originating plastic materials that do not satisfy the       
     specified change in tariff classification does not exceed seven percent
     of the transaction value of the plastic bag or the total cost of the   
     plastic bag, whichever is applicable. In this case, the value of those 
     non-originating materials that do not satisfy the specified change in  
     tariff classification does not exceed the seven percent limit.         
        However, the rule set out in Schedule I for subheading 3923.29      
     specifies both a change in tariff classification and a regional value- 
     content requirement. Therefore, under section 5(1)(c), in order to be  
     considered an originating good, the plastic bag must also, except as   
     otherwise provided in section 5(5), satisfy the regional value-content 
     requirement specified in that rule. As provided in section 5(1)(c), the
     value of the non-originating materials that do not satisfy the         
     specified change in tariff classification, together with the value of  
     all other non-originating materials used in the production of the      
     plastic bag, will be taken into account in calculating the regional    
     value content of the plastic bag.                                      
    Example 4: section 5(5)                                                 
        Producer A, located in a NAFTA country, primarily uses originating  
     materials in the production of shoes provided for in heading 6405. The 
     rule set out in Schedule I for heading 6405 specifies both a change in 
     tariff classification from any subheading other than subheadings       
     6401.10 through 6406.10 and a regional value-content requirement.      
        With the exception of a small amount of materials provided for in   
     Chapter 39, all of the materials used in the production of the shoes   
     are originating materials.                                             
        Under section 5(5), if the value of all of the non-originating      
     materials used in the production of the shoes does not exceed seven    
     percent of the transaction value of the shoes or the total cost of the 
     shoes, whichever is applicable, the shoes are not required to satisfy  
     the regional value-content requirement specified in the rule set out in
     Schedule I in order to be considered originating goods.                
    Example 5: section 5(5)                                                 
        Producer A, located in a NAFTA country, produces barbers' chairs    
     provided for in subheading 9402.10. The rule set out in Schedule I for 
     goods provided for in heading 9402 specifies a change in tariff        
     classification from any other chapter. All of the materials used in the
     production of these chairs are originating materials, with the         
     exception of a small quantity of non-originating materials that are    
     classified as parts of barbers' chairs. These parts undergo no change  
     in tariff classification because subheading 9402.10 provides for both  
     barbers' chairs and their parts.                                       
        Although Producer A's barbers' chairs do not qualify as originating 
     goods under the rule set out in Schedule I, section 4(4)(b) provides,  
     among other things, that, where there is no change in tariff           
     classification from the non-originating materials to the goods because 
     the subheading under which the goods are classified provides for both  
     the goods and their parts, the goods shall qualify as originating goods
     if they satisfy a specified regional value-content requirement.        
        However, under section 5(5), if the value of the non-originating    
     materials does not exceed seven percent of the transaction value of the
     barbers' chairs or the total cost of the barbers' chairs, whichever is 
     applicable, the barbers' chairs will be considered originating goods   
     and are not required to satisfy the regional value-content requirement 
     set out in section 4(4)(b)(v).                                         
    Example 6: sections 5 (6) and (7)                                       
        Producer A, located in a NAFTA country, produces women's dresses    
     provided for in subheading 6204.41 from fine wool fabric of heading    
     5112. This fine wool fabric, also produced by Producer A, is the       
     component of the dress that determines its tariff classification under 
     subheading 6204.41.                                                    
        The rule set out in Schedule I for subheading 6204.41, under which  
     the dress is classified, specifies both a change in tariff             
     classification from any other chapter, except from those headings and  
     chapters under which certain yarns and fabrics, including combed wool  
     yarn and wool fabric, are classified, and a requirement that the good  
     be cut and sewn or otherwise assembled in the territory of one or more 
     of the NAFTA countries.                                                
        Therefore, with respect to that part of the rule that specifies a   
     change in tariff classification, in order for the dress to qualify as  
     an originating good, the combed wool yarn and the fine wool fabric made
     therefrom that are used by Producer A in the production of the dress   
     must be originating materials.                                         
        At one point Producer A uses a small quantity of non-originating    
     combed wool yarn in the production of the fine wool fabric. Under      
     section 5(6), if the total weight of the non-originating combed wool   
     yarn does not exceed seven percent of the total weight of all the yarn 
     used in the production of the component of the dress that determines   
     its tariff classification, that is, the wool fabric, the dress would be
     considered an originating good.                                        
                                                                            
                                                                            
    
    
    
                                    PART III                                
                        SECTION 6. REGIONAL VALUE CONTENT                   
                                                                            
    (1) Except as otherwise provided in subsection (6), the regional value  
     content of a good shall be calculated, at the choice of the exporter or
     producer of the good, on the basis of either the transaction value     
     method or the net cost method.                                         
                                                                            
                            Transaction Value Method                        
                                                                            
    (2) The transaction value method for calculating the regional value     
     content of a good is as follows:                                       
                                                                            
                                                                            
    
    
    where                                                                   
      RVC is the regional value content of the good, expressed as a         
       percentage;                                                          
      TV is the transaction value of the good, determined in accordance with
       Schedule II with respect to the transaction in which the producer of 
       the good sold the good, adjusted to an F.O.B. basis; and             
      VNM is the value of non-originating materials used by the producer in 
       the production of the good, determined in accordance with section 7. 
                                                                            
    RAPHIC>TR06SE95.000
    [[Page 46400]]
                                                                            
                                 Net Cost Method                            
                                                                            
    (3) The net cost method for calculating the regional value content of a 
     good is as follows:                                                    
                                                                            
                                                                            
    
    
    
    where                                                                   
      RVC is the regional value content of the good, expressed as a         
       percentage;                                                          
      NC is the net cost of the good, calculated in accordance with         
       subsection (11); and                                                 
      VNM is the value of non-originating materials used by the producer in 
       the production of the good, determined, except as otherwise provided 
       in sections 9 and 10, in accordance with section 7.                  
                                                                            
         VNM does not include value of non-originating materials used in    
                              originating material                          
                                                                            
    (4) Except as otherwise provided in section 9 and section 10(1)(d), for 
     purposes of calculating the regional value content of a good under     
     subsection (2) or (3), the value of non-originating materials used by a
     producer in the production of the good shall not include               
      (a) the value of any non-originating materials used by another        
       producer in the production of originating materials that are         
       subsequently acquired and used by the producer of the good in the    
       production of that good; or                                          
      (b) the value of any non-originating materials used by the producer in
       the production of a self-produced material that is an originating    
       material and is designated as an intermediate material.              
    (5) For purposes of subsection (4),                                     
      (a) in the case of any self-produced material that is not designated  
       as an intermediate material, only the value of any non-originating   
       materials used in the production of the self-produced material shall 
       be included in the value of non-originating materials used in the    
       production of the good; and                                          
      (b) where a self-produced material that is designated as an           
       intermediate material and is an originating material is used by the  
       producer of the good with non-originating materials (whether or not  
       those non-originating materials are produced by that producer) in the
       production of the good, the value of those non-originating materials 
       shall be included in the value of non-originating materials.         
                                                                            
                Net Cost Method required in certain circumstances           
                                                                            
    (6) The regional value content of a good shall be calculated only on the
     basis of the net cost method where                                     
      (a) there is no transaction value for the good under section 2(1) of  
       Schedule III;                                                        
      (b) the transaction value of the good is unacceptable under section   
       2(2) of Schedule III;                                                
      (c) the good is sold by the producer to a related person and the      
       volume, by units of quantity, of sales by that producer of identical 
       goods or similar goods, or any combination thereof, to related       
       persons during the six month period immediately preceding the month  
       in which the goods are sold exceeds 85 percent of the producer's     
       total sales to all persons, whether or not related and regardless of 
       location, after ``the producer's total sales''of identical goods or  
       similar goods, or any combination thereof, during that period;       
      (d) the good is                                                       
        (i) a motor vehicle provided for in any of headings 8701 and 8702,  
         subheadings 8703.21 through 8703.90 and headings 8704, 8705 and    
         8706,                                                              
        (ii) a good provided for in a tariff provision listed in Schedule IV
         or an automotive component assembly, automotive component, sub-    
         component or listed material, and is for use in a motor vehicle    
         referred to in subparagraph (i), either as original equipment or as
         an after-market part,                                              
        (iii) a good provided for in any of subheadings 6401.10 through     
         6406.10, or                                                        
        (iv) a good provided for in tariff item 8469.10.40 (word processing 
         machines);                                                         
      (e) the exporter or producer chooses to accumulate with respect to the
       good in accordance with section 14; or                               
      (f) the good is an intermediate material and is subject to a regional 
       value-content requirement.                                           
                                                                            
       Option to change from TVM to NCM for calculation of regional value   
                                     content                                
                                                                            
    (7) If the exporter or producer of a good calculates the regional value 
     content of the good on the basis of the transaction value method and   
     the customs administration of a NAFTA country subsequently notifies    
     that exporter or producer in writing, during the course of a           
     verification of origin, that                                           
      (a) the transaction value of the good, as determined by the exporter  
       or producer, is required to be adjusted under section 4 of Schedule  
       II or is unacceptable under section 2(2) of Schedule III, there is no
       transaction value for the good under section 2(1) of Schedule III or 
       the transaction value method may not be used because of the          
       application of subsection (6)(c), or                                 
      (b) the value of any material used in the production of the good, as  
       determined by the exporter or producer, is required to be adjusted   
       under section 5 of Schedule VIII or is unacceptable under section    
       2(3) of Schedule VIII, or there is no transaction value for the      
       material under section 2(2) of Schedule VIII or the transaction value
       method may not be used to calculate the regional value content of the
       material because of the application of subsection (6)(c),            
    the exporter or producer may choose that the regional value content of  
     the good be calculated on the basis of the net cost method, in which   
     case the calculation must be made within 60 days after the producer    
     receives the notification, or such longer period as that customs       
     administration specifies.                                              
                                                                            
    RAPHIC>TR06SE95.001
    [[Page 46401]]
                                                                            
                      Change from NCM to TVM not permitted                  
                                                                            
    (8) If the exporter or producer of a good chooses that the regional     
     value content of the good be calculated on the basis of the net cost   
     method and the customs administration of a NAFTA country subsequently  
     notifies that exporter or producer in writing, during the course of a  
     verification of origin, that the good does not satisfy the applicable  
     regional value-content requirement, the exporter or producer of the    
     good may not recalculate the regional value content on the basis of the
     transaction value method.                                              
    (9) Nothing in subsection (7) shall be construed as preventing any      
     review and appeal under Article 510 of the Agreement, as implemented in
     each NAFTA country, of an adjustment to or a rejection of              
      (a) the transaction value of the good; or                             
      (b) the value of any material used in the production of the good.     
                                                                            
     Application of Schedule IX for determining value of ``identical'' non- 
                         originating materials under TVM                    
                                                                            
    (10) For purposes of the transaction value method, where non-originating
     materials that are the same as one another in all respects, including  
     physical characteristics, quality and reputation but excluding minor   
     differences in appearance, are used in the production of a good, the   
     value of those non-originating materials may, at the choice of the     
     producer of the good, be determined in accordance with one of the      
     methods set out in Schedule IX.                                        
                                                                            
                 Options for calculating the net cost of a good             
                                                                            
    (11) For purposes of subsection (3), the net cost of a good may be      
     calculated, at the choice of the producer of the good, by              
      (a) calculating the total cost incurred with respect to all goods     
       produced by that producer, subtracting any excluded costs that are   
       included in that total cost, and reasonably allocating, in accordance
       with Schedule VII, the remainder to the good;                        
      (b) calculating the total cost incurred with respect to all goods     
       produced by that producer, reasonably allocating, in accordance with 
       Schedule VII, that total cost to the good, and subtracting any       
       excluded costs that are included in the amount allocated to that     
       good; or                                                             
      (c) reasonably allocating, in accordance with Schedule VII, each cost 
       that forms part of the total cost incurred with respect to the good  
       so that the aggregate of those costs does not include any excluded   
       costs.                                                               
                                                                            
                            Calculation of total cost                       
                                                                            
    (12) Total cost under subsection (11) consists of the costs referred to 
     in section 2(6), and is calculated in accordance with that subsection. 
                                                                            
                     Calculation of net cost; excluded costs                
                                                                            
    (13) For purposes of calculating net cost under subsection (11),        
      (a) excluded costs shall be the excluded costs that are recorded on   
       the books of the producer of the good;                               
      (b) excluded costs that are included in the value of a material that  
       is used in the production of the good shall not be subtracted from or
       otherwise excluded from the total cost; and                          
      (c) excluded costs do not include any amount paid for research and    
       development services performed in the territory of a NAFTA country.  
                                                                            
             Non-allowable interest; determination under Schedule XI        
                                                                            
    (14) For purposes of calculating non-allowable interest costs, the      
     determination of whether interest costs incurred by a producer are more
     than 700 basis points above the yield on debt obligations of comparable
     maturities issued by the federal government of the country in which the
     producer is located shall be made in accordance with Schedule XI.      
                                                                            
      Use of ``averaging'' over a period to calculate RVC under NCM; period 
                                cannot be changed                           
                                                                            
    (15) For purposes of the net cost method, the regional value content of 
     the good, other than a good with respect to which a choice to average  
     may be made under section 11(1), (3) or (6), 12(1) or 13(4), may be    
     calculated, where the producer chooses to do so, by                    
      (a) calculating the sum of the net costs incurred and the sum of the  
       values of non-originating materials used by the producer of the good 
       with respect to the good and identical goods or similar goods, or any
       combination thereof, produced in a single plant by the producer over 
        (i) a month,                                                        
        (ii) any consecutive three month or six month period that falls     
         within and is evenly divisible into the number of months of the    
         producer's fiscal year remaining at the beginning of that period,  
         or                                                                 
        (iii) the producer's fiscal year; and                               
      (b) using the sums referred to in paragraph (a) as the net cost and   
       the value of non-originating materials, respectively.                
    (16) The calculation made under subsection (15) shall apply with respect
     to all units of the good produced during the period chosen by the      
     producer under subsection (15)(a).                                     
    (17) A choice made under subsection (15) may not be rescinded or        
     modified with respect to the goods or the period with respect to which 
     the choice is made.                                                    
                                                                            
      Choice of averaging period cannot be changed for remainder of fiscal  
                                      year                                  
                                                                            
    (18) Where a producer chooses a one, three or six month period under    
     subsection (15) with respect to goods, the producer shall be considered
     to have chosen under that subsection a period or periods of the same   
     duration for the remainder of the producer's fiscal year with respect  
     to those goods.                                                        
                                                                            
     Choice of net cost method cannot be changed for remainder of the fiscal
                                      year                                  
                                                                            
    (19) Where the net cost method is required to be used or has been chosen
     and a choice has been made under subsection (15), the regional value   
     content of the good shall be calculated on the basis of the net cost   
     method over the period chosen under that subsection and for the        
     remainder of the producer's fiscal year.                               
                                                                            
     
    [[Page 46402]]
                                                                            
      Obligation to perform self-analysis and give notification of changed  
           circumstance if RVC calculated on basis of estimated costs       
                                                                            
    (20) Except as otherwise provided in sections 11(10), 12(11) and 13(10),
     where the producer of a good has calculated the regional value content 
     of the good under the net cost method on the basis of estimated costs, 
     including standard costs, budgeted forecasts or other similar          
     estimating procedures, before or during the period chosen in subsection
     (15)(a), the producer shall conduct an analysis at the end of the      
     producer's fiscal year of the actual costs incurred over the period    
     with respect to the production of the good and, if the good does not   
     satisfy the regional value-content requirement on the basis of the     
     actual costs during that period, immediately inform any person to whom 
     the producer has provided a Certificate of Origin for the good, or a   
     written statement that the good is an originating good, that the good  
     is a non-originating good.                                             
                                                                            
                 Option to treat any material as non-originating            
                                                                            
    (21) For purposes of calculating the regional value content of a good,  
     the producer of that good may choose to treat any material used in the 
     production of that good as a non-originating material.                 
                                                                            
                Examples of Calculation of RVC under TVM and NCM            
                                                                            
    (22) Each of the following examples is an ``Example'' as referred to in 
     section 2(4).                                                          
                                                                            
    
    
    
    
    Example 1: example of point of direct shipment (with respect to adjusted
     to an F.O.B. basis)                                                    
        A producer has only one factory, at which the producer manufactures 
     finished office chairs. Because the factory is located close to        
     transportation facilities, all units of the finished good are stored in
     a factory warehouse 200 meters from the end of the production line.    
     Goods are shipped worldwide from this warehouse. The point of direct   
     shipment is the warehouse.                                             
    Example 2: examples of point of direct shipment (with respect to        
     adjusted to an F.O.B. basis)                                           
        A producer has six factories, all located within the territory of   
     one of the NAFTA countries, at which the producer produces garden tools
     of various types. These tools are shipped worldwide, and orders usually
     consist of bulk orders of various types of tools. Because different    
     tools are manufactured at different factories, the producer decided to 
     consolidate storage and shipping facilities and ships all finished     
     products to a large warehouse located near the seaport, from which all 
     orders are shipped. The distance from the factories to the warehouse   
     varies from 3 km to 130 km. The point of direct shipment for each of   
     the goods is the warehouse.                                            
    Example 3: examples of point of direct shipment (with respect to        
     adjusted to an F.O.B. basis)                                           
        A producer has only one factory, located near the center of one of  
     the NAFTA countries, at which the producer manufactures finished office
     chairs. The office chairs are shipped from that factory to three       
     warehouses leased by the producer, one on the west coast, one near the 
     factory and one on the east coast. The office chairs are shipped to    
     buyers from these warehouses, the shipping location depending on the   
     shipping distance from the buyer. Buyers closest to the west coast     
     warehouse are normally supplied by the west coast warehouse, buyers    
     closest to the east coast are normally supplied by the warehouse       
     located on the east coast and buyers closest to the warehouse near the 
     factory are normally supplied by that warehouse. In this case, the     
     point of direct shipment is the location of the warehouse from which   
     the office chairs are normally shipped to customers in the location in 
     which the buyer is located.                                            
    Example 4: section 6(3), net cost method                                
        A producer located in NAFTA country A sells Good A that is subject  
     to a regional value-content requirement to a buyer located in NAFTA    
     country B. The producer of Good A chooses that the regional value      
     content of that good be calculated using the net cost method. All      
     applicable requirements of this Appendix, other than the regional value-
     content requirement, have been met. The applicable regional value-     
     content requirement is 50 percent.                                     
        In order to calculate the regional value-content of Good A, the     
     producer first calculates the net cost of Good A. Under section        
     6(11)(a), the net cost is the total cost of Good A (the aggregate of   
     the product costs, period costs and other costs) per unit, minus the   
     excluded costs (the aggregate of the sales promotion, marketing and    
     after-sales service costs, royalties, shipping and packing costs and   
     non-allowable interest costs) per unit. The producer uses the following
     figures to calculate the net cost:                                     
                                                                            
    
    
                                                                            
                                                                            
    Product costs:                                                          
        Value of originating materials.........................       $30.00
        Value of non-originating materials.....................        40.00
        Other product costs....................................        20.00
    Period costs...............................................        10.00
    Other costs................................................         0.00
                                                                ------------
    Total cost of Good A, per unit.............................      $100.00
    Excluded costs:                                                         
        Sales promotion, marketing and after-sales service cost        $5.00
        Royalties..............................................         2.50
        Shipping and packing costs.............................         3.00
        Non-allowable interest costs...........................         1.50
                                                                ------------
    Total excluded costs.......................................       $12.00
    
    
        The net cost is the total cost of Good A, per unit, minus the       
     excluded costs.                                                        
                                                                            
    
    
                                                                            
                                                                            
    Total cost of Good A, per unit:............................      $100.00
    Excluded costs.............................................       -12.00
                                                                ------------
    Net cost of Good A, per unit...............................       $88.00
    
    
    
        The value for net cost ($88) and the value of non-originating       
     materials ($40) are needed in order to calculate the regional value    
     content. The producer calculates the regional value content of Good A  
     under the net cost method in the following manner:                     
                                                                            
                                                                            
    
    
    [[Page 46403]]
    [GRAPHIC][TIFF OMITTED]TR06SE95.002
    
    
    
        Therefore, under the net cost method, Good A qualifies as an        
     originating good, with a regional value-content of 54.5 percent.       
    Example 5: section 6(6)(c), net cost method required for certain sales  
     to related persons                                                     
        On January 15, 1994, a producer located in NAFTA country A sells    
     1,000 units of Good A to a related person, located in NAFTA country B. 
     During the six month period beginning on July 1, 1993 and ending on    
     December 31, 1993, the producer sold 90,000 units of identical goods   
     and similar goods to related persons from various countries, including 
     that buyer. The producer's total sales of those identical goods and    
     similar goods to all persons from all countries during that six month  
     period were 100,000 units.                                             
        The total quantity of identical goods and similar goods sold by the 
     producer to related persons during that six month period was 90 percent
     of the producer's total sales of those identical goods and similar     
     goods to all persons. Under section 6(6)(c), the producer must use the 
     net cost method to calculate the regional value content of Good A sold 
     in January 1994, because the 85 percent limit was exceeded.            
    Example 6: section 6(11)(a)                                             
        A producer in a NAFTA country produces Good A and Good B during the 
     producer's fiscal year.                                                
        The producer uses the following figures, which are recorded on the  
     producer's books and represent all of the costs incurred with respect  
     to both Good A and Good B, to calculate the net cost of those goods:   
                                                                            
    
    
                                                                            
    
    [[Page 46404]]
                                                                            
                                                                            
    Product costs:                                                          
        Value of originating materials.........................       $2,000
        Value of non-originating materials.....................        1,000
        Other product costs....................................        2,400
    Period costs: (including $1,200 in excluded costs).........        3,200
     Other costs...............................................          400
                                                                ------------
    Total cost of Good A and Good B............................       $9,000
    The net cost is the total cost of Good A and Good B, minus              
     the excluded costs incurred with respect to those goods.               
    Total cost of Good A and Good B............................       $9,000
     Excluded costs............................................       -1,200
                                                                ------------
    Net cost of Good A and Good B..............................       $7,800
    
    
    
    
        The net cost must then be reasonably allocated, in accordance with  
     Schedule VII, to Good A and Good B.                                    
    Example 7: section 6(11)(b)                                             
        A producer located in a NAFTA country produces Good A and Good B    
     during the producer's fiscal year. In order to calculate the regional  
     value content of Good A and Good B, the producer uses the following    
     figures that are recorded on the producer's books and incurred with    
     respect to those goods:                                                
                                                                            
    
    
                                                                            
                                                                            
    Product costs:                                                          
        Value of originating materials.........................       $2,000
        Value of non-originating materials.....................        1,000
        Other product costs....................................        2,400
    Period costs: (including $1,200 in excluded costs).........        3,200
    Other costs................................................          400
                                                                ------------
    Total cost of Good A and Good B............................       $9,000
    
    
    
        Under section 6(11)(b), the total cost of Good A and Good B is then 
     reasonably allocated, in accordance with Schedule VII, to those goods. 
     The costs are allocated in the following manner:                       
                                                                            
    
    
    ------------------------------------------------------------------------
                                          Allocated toGood  Allocated toGood
                                                  A                 B       
    ------------------------------------------------------------------------
    Total cost ($9,000 for both Good A                                      
     and Good B)........................            $5,220            $3,780
    ------------------------------------------------------------------------
    
    
    
        The excluded costs ($1,200) that are included in total cost         
     allocated to Good A and Good B, in accordance with Schedule VII, are   
     subtracted from that amount.                                           
                                                                            
    
    
    ------------------------------------------------------------------------
                                                      Excluded     Excluded 
                                                        Cost         Cost   
                                                     Allocated    Allocated 
                                                     to Good A    to Good B 
    ------------------------------------------------------------------------
    Total excluded costs:                                                   
        Sales promotion, marketing                                          
         and after-sale service costs          500          290          210
        Royalties....................          200          116           84
        Shipping and packing costs...          500          290          210
                                      --------------------------------------
    Net cost (total cost minus                                              
     excluded costs).................  ...........       $4,524       $3,276
    ------------------------------------------------------------------------
    
    
    
    
        The net cost of Good A is thus $4,524, and the net cost of Good B is
     $3,276.                                                                
    Example 8: section 6(11)(c)                                             
        A Producer located in a NAFTA country produces Good C and Good D.   
     The following costs are recorded on the producer's books for the months
     of January, February and March, and each cost that forms part of the   
     total cost are reasonably allocated, in accordance with Schedule VII,  
     to Good C and Good D.                                                  
                                                                            
    
    
                                                                            
    
    [[Page 46405]]
    ------------------------------------------------------------------------
                                       Total cost:   Allocated    Allocated 
                                        Good C and   to Good C    to Good D 
                                        Good D (in      (in          (in    
                                        thousands    thousands    thousands 
                                       of dollars)  of dollars)  of dollars)
    ------------------------------------------------------------------------
    Product costs:                                                          
        Value of originating                                                
         materials...................          100            0          100
        Value of non-originating                                            
         materials...................          900          800          100
        Other product costs..........          500          300          200
    Period costs (including $420 in                                         
     excluded costs).................        5,679        3,036        2,643
    Minus Excluded Costs.............          420          300          120
    Other costs......................            0            0            0
                                      --------------------------------------
    Total cost (aggregate of product                                        
     costs, period costs and other                                          
     costs)..........................        6,759        3,836        2,923
    ------------------------------------------------------------------------
    
    
    
    
    
    Example 9: section 6(12)                                                
        Producer A, located in a NAFTA country, produces Good A that is     
     subject to a regional value-content requirement. The producer chooses  
     that the regional value content of that good be calculated using the   
     net cost method. Producer A buys Material X from Producer B, located in
     a NAFTA country. Material X is a non-originating material and is used  
     in the production of Good A. Producer A provides Producer B, at no     
     charge, with tools to be used in the production of Material X. The cost
     of the tools that is recorded on the books of Producer A has been      
     expensed in the current year. Pursuant to section 5(1)(b)(ii) of       
     Schedule VIII, the value of the tools is included in the value of      
     Material X. Therefore, the cost of the tools that is recorded on the   
     books of Producer A and that has been expensed in the current year     
     cannot be included as a separate cost in the net cost of Good A because
     it has already been included in the value of Material X.               
    Example 10: section 6(12)                                               
        Producer A, located in a NAFTA country, produces Good A that is     
     subject to a regional value-content requirement. The producer chooses  
     that the regional value content of that good be calculated using the   
     net cost method and averages the calculation over the producer's fiscal
     year under section 6(15). Producer A determines that during that fiscal
     year Producer A incurred a gain on foreign currency conversion of      
     $10,000 and a loss on foreign currency conversion of $8,000, resulting 
     in a net gain of $2,000. Producer A also determines that $7,000 of the 
     gain on foreign currency conversion and $6,000 of the loss on foreign  
     currency conversion is related to the purchase of non-originating      
     materials used in the production of Good A, and $3,000 of the gain on  
     foreign currency conversion and $2,000 of the loss on foreign currency 
     conversion is not related to the production of Good A. The producer    
     determines that the total cost of Good A is $45,000 before deducting   
     the $1,000 net gain on foreign currency conversion related to the      
     production of Good A. The total cost of Good A is therefore $44,000.   
     That $1,000 net gain is not included in the value of non-originating   
     materials under section 7(1).                                          
    Example 11: section 6(12)                                               
        Given the same facts as in example 10, except that Producer A       
     determines that $6,000 of the gain on foreign currency conversion and  
     $7,000 of the loss on foreign currency conversion is related to the    
     purchase of non-originating materials used in the production of Good A.
     The total cost of Good A is $45,000, which includes the $1,000 net loss
     on foreign currency conversion related to the production of Good A.    
     That $1,000 net loss is not included in the value of non-originating   
     materials under section 7(1).                                          
                                                                            
                                                                            
    
    
                                     PART IV                                
                              SECTION 7. MATERIALS                          
       Valuation of materials used in the production of a good other than   
                            certain automotive goods                        
                                                                            
    (1) Except as otherwise provided for non-originating materials used in  
     the production of a good referred to in section 9(1) or 10(1), and     
     except in the case of indirect materials, intermediate materials and   
     packing materials and containers, for purposes of calculating the      
     regional value content of a good and for purposes of sections 5(1) and 
     (5), the value of a material that is used in the production of the good
     shall be                                                               
      (a) except as otherwise provided in subsection (2), where the material
       is imported by the producer of the good into the territory of the    
       NAFTA country in which the good is produced, the customs value of the
       material with respect to that importation, or                        
      (b) where the material is acquired by the producer of the good from   
       another person located in the territory of the NAFTA country in which
       the good is produced                                                 
        (i) the transaction value, determined in accordance with section    
         2(1) of Schedule VIII, with respect to the transaction in which the
         producer acquired the material, or                                 
        (ii) the value determined in accordance with sections 6 through 11  
         of Schedule VIII, where, with respect to the transaction in which  
         the producer acquired the material, there is no transaction value  
         under section 2(2) of that Schedule or the transaction value is    
         unacceptable under section 2(3) of that Schedule,                  
    and shall include the following costs if they are not included under    
     paragraph (a) or (b):                                                  
      (c) the costs of freight, insurance and packing and all other costs   
       incurred in transporting the material to the location of the         
       producer,                                                            
      (d) duties and taxes paid or payable with respect to the material in  
       the territory of one or more of the NAFTA countries, other than      
       duties and taxes that are waived, refunded, refundable or otherwise  
       recoverable, including credit against duty or tax paid or payable,   
      (e) customs brokerage fees, including the cost of in-house customs    
       brokerage services, incurred with respect to the material in the     
       territory of one or more of the NAFTA countries, and                 
      (f) the cost of waste and spoilage resulting from the use of the      
       material in the production of the good, minus the value of any       
       reusable scrap or by-product.                                        
                                                                            
        Valuation of material if customs value is not in accordance with    
                                  Schedule VIII                             
                                                                            
    (2) For purposes of subsection (1)(a), where the customs value of the   
     material referred to in that paragraph was not determined in a manner  
     consistent with Schedule VIII, the value of the material shall be      
     determined in accordance with Schedule VIII with respect to the        
     importation of that material and, where the costs referred to in       
     subsections (1)(c) through (f) are not included in that value, those   
     costs be added to that value.                                          
                                                                            
                                                                            
    
    [[Page 46406]]
                                                                            
                             Costs recorded on books                        
                                                                            
    (3) For purposes of subsection (1), the costs referred to in subsections
     (1)(c) through (f) shall be the costs referred to in those paragraphs  
     that are recorded on the books of the producer of the good.            
                                                                            
                                                                            
       Designation of self-produced material as an intermediate material;   
               limitation on designations; designation is optional          
                                                                            
    (4) Except for purposes of determining the value of non-originating     
     materials used in the production of a light-duty automotive good and   
     except in the case of an automotive component assembly, automotive     
     component or sub-component for use as original equipment in the        
     production of a heavy-duty vehicle, for purposes of calculating the    
     regional value content of a good the producer of the good may designate
     as an intermediate material any self-produced material that is used in 
     the production of the good, provided that where an intermediate        
     material is subject to a regional value-content requirement, no other  
     self-produced material that is subject to a regional value-content     
     requirement and is incorporated into that intermediate material is also
     designated by the producer as an intermediate material.                
    (5) For purposes of subsection (4),                                     
      (a) in order to qualify as an originating material, a self-produced   
       material that is designated as an intermediate material must qualify 
       as an originating material under these Regulations;                  
      (b) the designation of a self-produced material as an intermediate    
       material shall be made solely at the choice of the producer of that  
       self-produced material; and                                          
      (c) except as otherwise provided in section 14(4), the proviso set out
       in subsection (4) does not apply with respect to an intermediate     
       material used by another producer in the production of a material    
       that is subsequently acquired and used in the production of a good by
       the producer referred to in subsection (4).                          
                                                                            
                                                                            
                      Valuation of an intermediate material                 
                                                                            
    (6) The value of an intermediate material shall be, at the choice of the
     producer of the good,                                                  
      (a) the total cost incurred with respect to all goods produced by the 
       producer that can be reasonably allocated to that intermediate       
       material in accordance with Schedule VII; or                         
      (b) the aggregate of each cost that forms part of the total cost      
       incurred with respect to that intermediate material that can be      
       reasonably allocated to that intermediate material in accordance with
       Schedule VII.                                                        
                                                                            
                                                                            
                            Calculation of total cost                       
                                                                            
    (7) Total cost under subsection (6) consists of the costs referred to in
     section 2(6), and is calculated in accordance with that section and    
     section 2(7).                                                          
                                                                            
                                                                            
      Rescission of a designation during course of verification; option to  
                     designate another intermediate material                
                                                                            
    (8) Where a producer of a good designates a self-produced material as an
     intermediate material under subsection (4) and the customs             
     administration of a NAFTA country into which the good is imported      
     determines during a verification of origin of the good that the        
     intermediate material is a non-originating material and notifies the   
     producer of this in writing before the written determination of whether
     the good qualifies as an originating good, the producer may rescind the
     designation, and the regional value content of the good shall be       
     calculated as though the self-produced material were not so designated.
    (9) A producer of a good who rescinds a designation under subsection (8)
      (a) shall retain any rights of review and appeal under Article 510 of 
       the Agreement, as implemented in each NAFTA country, with respect to 
       the determination of the origin of the intermediate material as      
       though the producer did not rescind the designation; and             
      (b) may, not later than 30 days after the customs administration      
       referred to in subsection (8) notifies the producer in writing that  
       the self-produced material referred to in paragraph (a) is a non-    
       originating material, designate as an intermediate material another  
       self-produced material that is incorporated into the good, subject to
       the proviso set out in subsection (4).                               
    (10) Where a producer of a good designates another self-produced        
     material as an intermediate material under subsection (9)(b) and the   
     customs administration referred to in subsection (8) determines during 
     the verification of origin of the good that that self-produced material
     is a non-originating material,                                         
      (a) the producer may rescind the designation, and the regional value  
       content of the good shall be calculated as though the self-produced  
       material were not so designated;                                     
      (b) the producer shall retain any rights of review and appeal under   
       Article 510 of the Agreement, as implemented in each NAFTA country,  
       with respect to the determination of the origin of the intermediate  
       material as though the producer did not rescind the designation; and 
      (c) the producer may not designate another self-produced material that
       is incorporated into the good as an intermediate material.           
                                                                            
      Indirect Materials; deemed originating; value as recorded on books of 
                                    producer                                
                                                                            
    (11) For purposes of determining whether a good is an originating good, 
     an indirect material that is used in the production of the good        
      (a) shall be considered to be an originating material, regardless of  
       where that indirect material is produced; and                        
      (b) if the good is subject to a regional value-content requirement,   
       for purposes of calculating the net cost under the net cost method,  
       the value of the indirect material shall be the costs of that        
       material that are recorded on the books of the producer of the good. 
                                                                            
    Packaging Materials and Containers; origin disregarded for tariff change
                                      rules                                 
                                                                            
    (12) Packaging materials and containers, if classified under the        
     Harmonized System with the good that is packaged therein, shall be     
     disregarded for purposes of                                            
      (a) determining whether all of the non-originating materials used in  
       the production of the good undergo an applicable change in tariff    
       classification; and                                                  
    
    [[Page 46407]]
                                                                            
      (b) determining under section 5(1) the value of non-originating       
       materials that do not undergo an applicable change in tariff         
       classification.                                                      
                                                                            
     Actual originating status considered for RVC requirement; valuation of 
                                    packaging                               
                                                                            
    (13) Where packaging materials and containers are classified under the  
     Harmonized System with the good that is packaged therein and that good 
     is subject to a regional value-content requirement, the value of those 
     packaging materials and containers shall be taken into account as      
     originating materials or non-originating materials, as the case may be,
     for purposes of calculating the regional value content of the good.    
    (14) For purposes of subsection (13), where packaging materials and     
     containers are self-produced materials, the producer may choose to     
     designate those materials as intermediate materials under subsection   
     (4).                                                                   
                                                                            
    Packing materials and containers; disregarded for tariff change rule and
                 for RVC requirement; value as recorded on books            
                                                                            
    (15) For purposes of determining whether a good is an originating good, 
     packing materials and containers in which the good is packed           
      (a) shall be disregarded for purposes of determining whether          
        (i) the non-originating materials used in the production of the good
         undergo an applicable change in tariff classification, and         
        (ii) the good satisfies a regional value-content requirement; and   
      (b) if the good is subject to a regional value-content requirement,   
       the value of the packing materials and containers shall be the costs 
       thereof that are recorded on the books of the producer of the good.  
                                                                            
       Fungible materials; fungible commingled goods; inventory management  
                   methods for determining whether originating              
                                                                            
    (16) For purposes of determining whether a good is an originating good, 
      (a) where originating materials and non-originating materials that are
       fungible materials are used in the production of the good, the       
       determination of whether the materials are originating materials may,
       at the choice of the producer of the good or the person from whom the
       producer acquired the materials, be made on the basis of any of the  
       applicable inventory management methods set out in Schedule X; and   
      (b) where originating goods and non-originating goods that are        
       fungible goods are physically combined or mixed in inventory and     
       prior to exportation do not undergo production or any other operation
       in the territory of the NAFTA country in which they were physically  
       combined or mixed in inventory, other than unloading, reloading or   
       any other operation necessary to preserve the goods in good condition
       or to transport the goods for exportation to the territory of another
       NAFTA country, the determination of whether the good is an           
       originating good may, at the choice of the exporter of the good or   
       the person from whom the exporter acquired the good, be made on the  
       basis of any of the applicable inventory management methods set out  
       in Schedule X.                                                       
                                                                            
    Accessories, spare parts and tools; deemed originating for tariff change
               rule; actual origin applicable for RVC requirement           
                                                                            
    (17) Accessories, spare parts or tools that are delivered with a good   
     and form part of the good's standard accessories, spare parts or tools 
     are originating materials if the good is an originating good, and shall
     be disregarded for purposes of determining whether all the non-        
     originating materials used in the production of the good undergo an    
     applicable change in tariff classification or determining under section
     5(1) the value of non-originating materials that do not undergo an     
     applicable change in tariff classification, provided that              
      (a) the accessories, spare parts or tools are not invoiced separately 
       from the good; and                                                   
      (b) the quantities and value of the accessories, spare parts or tools 
       are customary for the good, within the industry that produces the    
       good.                                                                
    (18) Where a good is subject to a regional value-content requirement,   
     the value of accessories, spare parts and tools that are delivered with
     that good and form part of the good's standard accessories, spare parts
     or tools shall be taken into account as originating or non-originating 
     materials, as the case may be, in calculating the regional value       
     content of the good.                                                   
    (19) For purposes of subsection (18), where accessories, spare parts and
     tools are self-produced materials, the producer may choose to designate
     those materials as intermediate materials under subsection (4).        
                                                                            
                Examples illustrating the provisions on materials           
                                                                            
    (20) Each of the following examples is an ``Example'' as referred to in 
     section 2(4).                                                          
                                                                            
    
    
    
    
    Example 1: section 7(2), Customs Value not Determined in a Manner       
     Consistent with Schedule VIII                                          
        Producer A, located in NAFTA country A, imports material A into     
     NAFTA country A. Producer A purchased material A from a middleman      
     located in country B. The middleman purchased the material from a      
     manufacturer located in country B. Under the laws in NAFTA country A   
     that implement the Agreement on Implementation of Article VII of the   
     General Agreement on Tariffs and Trade, the customs value of material A
     was based on the price actually paid or payable by the middleman to the
     manufacturer. Producer A uses material A to produce Good C, and exports
     Good C to NAFTA country D. Good C is subject to a regional value-      
     content requirement.                                                   
        Under section 4(1) of Schedule VIII, the price actually paid or     
     payable is the total payment made or to be made by the producer to or  
     for the benefit of the seller of the material. Section 1 of that       
     Schedule defines producer and seller for purposes of the Schedule. A   
     producer is the person who uses the material in the production of a    
     good that is subject to a regional value-content requirement. A seller 
     is the person who sells the material being valued to the producer.     
        The customs value of material A was not determined in a manner      
     consistent with Schedule VIII because it was based on the price        
     actually paid or payable by the middleman to the manufacturer, rather  
     than on the price actually paid or payable by Producer A to the        
     middleman. Thus, section 7(2) applies and material A is valued in      
     accordance with Schedule VIII.                                         
    Example 2: section 7(5), Value of Intermediate Materials                
        A producer located in a NAFTA country produces Good B, which is     
     subject to a regional value-content requirement under section 4(2)(b). 
     The producer also produces Material A, which is used in the production 
     of Good B. Both originating materials and non-originating materials are
     used in the production of Material A. Material A is subject to a change
     in tariff classification requirement under section 4(2)(a). The costs  
     to produce Material A are the following:                               
                                                                            
    
    
                                                                            
    
    [[Page 46408]]
                                                                            
                                                                            
    Product costs:                                                          
        Value of originating materials.........................        $1.00
        Value of non-originating materials.....................         7.50
        Other product costs....................................         1.50
    Period costs (including $0.30 in royalties)................         0.50
    Other costs................................................         0.10
                                                                ------------
    Total cost of Material A...................................       $10.60
                                                                            
    
    
    
    
        The producer designates Material A as an intermediate material and  
     determines that, because all of the non-originating materials that are 
     used in the production of Material A undergo an applicable change in   
     tariff classification set out in Schedule I, Material A would, under   
     paragraph 4(2)(a) qualify as an originating material. The cost of the  
     non-originating materials used in the production of Material A is      
     therefore not included in the value of non-originating materials that  
     are used in the production of Good B for the purpose of determining the
     regional value content of Good B. Because Material A has been          
     designated as an intermediate material, the total cost of Material A,  
     which is $10.60, is treated as the cost of originating materials for   
     the purpose of calculating the regional value content of Good B. The   
     total cost of Good B is determined in accordance with the following    
     figures:                                                               
                                                                            
    
    
                                                                            
                                                                            
    Product costs:                                                          
        Value of originating materials                                      
            --intermediate materials...........................       $10.60
            --other materials..................................         3.00
        Value of non-originating materials.....................         5.50
        Other product costs....................................         6.50
    Period costs...............................................         2.50
    Other costs................................................         0.10
                                                                ------------
    Total cost of Good B.......................................       $28.20
    
    
    
    Example 3: section 7(5), Effects of the Designation of Self-produced    
     Materials on Net Cost                                                  
        The ability to designate intermediate materials helps to put the    
     vertically integrated producer who is self-producing materials that are
     used in the production of a good on par with a producer who is         
     purchasing materials and valuing those materials in accordance with    
     subsection 7(1). The following situations demonstrate how this is      
     achieved:                                                              
    
    [[Page 46409]]
                                                                            
        Situation 1                                                         
        A producer located in a NAFTA country produces Good B, which is     
     subject to a regional value-content requirement of 50 percent under the
     net cost method. Good B satisfies all other applicable requirements of 
     these Regulations. The producer purchases Material A, which is used in 
     the production of Good B, from a supplier located in a NAFTA country.  
     The value of Material A determined in accordance with subsection 7(1)  
     is $11.00. Material A is an originating material. All other materials  
     used in the production of Good B are non-originating materials. The net
     cost of Good B is determined as follows:                               
                                                                            
    
    
    
                                                                            
                                                                            
     Product costs:                                                         
        Value of originating materials (Material A)............       $11.00
        Value of non-originating materials.....................         5.50
        Other product costs....................................         6.50
    Period costs: (including $0.20 in excluded costs)..........         0.50
    Other costs................................................         0.10
                                                                ------------
    Total cost of Good B.......................................       $23.60
                                                                ============
    Excluded costs: (included in period costs).................        -0.20
                                                                ------------
    Net cost of Good B.........................................       $23.40
    
    
        The regional value content of Good B is calculated as follows:      
                                                                            
                                                                            
    
    
        The regional value content of Good B is 76.5 percent, and Good B,   
     therefore, qualifies as an originating good.                           
        Situation 2                                                         
        A producer located in a NAFTA country produces Good B, which is     
     subject to a regional value-content requirement of 50 percent under the
     net cost method. Good B satisfies all other applicable requirements of 
     these Regulations. The producer self-produces Material A which is used 
     in the production of Good B. The costs to produce Material A are the   
     following:                                                             
                                                                            
    
    
                                                                            
    RAPHIC>TR06SE95.003
    [[Page 46410]]
                                                                            
                                                                            
    Product costs:                                                          
        Value of originating materials.........................        $1.00
        Value of non-originating materials.....................         7.50
        Other product costs....................................         1.50
    Period costs: (including $0.20 in excluded costs)..........         0.50
    Other costs................................................         0.10
                                                                ------------
    Total cost of Material A...................................       $10.60
    
    
    
        Additional costs to produce Good B are the following:               
                                                                            
    
    
                                                                            
                                                                            
    Product costs:                                                          
        Value of originating materials.........................        $0.00
        Value of non-originating materials.....................         5.50
        Other product costs....................................         6.50
    Period costs: (including $0.20 in excluded costs)..........         0.50
    Other costs................................................         0.10
                                                                ------------
    Total additional costs.....................................       $12.60
    
    
    
        The producer does not designate Material A as an intermediate       
     material under subsection 7(4). The net cost of Good B is calculated as
     follows:                                                               
                                                                            
    
    
    
    ------------------------------------------------------------------------
                           Costs of Material                                
                           A (not designated                                
                                 as an         Additional Costs     Total   
                              intermediate    to Produce Good B             
                               material)                                    
    ------------------------------------------------------------------------
    Product costs:                                                          
        Value of                                                            
         originating                                                        
         materials.......              $1.00              $0.00        $1.00
        Value of non-                                                       
         originating                                                        
         materials.......               7.50               5.50        13.00
        Other product                                                       
         costs...........               1.50               6.50         8.00
    Period costs                                                            
     (including $0.20 in                                                    
     excluded costs).....               0.50               0.50         1.00
    Other costs..........               0.10               0.10         0.20
                          --------------------------------------------------
    Total cost of Good B.             $10.60             $12.60       $23.20
                          ==================================================
    Excluded costs (in                                                      
     period costs).......               0.20               0.20        -0.40
                          --------------------------------------------------
    Net cost of Good B                                                      
     (total cost minus                                                      
     excluded costs).....  .................  .................       $22.80
    ------------------------------------------------------------------------
    
    
                                                                            
    
    [[Page 46411]]
        The regional value content of Good B is calculated as follows:      
                                                                            
                                                                            
    
    
    
        The regional value content of Good B is 42.9 percent, and Good B,   
     therefore, does not qualify as an originating good.                    
        Situation 3                                                         
        A producer located in a NAFTA country produces Good B, which is     
     subject to a regional value-content requirement of 50 percent under the
     net cost method. Good B satisfies all other applicable requirements of 
     these Regulations. The producer self-produces Material A, which is used
     in the production of Good B. The costs to produce Material A are the   
     following:                                                             
                                                                            
    
    
                                                                            
                                                                            
    Product costs:                                                          
        Value of originating materials.........................        $1.00
        Value of non-originating materials.....................         7.50
        Other product costs....................................         1.50
    Period costs: (including $0.20 in excluded costs)..........         0.50
    Other costs................................................         0.10
                                                                ------------
    Total cost of Material A...................................       $10.60
    
    
        Additional costs to produce Good B are the following:               
                                                                            
    
    
    
                                                                            
                                                                            
    Product costs:                                                          
        Value of originating materials.........................        $0.00
        Value of non-originating materials.....................         5.50
        Other product costs....................................         6.50
    Period costs: (including $0.20 in excluded costs)..........         0.50
    Other costs................................................         0.10
                                                                ------------
    Total additional costs.....................................       $12.60
    
    
        The producer designates Material A as an intermediate material under
     subsection 7(4). Material A qualifies as an originating material under 
     paragraph 4(2)(a). Therefore, the value of non-originating materials   
     used in the production of Material A is not included in the value of   
     non-originating materials for the purposes of calculating the regional 
     value content of Good B. The net cost of Good B is calculated as       
     follows:                                                               
                                                                            
    
    
                                                                            
    RAPHIC>TR06SE95.004
    [[Page 46412]]
    ----------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------
                                                                                Costs of                            
                                                                               Material A    Additional             
                                                                               (designated    Costs to              
                                                                                  as an       Produce       Total   
                                                                              intermediate     Good B               
                                                                                material)                           
    ----------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------
    Product costs:                                                                                                  
        Value of originating materials......................................        $10.60        $0.00       $10.60
        Value of non-originating materials..................................  ............         5.50         5.50
        Other product costs.................................................  ............         6.50         6.50
    Period costs (including $0.20 in excluded costs)........................  ............         0.50         0.50
    Other costs.............................................................  ............         0.10         0.10
                                                                             ---------------------------------------
    Total cost of Good B....................................................        $10.60       $12.60       $23.20
                                                                             =======================================
    Excluded costs (in period costs)........................................  ............          .20        -0.20
                                                                                                        ------------
    Net cost of Good B (total cost minus excluded costs)....................  ............  ...........       $23.00
    ----------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------
    
    
    
        The regional value content of Good B is calculated as follows:      
                                                                            
                                                                            
    
    
        The regional value content of Good B is 76.1 percent, and Good B,   
     therefore, qualifies as an originating good.                           
    Example 4: Originating Materials Acquired from a Producer Who Produced  
     Them Using Intermediate Materials                                      
        Producer A, located in NAFTA country A, produces switches. In order 
     for the switches to qualify as originating goods, Producer A designates
     subassemblies of the switches as intermediate materials. The           
     subassemblies are subject to a regional value-content requirement. They
     satisfy that requirement, and qualify as originating materials. The    
     switches are also subject to a regional value-content requirement, and,
     with the subassemblies designated as intermediate materials, are       
     determined to have a regional value content of 65 percent.             
        Producer A sells the switches to Producer B, located in NAFTA       
     country B, who uses them to produce switch assemblies that are used in 
     the production of Good B. The switch assemblies are subject to a       
     regional value-content requirement. Producers A and B are not          
     accumulating their production within the meaning of section 14.        
     Producer B is therefore able, under section 7(4), to designate the     
     switch assemblies as intermediate materials.                           
        If Producers A and B were accumulating their production within the  
     meaning of section 14, Producer B would be unable to designate the     
     switch assemblies as intermediate materials, because the production of 
     both producers would be considered to be the production of one         
     producer.                                                              
    Example 5: Single Producer and Successive Designations of Materials     
     Subject to a Regional Value-Content Requirement as Intermediate        
     Materials                                                              
        Producer A, located in NAFTA country, produces Material X and uses  
     Material X in the production of Good B. Material X qualifies as an     
     originating material because it satisfies the applicable regional value-
     content requirement. Producer A designates Material A as an            
     intermediate material.                                                 
        Producer A uses Material X in the production of Material Y, which is
     also used in the production of Good B. Material Y is also subject to a 
     regional value-content requirement. Under the proviso set out in       
     section 7(4), Producer A cannot designate Material Y as an intermediate
     material, even if Material Y satisfies the applicable regional value-  
     content requirement, because Material X was already designated by      
     Producer A as an intermediate material.                                
    Example 6: Single Producer and Multiple Designations of Materials as    
     Intermediate Materials                                                 
        Producer X, who is located in NAFTA country X, uses non-originating 
     materials in the production of self-produced materials A, B, and C.    
     None of the self-produced materials are used in the production of any  
     of the other self-produced materials.                                  
        Producer X uses the self-produced materials in the production of    
     Good O, which is exported to NAFTA country Y. Materials A, B and C     
     qualify as originating materials because they satisfy the applicable   
     regional value-content requirements.                                   
        Because none of the self-produced materials are used in the         
     production of any of the other self-produced materials, then even      
     though each self-produced material is subject to a regional value-     
     content requirement, Producer X may, under section 7(4), designate all 
     of the self-produced materials as intermediate materials. The proviso  
     set out in section 7(4) only applies where self-produced materials are 
     used in the production of other self-produced materials and both are   
     subject to a regional value-content requirement.                       
    Example 7: section 7(17)                                                
        The following are examples of accessories, spare parts or tools that
     are delivered with a good and form part of the good's standard         
     accessories, spare parts or tools:                                     
      (a) consumables that must be replaced at regular intervals, such as   
       dust collectors for an air-conditioning system,                      
      (b) a carrying case for equipment,                                    
      (c) a dust cover for a machine,                                       
      (d) an operational manual for a vehicle,                              
      (e) brackets to attach equipment to a wall,                           
      (f) a bicycle tool kit or a car jack,                                 
      (g) a set of wrenches to change the bit on a chuck,                   
      (h) a brush or other tool to clean out a machine, and                 
      (i) electrical cords and power bars for use with electronic goods.    
    Example 8: Value of Indirect Materials that are Assists                 
    RAPHIC>TR06SE95.005
    [[Page 46413]]
                                                                            
        Producer A, located in a NAFTA country, produces Good A that is     
     subject to a regional value-content requirement. The producer chooses  
     that the regional value content of that good be calculated using the   
     net cost method. Producer A buys Material X from Producer B, located in
     a NAFTA country, and uses it in the production of Good A. Producer A   
     provides to Producer B, at no charge, tools to be used in the          
     production of Material X. The tools have a value of $100 which is      
     expensed in the current year by Producer A.                            
        Material X is subject to a regional value-content requirement which 
     Producer B chooses to calculate using the net cost method. For purposes
     of determining the value of non-originating materials in order to      
     calculate the regional value content of Material X, the tools are      
     considered to be an originating material because they are an indirect  
     material. However, pursuant to section 7(11) they have a value of nil  
     because the cost of the tools with respect to Material X is not        
     recorded on the books of Producer B.                                   
        It is determined that Material X is a non-originating material. The 
     cost of the tools that is recorded on the books of producer A is       
     expensed in the current year. Pursuant to section 5 of Schedule VIII,  
     the value of the tools (see section 5(1)(b)(ii) of Schedule VIII) must 
     be included in the value of Material X by Producer A when calculating  
     the regional value content of Good A. The cost of the tools, although  
     recorded on the books of producer A, cannot be included as a separate  
     cost in the net cost of Good A because it is already included in the   
     value of Material X. The entire cost of Material X, which includes the 
     cost of the tools, is included in the value of non-originating         
     materials for purposes of the regional value content of Good A.        
                                                                            
    
    
    
    
                                     PART V                                 
                                AUTOMOTIVE GOODS                            
                    SECTION 8. DEFINITIONS AND INTERPRETATION               
                                                                            
        For purposes of this Part,                                          
    ``after-market parts'' means goods that are not for use as original     
     equipment in the production of light-duty vehicles or heavy-duty       
     vehicles and that are                                                  
      (a) goods provided for in a tariff provision listed in Schedule IV, or
      (b) automotive component assemblies, automotive components, sub-      
       components or listed materials;                                      
    ``class of motor vehicles'' means any one of the following categories of
     motor vehicles:                                                        
      (a) motor vehicles provided for in any of subheading 8701.20, tariff  
       items 8702.10.30 and 8702.90.30 (vehicles for the transport of 16 or 
       more persons), subheadings 8704.10, 8704.22, 8704.23, 8704.32 and    
       8704.90 and headings 8705 and 8706,                                  
      (b) motor vehicles provided for in any of subheadings 8701.10 and     
       8701.30 through 8701.90,                                             
      (c) motor vehicles provided for in any of tariff items 8702.10.60 and 
       8702.90.60 (vehicles for the transport of 15 or fewer persons) and   
       subheadings 8704.21 and 8704.31, and                                 
      (d) motor vehicles provided for in any of subheadings 8703.21 through 
       8703.90;                                                             
    ``complete motor vehicle assembly process'' means the production of a   
     motor vehicle from separate constituent parts, which parts include the 
     following:                                                             
      (a) a structural frame or unibody,                                    
      (b) body panels,                                                      
      (c) an engine, a transmission and a drive train,                      
      (d) brake components,                                                 
      (e) steering and suspension components,                               
      (f) seating and internal trim,                                        
      (g) bumpers and external trim,                                        
      (h) wheels, and                                                       
      (i) electrical and lighting components;                               
    ``first prototype'' means the first motor vehicle that                  
      (a) is produced using tooling and processes intended for the          
       production of motor vehicles to be offered for sale, and             
      (b) follows the complete motor vehicle assembly process in a manner   
       not specifically designed for testing purposes;                      
    ``floor pan of a motor vehicle'' means a component, comprising a single 
     part or two or more parts joined together, with or without additional  
     stiffening members, that forms the base of a motor vehicle, beginning  
     at the firewall or bulkhead of the motor vehicle and ending            
      (a) where there is a luggage floor panel in the motor vehicle, at the 
       place where that luggage floor panel begins, and                     
      (b) where there is no luggage floor panel in the motor vehicle, at the
       place where the passenger compartment of the motor vehicle ends;     
    ``heavy-duty automotive good'' means a heavy-duty vehicle or a heavy-   
     duty component;                                                        
    ``heavy-duty component'' means an automotive component or automotive    
     component assembly that is for use as original equipment in the        
     production of a heavy-duty vehicle;                                    
    ``marque'' means a trade name used by a marketing division of a motor   
     vehicle assembler that is separate from any other marketing division of
     that motor vehicle assembler;                                          
    ``model line'' means a group of motor vehicles having the same platform 
     or model name;                                                         
    ``model name'' means the word, group of words, letter, number or similar
     designation assigned to a motor vehicle by a marketing division of a   
     motor vehicle assembler                                                
      (a) to differentiate the motor vehicle from other motor vehicles that 
       use the same platform design,                                        
      (b) to associate the motor vehicle with other motor vehicles that use 
       different platform designs, or                                       
      (c) to denote a platform design;                                      
    ``new building'' means a new construction to house a complete motor     
     vehicle assembly process, where that construction includes the pouring 
     or construction of a new foundation and floor, the erection of a new   
     frame and roof, and the installation of new plumbing and electrical and
     other utilities;                                                       
    ``plant'' means a building, or buildings in close proximity but not     
     necessarily contiguous, machinery, apparatus and fixtures that are     
     under the control of a producer and are used in the production of any  
     of the following:                                                      
      (a) light-duty vehicles and heavy-duty vehicles,                      
      (b) goods of a tariff provision listed in Schedule IV, and            
      (c) automotive component assemblies, automotive components, sub-      
       components and listed materials;                                     
    
    [[Page 46414]]
                                                                            
    ``platform'' means the primary load-bearing structural assembly of a    
     motor vehicle that determines the basic size of the motor vehicle, and 
     is the structural base that supports the driveline and links the       
     suspension components of the motor vehicle for various types of frames,
     such as the body-on-frame or space-frame, and monocoques;              
    ``received in the territory of a NAFTA country'' means, with respect to 
     section 9(2), the location at which a traced material arrives in the   
     territory of a NAFTA country and is documented for any customs purpose,
     which, in the case of a traced material imported into                  
      (a) Canada,                                                           
        (i) where the traced material is imported on a vessel, as defined in
         section 2 of the Reporting of Imported Goods Regulations, is the   
         location at which the traced material is last unloaded from the    
         vessel and reported, under section 12 of the Customs Act, to a     
         customs office, including reported for transportation under bond by
         a conveyance other than that vessel, and                           
        (ii) in any other case, is the location at which the traced material
         is reported, under section 12 of the Customs Act, to a customs     
         office, including reported for transportation under bond,          
      (b) Mexico,                                                           
        (i) where the traced material is imported on a vessel, the location 
         at which the traced material is last unloaded from the vessel and  
         reported for any customs purpose, and                              
        (ii) in any other case, the location at which the traced material is
         reported for any customs purpose, and                              
      (c) the United States, is the location at which the traced material is
       entered for any customs purpose, including entered for consumption,  
       entered for warehouse or entered for transportation under bond, or   
       admitted into a foreign trade zone;                                  
    ``refit'' means a closure of a plant for a period of at least three     
     consecutive months that is for purposes of plant conversion or         
     retooling;                                                             
    ``size category'', with respect to a light-duty vehicle, means that the 
     total of the interior volume for passengers and the interior volume for
     luggage is                                                             
      (a) 85 cubic feet (2.38 m3) or less,                                  
      (b) more than 85 cubic feet (2.38 m3) but less than 100 cubic feet    
       (2.80 m3),                                                           
      (c) 100 cubic feet (2.80 m3) or more but not more than 110 cubic feet 
       (3.08 m3),                                                           
      (d) more than 110 cubic feet (3.08 m3) but less than 120 cubic feet   
       (3.36 m3), or                                                        
      (e) 120 cubic feet (3.36 m3) or more;                                 
    ``traced material'' means a material, produced outside the territories  
     of the NAFTA countries, that is imported from outside the territories  
     of the NAFTA countries and is, when imported, of a tariff provision    
     listed in Schedule IV;                                                 
    ``underbody'' means the floor pan of a motor vehicle.                   
                                                                            
                     SECTION 9. LIGHT-DUTY AUTOMOTIVE GOODS                 
         VNM determined by tracing of certain non-originating materials     
                                                                            
    (1) For purposes of calculating the regional value content of a light-  
     duty automotive good under the net cost method, the value of non-      
     originating materials used by the producer in the production of the    
     good shall be the sum of the values of the non-originating materials   
     that are traced materials and are incorporated into the good.          
                                                                            
                Valuation of traced materials for VNM in the RVC            
                                                                            
    (2) Except as otherwise provided in subsections (3) and (6) through (8),
     the value of each of the traced materials that is incorporated into a  
     good shall be                                                          
      (a) where the producer imports the traced material from outside the   
       territories of the NAFTA countries and has or takes title to it at   
       the time of importation, the sum of                                  
        (i) the customs value of the traced material,                       
        (ii) where not included in that customs value, any freight,         
         insurance, packing and other costs that were incurred in           
         transporting the traced material to the first place at which it was
         received in the territory of a NAFTA country, and                  
        (iii) where not included in that customs value, the costs referred  
         to in subsection (4);                                              
      (b) where the producer imports the traced material from outside the   
       territories of the NAFTA countries and does not have or take title to
       it at the time of importation, the sum of                            
        (i) the customs value of the traced material,                       
        (ii) where not included in that customs value, any freight,         
         insurance, packing and other costs that were incurred in           
         transporting the traced material to the place at which it was when 
         the producer takes title in the territory of a NAFTA country, and  
        (iii) where not included in that customs value, the costs referred  
         to in subsection (4);                                              
      (c) where a person other than the producer imports the traced material
       from outside the territories of the NAFTA countries and that person  
       has or takes title to the material at the time of importation, if the
       producer has a statement that                                        
        (i) is signed by the person from whom the producer acquired the     
         traced material, whether in the form in which it was imported into 
         the territory of a NAFTA country or incorporated into another      
         material, and                                                      
        (ii) states                                                         
          (A) the customs value of the traced material,                     
          (B) where not included in that customs value, any freight,        
           insurance, packing and other costs that were incurred in         
           transporting the traced material to the first place at which it  
           was received in the territory of a NAFTA country, and            
          (C) where not included in that customs value, the costs referred  
           to in subsection (4),                                            
      the sum of the customs value of the traced material, the freight,     
       insurance, packing and other costs referred to in subparagraph       
       (ii)(B) and the costs referred to in subparagraph (ii)(C);           
    
    [[Page 46415]]
                                                                            
      (d) where a person other than the producer imports the traced material
       from outside the territories of the NAFTA countries and that person  
       does not have or take title to the material at the time of           
       importation, if the producer has a statement that                    
        (i) is signed by the person from whom the producer acquired the     
         traced material, whether in the form in which it was imported into 
         the territory of a NAFTA country or incorporated into another      
         material, and                                                      
        (ii) states                                                         
          (A) the customs value of the traced material,                     
          (B) where not included in that customs value, any freight,        
           insurance, packing and other costs that were incurred in         
           transporting the traced material to the place at which it was    
           located when the first person in the territory of a NAFTA country
           takes title, and                                                 
          (C) where not included in that customs value, the costs referred  
           to in subsection (4),                                            
      the sum of the customs value of the traced material, the freight,     
       insurance, packing and other costs referred to in subparagraph       
       (ii)(B) and the costs referred to in subparagraph (ii)(C);           
      (e) where a person other than the producer imports the traced material
       from outside the territories of the NAFTA countries and the producer 
       acquires the traced material or a material that incorporates the     
       traced material from a person in the territory of a NAFTA country who
       has title to it, if the producer has a statement that                
        (i) is signed by the person from whom the producer acquired the     
         traced material or the material that incorporates it, and          
        (ii) states the value of the traced material or a material that     
         incorporates the traced material, determined in accordance with    
         subsection (5), with respect to a transaction that occurs after the
         customs value of the traced material was determined,               
      the value of the traced material or the material that incorporates the
       traced material, determined in accordance with subsection (5), with  
       respect to the transaction referred to in that statement;            
      (f) where a person other than the producer imports the traced material
       from outside the territories of the NAFTA countries, and the producer
       acquires a material that incorporates that traced material and the   
       acquired material was produced in the territory of a NAFTA country   
       and is subject to a regional value-content requirement, if the       
       producer has a statement that                                        
        (i) is signed by the person from whom the producer acquired that    
         material, and                                                      
        (ii) states that the acquired material is an originating material   
         and states the regional value content of the material,             
      an amount equal to VM  x  (1 - RVC)                                   
      where                                                                 
          VM is the value of the acquired material, determined in accordance
           with subsection (5), with respect to the transaction in which the
           producer acquired that material, and                             
          RVC is the regional value content of the acquired material,       
           expressed as a decimal;                                          
      (g) where a person other than the producer imports the traced material
       from outside the territories of the NAFTA countries, and the producer
       acquires a material that incorporates that traced material and the   
       acquired material was produced in the territory of a NAFTA country   
       and is subject to a regional value-content requirement, if the       
       producer has a statement that                                        
        (i) is signed by the person from whom the producer acquired that    
         material, and                                                      
        (ii) states that the acquired material is an originating material   
         but does not state any value with respect to the traced material,  
      an amount equal to VM  x  (1 - RVCR)                                  
      where                                                                 
          VM is the value of the acquired material, determined in accordance
           with subsection (5), with respect to the transaction in which the
           producer acquired that material, and                             
          RVCR is the regional value-content requirement for the acquired   
           material, expressed as a decimal;                                
      (h) where a person other than the producer imports the traced material
       from outside the territories of the NAFTA countries and the producer 
       acquires a material that                                             
        (i) incorporates that traced material,                              
        (ii) was produced in the territory of a NAFTA country, and          
        (iii) with respect to which an amount was determined in accordance  
         with paragraph (f) or (g),                                         
      if the producer of the good has a statement signed by the person from 
       whom the producer acquired that material that states that amount, the
       amount as determined in accordance with paragraph (f) or (g), as the 
       case may be; and                                                     
      (i) where a person other than the producer imports the traced material
       from outside the territories of the NAFTA countries and the producer 
       does not have a statement described in any of paragraphs (c) through 
       (h), the value of the traced material or any material that           
       incorporates it, determined in accordance with subsection (5) with   
       respect to the transaction in which the producer acquires the traced 
       material or any material that incorporates it.                       
                                                                            
       Value of traced material if customs value is not in accordance with  
                                  Schedule VIII                             
                                                                            
    (3) For purposes of subsections (2) (a) through (d), where the customs  
     value of the traced material referred to in those paragraphs was not   
     determined in a manner consistent with Schedule VIII, the value of the 
     material shall be the sum of                                           
      (a) the value of the material determined in accordance with Schedule  
       VIII with respect to the transaction in which the person who imported
       the material from outside the territories of the NAFTA countries     
       acquired it; and                                                     
      (b) where not included in that value, the costs referred to in        
       subsections (2)(a) (ii) and (iii), subsections (2)(b) (ii) and (iii),
       subsections (2)(c)(ii) (B) and (C) or subsections (2)(d)(ii) (B) and 
       (C), as the case may be.                                             
                                                                            
      Additional costs included in traced value if not already included in  
                                  customs value                             
                                                                            
    (4) The costs referred to in subsections (2) (a) through (d) and        
     subsection (3) are the following:                                      
    
    [[Page 46416]]
                                                                            
      (a) duties and taxes paid or payable with respect to the material in  
       the territory of one or more of the NAFTA countries, other than      
       duties and taxes that are waived, refunded, refundable or otherwise  
       recoverable, including credit against duty or tax paid or payable;   
       and                                                                  
      (b) customs brokerage fees, including the cost of in-house customs    
       brokerage services, incurred with respect to the material in the     
       territory of one or more of the NAFTA countries.                     
                                                                            
     Value of traced material determined under Schedule VIII if value is not
                                  customs value                             
                                                                            
    (5) For purposes of subsections (2) (e) through (g) and (i) and         
     subsections (6) and (7), the value of a material                       
      (a) shall be the transaction value of the material, determined in     
       accordance with section 2(1) of Schedule VIII with respect to the    
       transaction referred to in that paragraph or subsection, or          
      (b) shall be determined in accordance with sections 6 through 11 of   
       Schedule VIII, where, with respect to the transaction referred to in 
       that paragraph or subsection, there is no transaction value for the  
       material under section 2(2) of that Schedule, or the transaction     
       value of the material is unacceptable under section 2(3) of that     
       Schedule,                                                            
    and, where not included under paragraph (a) or (b), shall include taxes,
     other than duties paid on an importation of a material from a NAFTA    
     country, paid or payable with respect to the material in the territory 
     of one or more of the NAFTA countries, other than taxes that are       
     waived, refunded, refundable or otherwise recoverable, including credit
     against tax paid or payable.                                           
    (6) Where it is determined, during the course of a verification of      
     origin of a light-duty automotive good with respect to which the       
     producer of that good has a statement referred to in subsection (2) (f)
     or (g), that the acquired material referred to in that statement is not
     an originating material, the value of the acquired material shall, for 
     purposes of subsection (2), be determined in accordance with subsection
     (5) with respect to the transaction in which that producer acquired it.
                                                                            
      Effect on value of traced material if value on a statement cannot be  
                                    verified                                
                                                                            
    (7) Where any person who has information with respect to a statement    
     referred to in any of subsections (2)(c) through (h) does not allow a  
     customs administration to verify that information during a verification
     of origin, the value of the material with respect to which that person 
     did not allow the customs administration to verify the information may 
     be determined by that customs administration in accordance with        
     subsection (5) with respect to the transaction in which that person    
     sells, or otherwise transfers to another person, that material or a    
     material that incorporates that material.                              
                                                                            
        Use of value of VNM as determined under section 12(3) for traced    
                   material incorporated into another material              
                                                                            
    (8) Where a traced material is incorporated into a material produced in 
     the territory of a NAFTA country and that material is incorporated into
     a light-duty automotive good, the statement referred to in subsection  
     (2)(c), (d) or (e) may state the value of non-originating materials,   
     determined in accordance with section 12(3), with respect to the       
     material that incorporates the traced material.                        
                                                                            
     Interpretations and clarifications for provisions applicable to tracing
                      rules for light-duty automotive goods                 
                                                                            
    (9) For purposes of this section,                                       
      (a) where a producer, in accordance with section 7(4), designates as  
       an intermediate material any self-produced material used in the      
       production of a light-duty automotive good,                          
        (i) the designation applies solely to the calculation of the net    
         cost of that good, and                                             
        (ii) the value of a traced material that is incorporated into that  
         good shall be determined as though the designation had not been    
         made;                                                              
      (b) the value of a material not listed in Schedule IV, when imported  
       from outside the territories of the NAFTA countries,                 
        (i) shall not be included in the value of non-originating materials 
         that are used in the production of a light-duty automotive good,   
         and                                                                
        (ii) shall be included in calculating the net cost of a light-duty  
         automotive good that incorporates that material;                   
      (c) except as otherwise provided in section 12(10), this section does 
       not apply with respect to after-market parts;                        
      (d) the costs referred to in subsections (2)(a)(ii) and (b)(ii),      
       subsections (2)(c)(ii)(B) and (d)(ii)(B) and subsections (4) and (5) 
       shall be the costs referred to in those paragraphs that are recorded 
       on the books of the producer of the light-duty automotive good;      
      (e) for purposes of calculating the regional value content of a light-
       duty automotive good, the producer of that good may choose to treat  
       any material used in the production of that good as a non-originating
       material, and the value of that material shall be determined in      
       accordance with subsection (5) with respect to the transaction in    
       which the producer acquired it; and                                  
      (f) any information set out in a statement referred to in subsection  
       (2) that concerns the value of materials or costs shall be in the    
       same currency as the currency of the country in which the person who 
       provided the statement is located.                                   
                                                                            
       Examples of application of tracing for light-duty automotive goods   
                                                                            
    (10) Each of the following examples is an ``Example'' as referred to in 
     section 2(4).                                                          
                                                                            
    
    
    
    Example 1:                                                              
        Nuts and bolts provided for in heading 7318 are imported from       
     outside the territories of the NAFTA countries and are used in the     
     territory of a NAFTA country in the production of a light-duty         
     automotive good referred to in section 9(1). Heading 7318 is not listed
     in Schedule IV so the nuts and bolts are not traced materials.         
        Because the nuts and bolts are not traced materials the value, under
     section 9(1), of the nuts and bolts is not included in the value of non-
     originating materials used in the light-duty automotive good even      
     though the nuts and bolts are imported from outside the territories of 
     the NAFTA countries.                                                   
        The value, under section 9(9)(b), of the nuts and bolts is included 
     in the net cost of the light-duty automotive good for the purposes of  
     calculating, under section 9(1), regional value content of the motor   
     vehicle.                                                               
    Example 2:                                                              
    
    [[Page 46417]]
                                                                            
        A rear view mirror provided for in subheading 7009.10 is imported   
     from outside the territories of the NAFTA countries and is used in the 
     territory of a NAFTA country as original equipment in the production of
     a light-duty vehicle.                                                  
        Subheading 7009.10 is listed in Schedule IV. The rear view mirror is
     a traced material. For purposes of calculating, under section 9(1),    
     regional value content of the light-duty vehicle, the value of the     
     mirror is included in the value of non-originating materials in        
     accordance with sections 9(2) through (9).                             
    Example 3:                                                              
        Glass provided for in heading 7005 is imported from outside the     
     territories of the NAFTA countries and is used in the territory of     
     NAFTA country A in the production of a rear view mirror. The rear view 
     mirror is a non-originating good because it fails to satisfy the       
     applicable change in tariff classification.                            
        That rear view mirror is exported to NAFTA country B where it is    
     used as original equipment in the production of a light-duty vehicle.  
     Even though the rear view mirror is a non-originating material and is  
     provided for in a tariff item listed in Schedule IV, it is not a traced
     material because it was not imported from outside the territories of   
     the NAFTA countries.                                                   
        For purposes of calculating, under section 9(1), the regional value 
     content of a light-duty vehicle in which the rear view mirror is       
     incorporated, the value of the rear view mirror, under section 9(1), is
     not included in the value of non-originating materials used in the     
     production of the light-duty vehicle.                                  
        Even though the glass provided for in heading 7005 that was used in 
     the production of the rear view mirror and incorporated into the light-
     duty vehicle was imported from outside the territories of the NAFTA    
     countries, the glass is not a traced material because heading 7005 is  
     not listed in Schedule IV. For purposes of calculating, under section  
     9(1), the regional value content of the light-duty vehicle that        
     incorporates the glass, the value of the glass is not included in the  
     value of non-originating materials used in the production of the light-
     duty vehicle. The value of the rear view mirror would be included in   
     the net cost of the light-duty vehicle, but the value of the imported  
     glass would not be separately included in the value of non-originating 
     materials of the light-duty vehicle.                                   
    Example 4:                                                              
        An electric motor provided for in subheading 8501.10 is imported    
     from outside the territories of the NAFTA countries and is used in the 
     territory of a NAFTA country in the production of a seat frame provided
     for in subheading 9401.90. The seat frame, with the electric motor     
     attached, is sold to a producer of seats provided for in subheading    
     9401.20. The seat producer sells the seat to a producer of light-duty  
     vehicles. The seat is to be used as original equipment in the          
     production of that light-duty vehicle.                                 
        Subheadings 8501.10 and 9401.20 are listed in Schedule IV;          
     subheading 9401.90 is not. The electric motor is a traced material; the
     seat is not a traced material because it was not imported from outside 
     the territories of the NAFTA countries.                                
        The seat is a light-duty automotive good referred to in section     
     9(1). For purposes of calculating, under section 9(1), the regional    
     value content of the seat, the value of traced materials incorporated  
     into it is included in the value of non-originating materials used in  
     the production of the seat. The value of the electric motor is included
     in that value. (However, the value of the motor would not be included  
     separately in the net cost of the seat because the value of the motor  
     is included as part of the cost of the seat frame.)                    
        For purposes of calculating, under section 9(1), the regional value 
     content of the light-duty vehicle, the value of the electric motor is  
     included in the value of non-originating materials used in the         
     production of the light-duty vehicle, even if the seat is an           
     originating material.                                                  
    Example 5:                                                              
        Cast blocks, cast heads and connecting rod assemblies provided for  
     in heading 8409 are imported from outside the territories of the NAFTA 
     countries by an engine producer, who has title to them at the time of  
     importation, and are used by the producer in the territory of NAFTA    
     country A in the production of an engine provided for in heading 8407. 
     After the regional value content of the engine is calculated, the      
     engine is an originating good. It is not a traced material because it  
     was not imported from outside the territories of the NAFTA countries.  
     The engine is exported to NAFTA country B, to be used as original      
     equipment by a producer of light-duty vehicles.                        
        For purposes of calculating, under section 9(1), the regional value 
     content of the light-duty vehicle that incorporates the engine, because
     heading 8409 is listed in Schedule IV and because the cast blocks, cast
     heads and connecting rod assemblies were imported into the territory of
     a NAFTA country and are incorporated into the light-duty vehicle, the  
     value of those materials, which are traced materials, is included in   
     the value of non-originating materials used in the production of the   
     light-duty vehicle, even though the engine is an originating material. 
        The producer of the light-duty vehicle did not import the traced    
     materials. However, because that producer has a statement referred to  
     in section 9(2)(c) and that statement states the value of non-         
     originating materials of the traced materials in accordance with       
     section 12(2), the producer of the light-duty vehicle may, in          
     accordance with section 9(8), use that value as the value of non-      
     originating materials of the light-duty vehicle with respect to that   
     engine.                                                                
    Example 6:                                                              
        Aluminum ingots provided for in subheading 7601.10 and piston       
     assemblies provided for in heading 8409 are imported from outside the  
     territories of the NAFTA countries by an engine producer and are used  
     by that producer in the territory of NAFTA country A in the production 
     of an engine provided for in heading 8407. The aluminum ingots are used
     by the producer to produce an engine block; the piston assembly is then
     incorporated into the engine block and the producer designates, in     
     accordance with section 7(4), a short block provided for in heading    
     8409 as an intermediate material. The intermediate material qualifies  
     as an originating material. The engine that incorporates the short     
     block is exported to NAFTA country B and used as original equipment in 
     the production of a light-duty vehicle. The piston assemblies provided 
     for in heading 8409 are traced materials; neither the engine nor the   
     short block are traced materials because they were not imported from   
     outside the territories of the NAFTA countries.                        
        For purposes of calculating, under section 9(1), the regional value 
     content of the engine, the value of the piston assemblies is included, 
     under section 9(9)(a)(ii), in the value of non-originating materials,  
     even if the intermediate material is an originating material. However, 
     the value of the aluminum ingots is not included in the value of non-  
     originating materials because subheading 7601.10 is not listed in      
     Schedule IV. The value of the aluminum ingots does not need to be      
     included separately in the net cost of the engine because that value is
     included in the value of the intermediate material, and the total cost 
     of the intermediate material is included in the net cost of the engine.
        For purposes of calculating, under section 9(1), the regional value 
     content of the light-duty vehicle that incorporates the engine (and the
     piston assemblies), the value of the piston assemblies incorporated    
     into that light-duty vehicle is included in the value of non-          
     originating materials of the light-duty vehicle.                       
    Example 7:                                                              
    
    [[Page 46418]]
                                                                            
        An engine provided for in heading 8407 is imported from outside the 
     territories of the NAFTA countries. The producer of the engine, located
     in the country from which the engine is imported, used in the          
     production of the engine a piston assembly provided for in heading 8409
     that was produced in a NAFTA country and is an originating good. The   
     engine is used in the territory of a NAFTA country as original         
     equipment in the production of a light-duty vehicle. The engine is a   
     traced material.                                                       
        For purposes of calculating, under section 9(1), the regional value 
     content of a light-duty vehicle that incorporates that engine, the     
     value of the engine is included in the value of non-originating        
     materials of that light-duty vehicle. The value of the piston assembly,
     which was, before its exportation to outside the territories of the    
     NAFTA countries, an originating good, shall not be deducted from the   
     value of non-originating materials used in the production of the light-
     duty vehicle. Under section 18 (transshipment), the piston assembly is 
     no longer considered to be an originating good because it was used in  
     the production of a good outside the territories of the NAFTA          
     countries.                                                             
    Example 8:                                                              
        A wholesaler, located in City A in the territory of a NAFTA country,
     imports from outside the territories of the NAFTA countries rubber     
     hoses provided for in heading 4009, which is listed in Schedule IV. The
     wholesaler takes title to the goods at the wholesaler's place of       
     business in City A. The customs value of the imported goods is $500.   
     All freight, taxes and duties associated with the good to the          
     wholesaler's place of business total $100; the cost of the freight,    
     included in that $100, from the place where it was received in the     
     territory of a NAFTA country to the location of the wholesaler's place 
     of business in City A is $25. The wholesaler sells the rubber hoses for
     $650 to a producer of light-duty vehicles who uses the goods in the    
     territory of a NAFTA country as original equipment in the production of
     a light-duty vehicle. The light-duty vehicle producer pays $50 to have 
     the goods shipped from the location of the wholesaler's place of       
     business in City A to the location at which the light-duty vehicle is  
     produced.                                                              
        The rubber hoses are traced materials and they are incorporated into
     a light-duty automotive good. For purposes of calculating, under       
     section 9(1), the regional value content of the light-duty vehicle,    
      (1) if the wholesaler takes title to the goods before the first place 
       at which they were received in the territory of a NAFTA country, then
       the value of non-originating materials, where the light-duty vehicle 
       producer has a statement referred to in section 9(2)(c), would not   
       include the cost of freight from the place where they were received  
       in the territory of a NAFTA country to the location of the           
       wholesaler's place of business: in this situation, the value of non- 
       originating materials would be $575;                                 
      (2) if the producer has a statement referred to in section 9(2)(d)    
       that states the customs value of the traced material and, where not  
       included in that price, the cost of taxes, duties, fees and          
       transporting the goods to the place where title is taken, the light- 
       duty vehicle producer may use those values as the value of non-      
       originating materials with respect to the goods: in this situation,  
       the value of non-originating materials would be $600; or             
      (3) if the wholesaler is unwilling to provide the light-duty vehicle  
       producer with such a statement, the value of non-originating         
       materials with respect to the traced materials will be the value of  
       the materials with respect to the transaction in which the producer  
       acquired them, as provided for in section 9(2)(i), in this instance  
       $650; the costs of transporting the goods from the location of the   
       wholesaler's place of business to the location of the producer will  
       be included in the net cost of the goods, but not in the value of non-
       originating materials.                                               
    Example 9:                                                              
        A wholesaler, located in City A in the territory of a NAFTA country,
     imports from outside the territories of the NAFTA countries rubber hose
     provided for in heading 4009, which is listed in Schedule IV. The      
     wholesaler sells the good to a producer located in the territory of the
     NAFTA country who uses the hose to produce a power steering hose       
     assembly, also provided for in heading 4009. The power steering hose   
     assembly is then sold to a producer of light-duty vehicles who uses    
     that good in the production of a light-duty vehicle. The rubber hose is
     a traced material; the power steering hose assembly is not a traced    
     material because it was not imported from outside the territories of   
     the NAFTA countries.                                                   
        The wholesaler who imported the rubber hose from outside the        
     territories of the NAFTA countries has title to it at the time of      
     importation. The customs value of the good is $3, including freight and
     insurance and all other costs incurred in transporting the good to the 
     first place at which it was received in the territory of the NAFTA     
     country. Duties and fees and all other costs referred to in section    
     9(4), paid by the wholesaler with respect to the good, total an        
     additional $1. The wholesaler sells the good to the producer of the    
     power steering hose assemblies for $5, not including freight to the    
     location of that producer. The power steering hose producer pays $2 to 
     have the good delivered to the location of production. The value of the
     power steering hose assembly sold to the light-duty vehicle producer is
     $10, including freight for delivery of the goods to the location of the
     light-duty vehicle producer.                                           
        For purposes of calculating, under section 9(1), the regional value 
     content of the light-duty vehicle:                                     
      (1) if the motor vehicle producer has a statement referred to in      
       section 9(2)(c) from the producer of the power steering hose assembly
       that states the customs value of the imported rubber hose            
       incorporated in the power steering hose assembly, and the value of   
       the duties, fees and other costs referred to in section 9(4), the    
       producer may use those values as the value of non-originating        
       materials with respect to that traced good: in this situation, that  
       value would be the customs value of $3 and the cost of duties and    
       fees of $1, provided that the wholesaler has provided the producer of
       the power steering hose assembly with the information regarding the  
       customs value of the imported good and the other costs;              
      (2) if the light-duty vehicle producer has a statement from the       
       producer of the power steering hose assembly that states the value of
       the imported hose, with respect to the transaction in which the power
       steering hose assembly producer acquires the imported hose from the  
       wholesaler, the light-duty vehicle producer may include that value as
       the value of non-originating materials, in accordance with section   
       9(2)(e): in this situation, that value is $5; and the $2 cost of     
       transporting the good from the location of the wholesaler to the     
       location of the producer, because that cost is separately identified,
       would not be included in the value of non-originating materials of   
       the light-duty vehicle;                                              
      (3) if the light-duty vehicle producer has a statement referred to in 
       section 9(2)(f) signed by the producer of the power steering hose    
       assembly, the light-duty vehicle producer may use the formula set out
       in section 9(2)(f) to calculate the value of non-originating         
       materials with respect to that acquired material: in this situation, 
       assuming the regional value content is 55 per cent, the value of non-
       originating materials would be $4.50; and because the cost of        
       transportation from the location of the producer of the power        
       steering hose assembly to the location of the light-duty vehicle     
       producer is included in the purchase price and not separately        
       identified, it may not be deducted from the purchase price, because  
       the formula referred to in section 9(2)(f) does not allow for the    
       deduction of transportation costs that would otherwise not be non-   
       originating;                                                         
      (4) if the light-duty vehicle producer has a statement referred to in 
       section 9(2)(g) signed by the producer of the power steering hose    
       assembly, the light-duty vehicle producer may use the formula set out
       in section 9(2)(g) to calculate the value of non-originating         
       materials with respect to that acquired material: in this situation, 
       assuming the regional value-content requirement is 50 per cent, the  
       value of non-originating materials would be $5; and because the cost 
       of transportation from the location of the producer of the power     
       steering hose assembly to the location of the light-duty vehicle     
       producer is included in the purchase price and not separately        
       identified, it may not be deducted from the purchase price, because  
       the formula referred to in section 9(2)(g) does not allow for the    
       deduction of transportation costs that would otherwise not be non-   
       originating; or                                                      
    
    [[Page 46419]]
                                                                            
      (5) if the light-duty vehicle producer does not have a statement      
       referred to in any of sections 9(2)(c) through (h) from the producer 
       of the power steering hose assembly, the light-duty vehicle producer 
       includes in the value of non-originating materials of the vehicles   
       the value, determined in accordance with section 9(2)(i), of the     
       power steering hose assembly: in this situation, that amount would be
       $10, the cost to the producer of acquiring that material.            
    Example 10:                                                             
        A producer of light-duty vehicles located in City C in the territory
     of a NAFTA country imports from outside the territories of the NAFTA   
     countries rubber hose provided for in heading 4009, which is listed in 
     Schedule IV, and uses that good as original equipment in the production
     of a light-duty vehicle.                                               
        The rubber hose arrives at City A in the NAFTA country, but the     
     producer of the light-duty vehicle does not have title to the good; it 
     is transported under bond to City B, and on its arrival in City B, the 
     producer of the light-duty vehicle takes title to it and the good is   
     received in the territory of a NAFTA country. The good is then         
     transported to the location of the light-duty vehicle producer in City 
     C.                                                                     
        The customs value of the imported good is $4, the transportation and
     other costs referred to in subparagraph 9(2)(b)(ii) to City A are $3   
     and to City B are $2, and the cost of duties, taxes and other fees     
     referred to in section 9(4) is $1. The cost of transporting the good   
     from City B to the location of the producer in City C is $1. The rubber
     hose is traced material.                                               
        For purposes of calculating, under section 9(1), the regional value 
     content of the light-duty vehicle, the value, under section 9(2)(b), of
     non-originating materials of that vehicle is the customs value of the  
     traced material and, where not included in that value, the cost of     
     taxes, duties, fees and the cost of transporting the traced material to
     the place where title is taken. In this situation, the value of non-   
     originating materials would be the customs value of the traced         
     material, $4, the cost of duties taxes and other fees, $1, the cost of 
     transporting the material to City A, $3, and the cost of transporting  
     that material from City A to City B, $2, for a total of $10. The $1    
     cost of transporting the good from City B to the location of the       
     producer in City C would not be included in the value of non-          
     originating materials of the light-duty vehicle because a person of a  
     NAFTA country has taken title to the traced material.                  
    Example 11:                                                             
        A radiator provided for in subheading 8708.91 is imported from      
     outside the territories of the NAFTA countries by a producer of light- 
     duty vehicles and is used in the territory of a NAFTA country as       
     original equipment in the production of a light-duty vehicle.          
        The radiator is transported by ship from outside the territories of 
     the NAFTA countries and arrives in the territory of the NAFTA country  
     at City A. The radiator is not, however, unloaded at City A and        
     although the radiator is physically present in the territory of the    
     NAFTA country, it has not been received in the territory of a NAFTA    
     country.                                                               
        The ship sails in territorial waters from City A to City B and the  
     radiator is unloaded there. The light-duty vehicle producer files, from
     City C in the same country, the entry for the radiator; the radiator   
     enters the territory of the NAFTA country at City B.                   
        Subheading 8708.91 is listed in Schedule IV. The radiator is a      
     traced material.                                                       
        For purposes of calculating, under section 9(1), the regional value 
     content of the light-duty vehicle, the value of the radiator is        
     included in the value of non-originating materials of the light-duty   
     vehicle. The costs of any freight, insurance, packing and other costs  
     incurred in transporting the radiator to City B are included in the    
     value of non-originating materials of the light-duty vehicle, including
     the cost of transporting the radiator from City A to City B. The costs 
     of any freight, insurance, packing and other costs that were incurred  
     in transporting the radiator from City B to the location of the        
     producer are not included in the value of non-originating materials of 
     the light-duty vehicle.                                                
    Example 12:                                                             
        Producer X, located in NAFTA country A, produces a car seat of      
     subheading No. 9401.20 that is used in the production of a light-duty  
     vehicle. The only non-originating material used in the production of   
     the car seat is an electric motor of subheading No. 8501.20 that was   
     imported by Producer X from outside the territories of the NAFTA       
     countries. The electric motor is a material of a tariff provision      
     listed in Schedule IV and thus is a traced material.                   
        Producer X sells the car seat as original equipment to Producer Y, a
     light-duty vehicle producer, located in NAFTA country B. The car seat  
     is an originating good because the non-originating material in the car 
     seat (the electric motor) undergoes the applicable change in tariff    
     classification set out in a rule that specifies only a change in tariff
     classification. Consequently, Producer X does not choose to calculate  
     the regional value content of the car seat in accordance with section  
     12(1).                                                                 
        For purposes of determining, under section 9(1), the value of non-  
     originating materials used in the production of the light-duty vehicle 
     that incorporates the car seat, the value of the electric motor is     
     included even though the car seat qualifies as an originating material.
        Producer X provides Producer Y with a statement described in section
     9(2)(c), with the value of non-originating material used in the        
     production of the car seat determined in accordance with section 12(3),
     as is permitted by section 9(8). Producer Y uses that value as the     
     value of non-originating materials used in the production of the light-
     duty vehicle with respect to the car seat.                             
    Example 13:                                                             
        This example has the same facts as in Example 12, except that the   
     car seat does not qualify as an originating good under the rule that   
     specifies only a change in tariff classification. Instead, it qualifies
     as an originating good under a rule that specifies a regional value-   
     content requirement and a change in tariff classification. For purposes
     of that rule, Producer X chose to calculate the regional value content 
     of the car seat in accordance with section 12(1) over a period set out 
     in section 12(5)(a) and using a category set out in section 12(4)(a).  
        For purposes of the statement described in section 9(2)(c), Producer
     X determined, as is permitted under section 9(8), the value of non-    
     originating material used in the production of the car seat in         
     accordance with section 12(3) over a period set out in section 12(5)(a)
     and using a category set out in section 12(4)(e).                      
                                                                            
    
    
    
    
                     SECTION 10. HEAVY-DUTY AUTOMOTIVE GOODS                
    Determining VNM for the calculation of the RVC for heavy-duty automotive
                                      goods                                 
                                                                            
    (1) Except as otherwise provided in subsections (3) through (8) and     
     section 12(10)(a), for purposes of calculating the regional value      
     content of a heavy-duty automotive good under the net cost method, the 
     value of non-originating materials used by the producer of the good in 
     the production of the good shall be the sum of                         
      (a) for each listed material that is a non-originating material, is a 
       self-produced material and is used by the producer in the production 
       of the good, at the choice of the producer, either                   
        (i) the total cost incurred with respect to all goods produced by   
         the producer that can be reasonably allocated to that listed       
         material in accordance with Schedule VII,                          
        (ii) the aggregate of each cost that forms part of the total cost   
         incurred with respect to that listed material that can be          
         reasonably allocated to that listed material in accordance with    
         Schedule VII, or                                                   
        (iii) the sum of                                                    
          (A) the customs value of each non-originating material imported by
           the producer and used in the production of the listed material,  
           and, where not included in that customs value, the costs referred
           to in subsections (2)(c) through (f), and                        
    
    [[Page 46420]]
                                                                            
          (B) the value of each non-originating material that is not        
           imported by the producer of the listed material and is used in   
           the production of the listed material, determined in accordance  
           with subsection (2) with respect to the transaction in which the 
           producer of the listed material acquired it;                     
      (b) for each listed material that is a non-originating material, is   
       produced in the territory of a NAFTA country and is acquired and used
       by the producer in the production of the good, at the choice of the  
       producer, either                                                     
        (i) the value of that non-originating listed material, determined in
         accordance with subsection (2), with respect to the transaction in 
         which the producer acquired the listed material, or                
        (ii) where the producer of the good has a statement described in    
         clause (A) or (B) with respect to each material that is a non-     
         originating material used in the production of that listed         
         material, the sum of                                               
          (A) the customs value of each non-originating material imported by
           the producer of the listed material and used in the production of
           that listed material, and, where not included in that customs    
           value, the costs referred to in subsections (2)(c) through (f),  
           if the producer of the good has a statement signed by the        
           producer of the listed material that states the customs value of 
           that non-originating material and the costs referred to in       
           subsections (2)(c) through (f) that the producer of the listed   
           material incurred with respect to the non-originating material,  
           and                                                              
          (B) the value of each non-originating material that is not        
           imported by the producer of the listed material, and is acquired 
           and used in the production of the listed material, determined in 
           accordance with subsection (2) with respect to the transaction in
           which the producer of the listed material acquired that non-     
           originating material, if the producer of the good has a statement
           signed by the producer of the listed material that states the    
           value of the acquired material, determined in accordance with    
           subsection (2) with respect to the transaction in which the      
           producer of the listed material acquired the non-originating     
           material;                                                        
      (c) for each listed material, automotive component assembly,          
       automotive component or sub-component that is imported from outside  
       the territories of the NAFTA countries, and is used by the producer  
       in the production of the good,                                       
        (i) where it is imported by the producer, the customs value of that 
         non-originating listed material, automotive component assembly,    
         automotive component or sub-component, and, where not included in  
         that customs value, the costs referred to in subsections (2)(c)    
         through (f), and                                                   
        (ii) where it is not imported by the producer, the value of that non-
         originating listed material, automotive component assembly,        
         automotive component or sub-component, determined in accordance    
         with subsection (2) with respect to the transaction in which the   
         producer acquired it;                                              
      (d) for each automotive component assembly, automotive component or   
       sub-component that is an originating material and is acquired and    
       used by the producer in the production of the good, at the choice of 
       the producer,                                                        
        (i) the sum of                                                      
          (A) the value of each non-originating listed material used in the 
           production of the originating material, determined under         
           paragraphs (a) and (b),                                          
          (B) the value of each non-originating material incorporated into  
           the originating material, determined under paragraph (c),        
          (C) the value of each non-originating listed material used in the 
           production of a material referred to in paragraph (e) that is    
           used in the production of the originating material, determined   
           under paragraphs (a) and (b), and                                
          (D) where the value of a non-originating listed material referred 
           to in clause (C), and used in the production of a non-originating
           automotive component assembly, automotive component or sub-      
           component that is used in the production of the originating      
           material, is not included under clause (C), the value of that    
           automotive component assembly, automotive component or sub-      
           component, determined under paragraph (e)(ii),                   
        if the producer has a statement, signed by the person from whom the 
         originating material was acquired, that states the sum of the      
         values, as determined by the producer of the originating material  
         under paragraphs (a), (b), (c) and (e) of each non-originating     
         material referred to in any of clauses (A) through (D) that is     
         incorporated into that originating material;                       
        (ii) an amount equal to the number resulting from applying the      
         following formula:                                                 
                                                                            
                                VM  x  (1 - RVC)                            
                                                                            
        where                                                               
            VM is the value of the acquired material, determined in         
             accordance with subsection (2), with respect to the transaction
             in which the producer of the good acquired that material, and  
            RVC is the regional value content of the acquired material,     
             expressed as a decimal,                                        
        if the material is subject to a regional value-content requirement  
         and the producer has a statement, signed by the person from whom   
         the producer acquired that material, that states that the acquired 
         material is an originating material and states the regional value  
         content of the material,                                           
        (iii) an amount equal to the number resulting from applying the     
         following formula:                                                 
                                                                            
                                VM  x  (1 - RVCR)                           
                                                                            
        where                                                               
            VM is the value of the acquired material, determined in         
             accordance with subsection (2), with respect to the transaction
             in which the producer of the good acquired that material, and  
            RVCR is the regional value-content requirement for the acquired 
             material, expressed as a decimal,                              
        if the material is subject to a regional value-content requirement  
         and the producer has a statement, signed by the person from whom   
         the producer acquired that material, that states that the acquired 
         material is an originating material but does not state the value of
         non-originating materials with respect to that acquired material;  
         or                                                                 
        (iv) the value of that automotive component assembly, automotive    
         component or sub-component determined in accordance with subsection
         (2) with respect to the transaction in which the producer acquired 
         the material;                                                      
    
    [[Page 46421]]
                                                                            
      (e) for each automotive component assembly, automotive component or   
       sub-component that is a non-originating material produced in the     
       territory of a NAFTA country and that is acquired by the producer and
       used by the producer in the production of the good, at the choice of 
       the producer, either                                                 
        (i) the sum of the values of the non-originating materials          
         incorporated into that non-originating material that is acquired by
         the producer, determined under paragraphs (a), (b), (c), (d) and   
         (f), if the producer has a statement, signed by the person from    
         whom the non-originating material was acquired, that states the sum
         of the values of the non-originating materials incorporated into   
         that non-originating material, determined by the producer of the   
         non-originating material in accordance with paragraphs (a), (b),   
         (c), (d) and (f), or                                               
        (ii) the value of that non-originating automotive component         
         assembly, automotive component or sub-component, determined in     
         accordance with subsection (2) with respect to the transaction in  
         which the producer acquired the material; and                      
      (f) for each non-originating material that is not referred to in      
       paragraph (a), (b), (c) or (e) and that is used by the producer in   
       the production of the good,                                          
        (i) where it is imported by the producer, the customs value of that 
         non-originating material, and, where not included in that customs  
         value, the costs referred to in subsections (2)(c) through (f), and
        (ii) where it is not imported by the producer, the value of that non-
         originating material, determined in accordance with subsection (2) 
         with respect to the transaction in which the producer acquired the 
         material.                                                          
                                                                            
      Application of Schedule VIII to determine VNM; additional costs to be 
                                    included                                
                                                                            
    (2) For purposes of subsection (1)(a)(ii)(B), subsection (1)(b)(i),     
     subsection (1)(b)(ii)(B), subsections (1)(c)(ii), (1)(d)(ii) through   
     (iv), (1)(e)(ii) and subsection (1)(f)(ii), the value of a material    
      (a) shall be the transaction value of the material, determined in     
       accordance with section 2(1) of Schedule VIII with respect to the    
       transaction referred to in that clause, subparagraph or paragraph, or
      (b) where, with respect to the transaction referred to in that clause,
       subparagraph, or paragraph, there is no transaction value for the    
       material under section 2(2) of Schedule VIII or the transaction value
       of the material is unacceptable under section 2(3) of that Schedule, 
       shall be determined in accordance with sections 6 through 11 of that 
       Schedule,                                                            
    and shall include the following costs where they are not included under 
     paragraph (a) or (b):                                                  
      (c) the costs of freight, insurance and packing, and all other costs  
       incurred in transporting the material to the location of the         
       producer,                                                            
      (d) duties and taxes paid or payable with respect to the material in  
       the territory of one or more of the NAFTA countries, other than      
       duties and taxes that are waived, refunded, refundable or otherwise  
       recoverable, including credit against duty or tax paid or payable,   
      (e) customs brokerage fees, including the cost of in-house customs    
       brokerage and customs clearance services, incurred with respect to   
       the material in the territory of one or more of the NAFTA countries, 
       and                                                                  
      (f) the cost of waste and spoilage resulting from the use of the      
       material in the production of the good, minus the value of any       
       reusable scrap or by-product.                                        
                                                                            
      Value of imported material if customs value is not in accordance with 
                                  Schedule VIII                             
                                                                            
    (3) For purposes of subsections (1)(a)(ii)(A) and (b)(ii)(A) and        
     subsections (1)(c)(i) and (f)(i), where the customs value of an        
     imported material referred to in those clauses or paragraphs was not   
     determined in a manner consistent with Schedule VIII, the value of the 
     material shall be determined in accordance with Schedule VIII with     
     respect to the importation for which that customs value was determined 
     and, where the costs referred to in sections (2)(c) through (f) are not
     included in that value, those costs shall be added to the value of the 
     material.                                                              
         Option to use section 9 tracing rules in certain circumstances     
                                                                            
    (4) For purposes of calculating the regional value content of a heavy-  
     duty component, where                                                  
      (a) a heavy-duty component is produced in the same plant as an        
       automotive component assembly or automotive component that is of the 
       same heading or subheading as that heavy-duty component and is for   
       use as original equipment in a light-duty vehicle, and               
      (b) it is not reasonable for the producer to know which of the        
       production will constitute a heavy-duty component for use in a heavy-
       duty vehicle,                                                        
    the value of the non-originating materials used in the production of the
     heavy-duty component in that plant may, at the choice of the producer, 
     be determined in the manner set out in section 9.                      
    (5) For purposes of calculating the regional value content of a heavy-  
     duty vehicle, where a producer of such a vehicle acquires, for use by  
     that producer in the production of the vehicle, a heavy-duty component 
     with respect to which the value of non-originating materials has been  
     determined in accordance with subsection (4), the value of the non-    
     originating materials used by the producer with respect to that heavy- 
     duty component is the value of non-originating materials determined    
     under that subsection.                                                 
                                                                            
             VNM may be redetermined for certain acquired materials         
                                                                            
    (6) Where it is determined, during the course of a verification of      
     origin of a heavy-duty automotive good with respect to which the       
     producer of that good has a statement referred to in subsection        
     (1)(d)(ii) or (iii) that the acquired material referred to in that     
     statement is not an originating material, the value of the acquired    
     material shall, for purposes of subsection (1), be determined in       
     accordance with subsection (2) with respect to the transaction in which
     that producer acquired it.                                             
                                                                            
    
    [[Page 46422]]
                                                                            
      Effect on value of traced material if value on a statement cannot be  
                                    verified                                
                                                                            
    (7) Where any person who has information with respect to a statement    
     referred to in subsection (1)(b)(ii), (d)(i) or (e)(i) does not allow a
     customs administration to verify that information during a verification
     of origin, the value of any material with respect to which that person 
     did not allow the customs administration to verify the information may 
     be determined by that customs administration in accordance with        
     subsection (2) with respect to the transaction in which that person    
     sells, or otherwise transfers to another person, that material or a    
     material that incorporates that material.                              
                                                                            
        Use of value of VNM as determined under section 12(3) for traced    
                   material incorporated into another material              
                                                                            
    (8) Where a heavy-duty component, sub-component or listed material is   
     incorporated into a material produced in the territory of a NAFTA      
     country and that material is incorporated into a heavy-duty automotive 
     good, the statement referred to in subsection (1)(b)(ii), (d)(i) or    
     (e)(i) may state the value of non-originating materials, determined in 
     accordance with section 12(3), with respect to the material that       
     incorporates the heavy-duty component, sub-component or listed         
     material.                                                              
                                                                            
                                                                            
      Interpretations and clarifications for provisions applicable to rules 
               for determining VNM for heavy-duty automotive goods          
                                                                            
    (9) For purposes of this section,                                       
      (a) for purposes of calculating the regional value content of a heavy-
       duty automotive good, sub-component or listed material, a producer of
       such a good may, in accordance with section 7(4), designate as an    
       intermediate material any self-produced material, other than a heavy-
       duty component or sub-component, that is used in the production of   
       that good;                                                           
      (b) except as otherwise provided in section 12(10), this section does 
       not apply with respect to after-market parts;                        
      (c) this section does not apply to a sub-component for purposes of    
       calculating its regional value content before it is incorporated into
       a heavy-duty automotive good;                                        
      (d) for purposes of calculating the regional value content of a heavy-
       duty automotive good, the producer of that good may choose to treat  
       any material used in the production of that good as a non-originating
       material, and the value of that material shall be determined in      
       accordance with subsection (2) with respect to the transaction in    
       which the producer acquired it;                                      
      (e) any information set out in a statement referred to in subsections 
       (1)(b)(ii), (d)(i) through (iii) or (e)(i) that concerns the value of
       materials or costs shall be in the same currency as the currency of  
       the country in which the person who provided the statement is        
       located; and                                                         
      (f) total cost under subsections (1)(a)(i) and (ii) consists of the   
       costs referred to section 2(6), and is calculated in accordance with 
       that section and section 2(7).                                       
                                                                            
       Examples of application of rules for determining VNM for heavy-duty  
                                automotive goods                            
                                                                            
    (10) Each of the following examples is an ``Example'' as referred to in 
     section 2(4).                                                          
                                                                            
    
    
    
    
    Example 1: A listed material is imported from outside the territories of
     the NAFTA countries                                                    
        A cast head, produced outside the territories of the NAFTA          
     countries, is imported into the territory of a NAFTA country and used  
     in that country in the production of an engine that will be used as    
     original equipment in the production of a heavy-duty vehicle. No other 
     non-originating materials are used in the production of the engine. The
     cast head is a listed material; the engine is an automotive component. 
        Situation 1: Use of the listed material in an automotive component  
        For purposes of calculating the regional value content of the       
     engine, the value of listed materials imported from outside the        
     territories of the NAFTA countries is included in the value of non-    
     originating materials used in the production of the engine. Because the
     cast head was produced outside the territories of the NAFTA countries, 
     its value, under section 10(1)(c), is included in the value of non-    
     originating materials used in the production of the engine.            
        Situation 2: Use of an originating automotive component             
     incorporating the listed material                                      
        The engine is an originating material acquired by the producer of   
     the heavy-duty vehicle. For purposes of calculating the regional value 
     content of the heavy-duty vehicle that incorporates that engine (and   
     incorporates the cast head), the value of non-originating materials    
     used in the production of the heavy-duty vehicle is determined under   
     section 10(1)(d) with respect to that engine. The producer may choose  
     to include in the value of non-originating materials of the heavy-duty 
     vehicle                                                                
      (a) the value, determined under section 10(1)(d)(i), of the non-      
       originating materials that are incorporated into the engine, which is
       the value, determined under sections 10(1) (a) through (c) and       
       paragraph (e)(ii), of the non-originating materials;                 
      (b) the value, determined under section 10(1)(d)(ii), which is an     
       amount equal to the amount determined under section 10(1)(d)(iv)     
       multiplied by the remainder of one minus the regional value content, 
       expressed as a decimal, of the engine;                               
      (c) the value, determined under section 10(1)(d)(iii), which is an    
       amount equal to the amount determined under section 10(1)(d)(iv)     
       multiplied by the remainder of one minus the regional value-content  
       requirement, expressed as a decimal, for the engine; or              
      (d) the value, determined under section 10(1)(d)(iv), of the engine.  
        The heavy-duty vehicle producer may only choose the first option if 
     that producer has a statement, referred to in section 10(1)(d)(i), from
     the person from whom the engine was acquired. In this situation, the   
     value, determined under section 10(1)(c), of the cast head, is included
     in the value of non-originating materials of the heavy-duty vehicle,   
     with respect to the engine that is used in the production of the heavy-
     duty vehicle.                                                          
        The heavy-duty vehicle producer may only choose the second option if
     that producer has a statement, referred to in section 10(1)(d)(ii),    
     from the person from whom the engine was acquired. In this situation,  
     because of the application of the equation, the value of the cast head 
     will be included in the amount determined under section 10(1)(d)(ii)   
     and is, consequently, included in the value of non-originating         
     materials used in the production of the heavy-duty vehicle.            
        The heavy-duty vehicle producer may only choose the third option if 
     that producer has a statement, referred to in section 10(1)(d)(iii),   
     from the person from whom the engine was acquired. In this situation,  
     because of the application of the equation, the value of the cast head 
     will be included in the amount determined under section 10(1)(d)(iii)  
     and is, consequently, included in the value of non-originating         
     materials used in the production of the heavy-duty vehicle.            
        Situation 3: Use of a non-originating automotive component          
     incorporating the listed material                                      
    
    [[Page 46423]]
                                                                            
        The engine is a non-originating material acquired by the producer of
     the heavy-duty vehicle. For purposes of calculating the regional value 
     content of the heavy-duty vehicle that incorporates that engine (and   
     incorporates the cast head), the value of non-originating materials    
     used in the production of the heavy-duty vehicle is determined under   
     section 10(1)(e) with respect to that engine. The producer of the heavy-
     duty vehicle may choose to include in the value of non-originating     
     materials either                                                       
      (a) the value, as determined under section 10(1)(e)(i), of the non-   
       originating materials that are incorporated into the engine, which is
       the value of the non-originating materials as determined under       
       sections 10(1)(a) through (d) and (f), or                            
      (b) the value of the engine, determined under section 10(1)(e)(ii).   
        The heavy-duty vehicle producer may only choose the first option if 
     that producer has a statement, referred to in section 10(1)(e)(i), from
     the person from whom the engine was acquired. In this situation, the   
     value of the cast head, as determined under section 10(1)(c), is       
     included in the value of non-originating materials used in the         
     production of the heavy-duty vehicle, with respect to the engine that  
     is used in the production of the heavy-duty vehicle.                   
    Example 2: A material is imported from outside the territories of the   
     NAFTA countries                                                        
        A rocker arm assembly, produced outside the territories of the NAFTA
     countries, is imported into the territory of a NAFTA country and used  
     in that country in the production of an engine that will be used as    
     original equipment in the production of a heavy-duty vehicle. No other 
     non-originating materials are used in the production of the engine. The
     rocker arm assembly is neither a listed material nor a sub-component;  
     the engine is an automotive component.                                 
        Situation 1: Use of the material in an automotive component         
        For purposes of calculating the regional value content of the       
     engine, the value of non-originating materials that are not listed     
     materials is included in the value of non-originating materials used in
     the production of the engine. Because the rocker arm assembly was      
     produced outside the territories of the NAFTA countries, it is a non-  
     originating material and its value, under section 10(1)(f), is included
     in the value of non-originating materials used in the production of the
     engine.                                                                
        Situation 2: Use of an originating automotive component             
     incorporating the material                                             
        The engine is an originating material acquired by the producer of   
     the heavy-duty vehicle. For purposes of calculating the regional value 
     content of the heavy-duty vehicle that incorporates that engine (and   
     incorporates the rocker arm assembly), the value of non-originating    
     materials used in the production of the heavy-duty vehicle is          
     determined under section 10(1)(d) with respect to that engine. The     
     producer may choose to include in the value of non-originating         
     materials of the heavy-duty vehicle                                    
      (a) the value, determined under section 10(1)(d)(i), of the non-      
       originating materials that are incorporated into the engine, which is
       the value, determined under sections 10(1) (a) through (c) and       
       paragraph (e)(ii), of the non-originating materials;                 
      (b) the value, determined under section 10(1)(d)(ii), which is an     
       amount equal to the amount determined under section 10(1)(d)(iv)     
       multiplied by the remainder of one minus the regional value content, 
       expressed as a decimal, of the engine;                               
      (c) the value, determined under section 10(1)(d)(iii), which is an    
       amount equal to the amount determined under section 10(1)(d)(iv)     
       multiplied by the remainder of one minus the regional value-content  
       requirement, expressed as a decimal, for the engine; or              
      (d) the value, determined under section 10(1)(d)(iv), of the engine.  
        The heavy-duty vehicle producer may only choose the first option if 
     that producer has a statement, referred to in section 10(1)(d)(i), from
     the person from whom the engine was acquired. In this situation, the   
     value of the rocker arm assembly, as determined under section 10(1)(f),
     is not included in the value of non-originating materials of the heavy-
     duty vehicle, with respect to the engine that is used in the production
     of the heavy-duty vehicle.                                             
        The heavy-duty vehicle producer may only choose the second option if
     that producer has a statement, referred to in section 10(1)(d)(ii),    
     from the person from whom the engine was acquired. In this situation,  
     because of the application of the equation, the value of the rocker arm
     assembly will be included in the amount determined under section       
     10(1)(d)(ii) and will, consequently, be included in the value of non-  
     originating materials used in the production of the heavy-duty vehicle.
        The heavy-duty vehicle producer may only choose the third option if 
     that producer has a statement, referred to in section 10(1)(d)(iii),   
     from the person from whom the engine was acquired. In this situation,  
     because of the application of the equation, the value of the rocker arm
     assembly will be included in the amount determined under section       
     10(1)(d)(iii) and will, consequently, be included in the value of non- 
     originating materials used in the production of the heavy-duty vehicle.
        Situation 3: Use of a non-originating automotive component          
     incorporating the material                                             
        The engine is a non-originating material acquired by the producer of
     the heavy-duty vehicle. For purposes of calculating the regional value 
     content of the heavy-duty vehicle that incorporates that engine (and   
     incorporates the rocker arm assembly), the value of non-originating    
     materials used in the production of the heavy-duty vehicle is          
     determined under section 10(1)(e) with respect to that engine. The     
     producer of the heavy-duty vehicle may choose to include in the value  
     of non-originating materials either                                    
      (a) the value, as determined under section 10(1)(e)(i), of the non-   
       originating materials that are incorporated into the engine, which is
       the value of the non-originating materials as determined under       
       sections 10(1) (a) through (d) and (f), or                           
      (b) the value of the engine, determined under section 10(1)(e)(ii).   
        The heavy-duty vehicle producer may only choose the first option if 
     that producer has a statement, referred to in section 10(1)(e)(i), from
     the person from whom the engine was acquired. In this situation, the   
     value of the rocker arm assembly, as determined under section 10(1)(f),
     is included in the value of non-originating materials used in the      
     production of the heavy-duty vehicle, with respect to the engine that  
     is used in the production of the heavy-duty vehicle.                   
        Situation 4: Use of the material in a self-produced automotive      
     component                                                              
        If the engine is a self-produced material rather than an acquired   
     material, the heavy-duty vehicle producer is using the rocker arm      
     assembly in the production of the heavy-duty vehicle rather than in the
     production of the engine, because, under section 7(4), the engine      
     cannot be designated as an intermediate material. For purposes of      
     calculating the regional value content of the heavy-duty vehicle, the  
     value, under section 10(1)(f), of the rocker arm assembly is included  
     in the value of non-originating materials used in the production of the
     heavy-duty vehicle.                                                    
    Example 3: An automotive component is imported from outside the         
     territories of the NAFTA countries                                     
        A transmission, produced outside the territories of the NAFTA       
     countries, is imported into the territory of a NAFTA country and used  
     in that country as original equipment in the production of a heavy-duty
     vehicle. The transmission is an automotive component.                  
        Situation: Use of the automotive component                          
        For purposes of calculating the regional value content of the heavy-
     duty vehicle in which the transmission is used, the value of the       
     transmission is included in the value of the non-originating materials 
     under section 10(1)(c), regardless of whether the producer imported the
     transmission or acquired it from someone else in the territory of a    
     NAFTA country.                                                         
    Example 4: An automotive component is imported from outside the         
     territories of the NAFTA countries                                     
    
    [[Page 46424]]
                                                                            
        A transmission, produced outside the territories of the NAFTA       
     countries, is imported into the territory of a NAFTA country and       
     combined with an engine to produce an engine-transmission assembly that
     will be used as original equipment in the production of a heavy-duty   
     vehicle. The transmission is an automotive component; the engine-      
     transmission assembly is an automotive component assembly.             
        Situation: Use of the automotive component assembly                 
        The automotive component assembly is acquired by a producer who uses
     it in the production of a heavy-duty vehicle. If the automotive        
     component assembly that incorporates the imported transmission is an   
     originating material, the value of non-originating materials used in   
     the production of the automotive component assembly is determined, at  
     the choice of the producer, under any of section 10(1)(d) (i), (ii),   
     (iii) and (iv). (See example 1 for more detailed explanations of these 
     provisions.) If the automotive component assembly that incorporates the
     imported transmission is a non-originating material, the value of non- 
     originating materials used in the production of the automotive         
     component assembly is determined, at the choice of the producer, under 
     section 10(1)(e) (i) or (ii). (See example 1 for more detailed         
     explanations of these provisions.)                                     
        Regardless of whether the automotive component assembly is an       
     originating material or a non-originating material, the value of the   
     automotive component that was imported from outside the territories of 
     the NAFTA countries is included in the value of non-originating        
     materials used in the production of the heavy-duty vehicle. The        
     transmission is a non-originating material, and, for purposes of       
     calculating the regional value content of an automotive component      
     assembly or heavy-duty vehicle that incorporates that transmission, the
     value of the transmission is included in the value of non-originating  
     materials used in the production of the automotive component assembly  
     or heavy-duty vehicle that incorporates it.                            
    Example 5: A material is imported from outside the territories of the   
     NAFTA countries                                                        
        An aluminum ingot, produced outside the territories of the NAFTA    
     countries, is imported into the territory of a NAFTA country and used  
     in that country in the production of cast block that will be used in an
     engine that will be used as original equipment in the production of a  
     heavy-duty vehicle. The aluminum ingot is not a listed material; the   
     cast block is a listed material; the engine is an automotive component.
        Situation 1: Use of the material in an intermediate material that is
     a listed material                                                      
        The engine producer designates the cast block as an intermediate    
     material under section 7(4). For purposes of determining the origin of 
     that cast block, because the aluminum ingot is classified under a      
     different heading than the cast block, the cast block satisfies the    
     applicable change in tariff classification and is an originating       
     material.                                                              
        Situation 2: Use of the listed material incorporating the material  
        For purposes of calculating the regional value content of the engine
     that incorporates that cast block (and thus incorporates the aluminum  
     ingot), the value of non-originating materials is determined under     
     section 10(1). Because none of sections 10(1) (a) through (f) require  
     that a listed material that is an originating material be included in  
     the value of non-originating materials used in the production of a     
     good, the value of the cast block is not included in the value of non- 
     originating materials used in the production of the engine or in the   
     value of non-originating materials used in the production of an        
     automotive component assembly or heavy-duty vehicle that incorporates  
     the engine.                                                            
        Because section 10(1)(d) does not refer to a listed material that is
     an originating material, the value of the non-originating aluminum     
     ingot used in the production of the originating cast block is not      
     included in the value of non-originating materials used in the         
     production of any good or material that incorporates the originating   
     cast block.                                                            
    Example 6: A non-originating listed material is used to produce a sub-  
     component that is used to produce another sub-component                
        A crankshaft, produced in the territory of NAFTA country A from a   
     forging imported from outside the territories of the NAFTA countries,  
     is a non-originating material. The crankshaft is sold to another       
     producer, located in the same country, who uses it to produce an       
     originating block assembly. That block assembly is sold to another     
     producer, also located in the same country, who uses it to produce a   
     finished block. The finished block is sold to a producer of engines,   
     who is located in NAFTA country B, for use in the production of a heavy-
     duty vehicle. The crankshaft is a listed material; the block assembly  
     is a sub-component, as is the finished block.                          
        Situation 1: Calculating the regional value content of the finished 
     block                                                                  
        A sub-component is not a heavy-duty automotive good. As referred to 
     in section 10(9)(c), for purposes of calculating the regional value    
     content of the sub-component before it is incorporated into a heavy-   
     duty automotive good, such as when the sub-component is exported from  
     the territory of one NAFTA country to the territory of another NAFTA   
     country, the value of non-originating materials of the sub-component   
     includes only the value of non-originating materials used in the       
     production of that sub-component. Because the block assembly is an     
     originating material, its value is not included in the value of non-   
     originating materials of the finished block, nor is the value of the   
     non-originating crankshaft included in the value of non-originating    
     materials used in the production of the finished block because the     
     crankshaft was used in the production of the block assembly and was not
     used in the production of the finished block.                          
        Situation 2: Calculating the regional value content of the component
     that incorporates the finished block                                   
        For purposes of calculating the regional value content of the heavy-
     duty vehicle that incorporates a sub-component, the value of non-      
     originating materials used in the production of the sub-component is   
     determined under section 10(1) (d) or (e) with respect to that sub-    
     component. In this situation, the value, under section 10(1)(b), of the
     non-originating crankshaft is included in the value of non-originating 
     materials used in the production of the engine. (See examples 1 and 2  
     for more detailed explanations of sections 10(1) (d) and (e).)         
    Example 7: A non-listed material is imported from outside the           
     territories of the NAFTA countries and is used in the production of    
     another non-listed material                                            
        A bumper part, produced outside the territories of the NAFTA        
     countries, is imported into the territory of a NAFTA country and is    
     used in the production of a bumper. The bumper is used in the territory
     of a NAFTA country as original equipment in the production of a heavy- 
     duty vehicle. Neither a bumper part nor a bumper is a listed material, 
     sub-component, automotive component or automotive component assembly.  
        Situation 1: The non-listed material is an originating material     
        The bumper is an originating material. For purposes of calculating  
     the regional value content of the heavy-duty vehicle, neither the value
     of the imported bumper part nor the value of the bumper is included in 
     the value of the non-originating materials.                            
        Situation 2: The non-listed material is a non-originating material  
        The bumper is a non-originating material. For purposes of           
     calculating the regional value content of the heavy-duty vehicle, the  
     value of non-originating materials used in the production of the heavy-
     duty vehicle is determined under section 10(1)(f) with respect to the  
     bumper. In this situation, the value of the bumper is included in the  
     value of non-originating materials of the heavy-duty vehicle. Because a
     bumper is not a listed material, the producer of the heavy-duty vehicle
     does not have the option, under section 10(1)(b)(ii), to include only  
     the value of the imported bumper part in the value of non-originating  
     materials used in the production of the heavy-duty vehicle.            
    Example 8:                                                              
    
    [[Page 46425]]
                                                                            
        Situation: Transhipment of a listed material                        
        A producer, located in the territory of a NAFTA country, produces,  
     in that country, a cast head that is an originating good. The producer 
     exports the cast head to outside the territories of the NAFTA          
     territories, where valves, springs, valve lifters, a camshaft and gears
     are added to it to create a cast head assembly. An engine producer,    
     located in the territory of a NAFTA country, imports the cast head     
     assembly into that country and uses it in the production of an engine  
     that will be used as original equipment in the production of a heavy-  
     duty vehicle. A cast head is a listed material; a cast head assembly is
     a sub-component.                                                       
        For purposes of calculating the regional value content of the       
     engine, the value of the imported cast head assembly is included in the
     value of non-originating materials under section 10(1)(c). The value of
     the cast head cannot be deducted from the value determined under       
     section 10(1)(c). Although the cast head was once an originating good, 
     under section 18 when further production was performed with respect to 
     the cast head outside the territories of the NAFTA countries, it was no
     longer an originating good.                                            
    Example 9: A material is imported from outside the territories of the   
     NAFTA countries and a heavy-duty vehicle producer self-produces a non- 
     originating listed material                                            
        A material, produced outside the territories of the NAFTA countries,
     is imported into the territory of a NAFTA country and used in that     
     country in the production of a water pump that will be used as original
     equipment by the same producer in the production of a heavy-duty       
     vehicle. Although the producer, under section 7(4), designates the     
     water pump as an intermediate material it is a non-originating material
     because it fails to satisfy the regional value-content requirement. A  
     water pump is a listed material.                                       
        For purposes of calculating the regional value content of the heavy-
     duty vehicle, the value of non-originating materials includes, at the  
     choice of the producer, either the total cost, determined under section
     10(1)(a)(i), of the water pump or the value, determined under section  
     10(1)(a)(iii)(A), of the material imported from outside the territories
     of the NAFTA countries.                                                
    Example 10: A material is acquired and used to produce a non-originating
     listed material                                                        
        A material, produced outside the territories of the NAFTA countries,
     is acquired in the territory of a NAFTA country and is used in that    
     country in the production of a water pump that will be used as original
     equipment in the production of a heavy-duty vehicle. The producer of   
     the water pump and the producer of the heavy-duty vehicle are separate,
     unrelated producers, located in the same country. A water pump is a    
     listed material. The producer of the water pump chose to calculate the 
     regional value content of the water pump in accordance with section    
     12(1) over a period set out in section 12(5)(a) and using a category   
     set out in section 12(4)(b). The water pump is a non-originating       
     material because it fails to satisfy the regional value-content        
     requirement.                                                           
        For purposes of calculating the regional value content of the heavy-
     duty vehicle, the value of non-originating materials includes, at the  
     choice of the producer, either the value, determined under section     
     10(1)(b)(i), of the water pump or, if the producer has a statement     
     referred to in section 10(1)(b)(ii)(B), the value, determined under    
     that section, of the material imported from outside the territories of 
     the NAFTA countries.                                                   
        The producer has a statement referred to in section 10(1)(b)(ii)(B) 
     and chooses to use the value of non-originating material determined    
     under that section. The statement states, as is permitted under section
     10(8), the value of non-originating material used in the production of 
     the water pump in accordance with section 12(3) over a period set out  
     in section 12(5)(a) and using a category set out in section 12(4)(e).  
                                                                            
    
    
    
    
                       SECTION 11. MOTOR VEHICLE AVERAGING                  
      NC and VNM for motor vehicles may be averaged over producer's fiscal  
                                      year                                  
                                                                            
    (1) For purposes of calculating the regional value content of light-duty
     vehicles or heavy-duty vehicles, the producer of those motor vehicles  
     may choose that                                                        
      (a) the sum of the net costs incurred and the sum of the values of non-
       originating materials used by the producer be calculated over the    
       producer's fiscal year with respect to the motor vehicles that are in
       any one of the categories set out in subsection (5) that is chosen by
       the producer; and                                                    
      (b) the sums referred to in paragraph (a) be used in the calculation  
       referred to in section 6(3) as the net cost and the value of non-    
       originating materials, respectively.                                 
                                                                            
    Information required when producer chooses to average for motor vehicles
                                                                            
    (2) A choice made under subsection (1) shall                            
      (a) state the category chosen by the producer, and                    
        (i) where the category referred to in subsection (5)(a) is chosen,  
         state the model line, model name, class of motor vehicle and tariff
         classification of the motor vehicles in that category, and the     
         location of the plant at which the motor vehicles are produced,    
        (ii) where the category referred to in subsection (5)(b) is chosen, 
         state the model name, class of motor vehicle and tariff            
         classification of the motor vehicles in that category, and the     
         location of the plant at which the motor vehicles are produced, and
        (iii) where the category referred to in subsection (5)(c) is chosen,
         state the model line, model name, class of motor vehicle and tariff
         classification of the motor vehicles in that category, and the     
         locations of the plants at which the motor vehicles are produced;  
      (b) state the basis of the calculation described in subsection (9);   
      (c) state the producer's name and address;                            
      (d) state the period with respect to which the choice is made,        
       including the starting and ending dates;                             
      (e) state the estimated regional value content of motor vehicles in   
       the category on the basis stated under paragraph (b);                
      (f) be dated and signed by an authorized officer of the producer; and 
      (g) be filed with the customs administration of each NAFTA country to 
       which vehicles in that category are to be exported during the period 
       covered by the choice, at least 10 days before the first day of the  
       producer's fiscal year, or such shorter period as that customs       
       administration may accept.                                           
                                                                            
    
    [[Page 46426]]
                                                                            
                                Averaging period                            
                                                                            
    (3) Where the fiscal year of a producer begins after the date of the    
     entry into force of the Agreement but before one year after that date, 
     the producer may choose that the calculation of regional value content 
     referred to in subsection (1) or (6) be made under that subsection over
     the period beginning on the date of the entry into force of the        
     Agreement and ending at the end of that fiscal year, in which case the 
     choice shall be filed with the customs administration of each NAFTA    
     country to which vehicles are to be exported during the period covered 
     by the choice not later than 10 days after the entry into force of the 
     Agreement, or such longer period as that customs administration may    
     accept.                                                                
    (4) Where the fiscal year of a producer begins on the date of the entry 
     into force of the Agreement, the producer may make the choice referred 
     to in subsection (1) not later than 10 days after the entry into force 
     of the Agreement, or such longer period as the customs administration  
     referred to in subsection (2)(g) may accept.                           
                                                                            
                   Categories of motor vehicles for averaging               
                                                                            
    (5) The categories referred to in subsection (1) are the following:     
      (a) the same model line of motor vehicles in the same class of motor  
       vehicles produced in the same plant in the territory of a NAFTA      
       country;                                                             
      (b) the same class of motor vehicles produced in the same plant in the
       territory of a NAFTA country; and                                    
      (c) the same model line of motor vehicles produced in the territory of
       a NAFTA country.                                                     
    (6) Where applicable, a producer may choose that the calculation of the 
     regional value content of motor vehicles referred to in Schedule VI be 
     made in accordance with that schedule.                                 
                                                                            
                       Timely filing of choice to average                   
                                                                            
    (7) Subject to section 5(4) of Schedule VI, the choice referred to in   
     subsection (6) shall be filed with the customs administration of the   
     NAFTA country to which vehicles referred to in that schedule are to be 
     exported, at least 10 days before the first day of the producer's      
     fiscal year with respect to which that choice is to apply or such      
     shorter period as the customs administration may accept.               
                                                                            
                      Choice to average cannot be rescinded                 
                                                                            
    (8) A choice filed for the period referred to in subsection (1) or (3)  
     may not be                                                             
      (a) rescinded; or                                                     
      (b) modified with respect to the category or basis of calculation.    
                                                                            
    Averaged net cost and VNM included in calculation of RVC on the basis of
      producer's option to include all vehicles of category or only certain 
                          exported vehicles of category                     
                                                                            
    (9) For purposes of this section, where a producer files a choice under 
     subsection (1), (3) or (4), including a choice referred to in section  
     13(9), the net cost incurred and the values of non-originating         
     materials used by the producer, with respect to                        
      (a) all motor vehicles that fall within the category chosen by the    
       producer and that are produced during the fiscal year or, in the case
       of a choice filed under subsection (3), during the period with       
       respect to which the choice is made, or                              
      (b) those motor vehicles to be exported to the territory of one or    
       more of the NAFTA countries that fall within the category chosen by  
       the producer and that are produced during the fiscal year or, in the 
       case of a choice filed under subsection (3), during the period with  
       respect to which the choice is made,                                 
    shall be included in the calculation of the regional value content under
     any of the categories set out in subsection (5).                       
                                                                            
        Year-end analysis required if averaging based on estimated costs;   
                    obligation to notify of change in status                
                                                                            
    (10) Where the producer of a motor vehicle has calculated the regional  
     value content of the motor vehicle on the basis of estimated costs,    
     including standard costs, budgeted forecasts or other similar          
     estimating procedures, before or during the producer's fiscal year, the
     producer shall conduct an analysis at the end of the producer's fiscal 
     year of the actual costs incurred over the period with respect to the  
     production of the motor vehicle, and, if the motor vehicle does not    
     satisfy the regional value content requirement on the basis of the     
     actual costs, immediately inform any person to whom the producer has   
     provided a Certificate of Origin for the motor vehicle, or a written   
     statement that the motor vehicle is an originating good, that the motor
     vehicle is a non-originating good.                                     
    (11) The following example is an ``Example'' as referred to in section  
     2(4).                                                                  
                                                                            
    
    
    
    
    
    Example:                                                                
        A motor vehicle producer located in NAFTA country A produces        
     vehicles that fall within a category set out in section 11(5) that is  
     chosen by the producer. The motor vehicles are to be sold in NAFTA     
     countries A, B and C, as well as in country D, which is not a NAFTA    
     country. Under section 11(1), the motor vehicle producer may choose    
     that the sum of the net costs incurred and the sum of the values of non-
     originating materials used by the producer be calculated over the      
     producer's fiscal year. The producer may state in the choice the basis 
     of the calculation as described in section 11(9)(a), in which case the 
     calculation would be on the basis of all the motor vehicles produced   
     regardless of where they are destined. Alternatively, the producer may 
     state in the choice the basis of the calculation as described in       
     section 11(9)(b). In this case, the producer would also need to state  
     that the calculation is on the basis of                                
      (a) the motor vehicles produced that are for export to NAFTA countries
       B and C;                                                             
      (b) the motor vehicles produced that are for export to only NAFTA     
       country B; or                                                        
      (c) the motor vehicles produced that are for export to only NAFTA     
       country C.                                                           
        The calculation would be on the basis as described in the choice.   
                                                                            
    
    
                                                                            
                     SECTION 12. AUTOMOTIVE PARTS AVERAGING                 
       NC and VNM for automotive parts may be averaged to determine RVC of  
                                      parts                                 
                                                                            
    (1) The regional value content of any or all goods that are of the same 
     tariff provision listed in Schedule IV, or an automotive component     
     assembly, an automotive component, a sub-component or a listed         
     material, produced in the same plant, may, where the producer of those 
     goods chooses to do so, be calculated by                               
    
    [[Page 46427]]
                                                                            
      (a) calculating the sum of the net costs incurred and the sum of the  
       values of non-originating materials used by the producer of the goods
       over the period set out in subsection (5) that is chosen by the      
       producer with respect to any or all of those goods in any one of the 
       categories set out in subsection (4) that is chosen by the producer; 
       and                                                                  
      (b) using the sums referred to in paragraph (a) in the calculation    
       referred to in section 6(3) as the net cost and the value of non-    
       originating materials, respectively.                                 
    (2) The calculation of the regional value content made under subsection 
     (1) shall apply with respect to each unit of the goods in the category 
     set out in subsection (4) that is chosen by the producer and produced  
     during the period chosen by the producer under subsection (5).         
                                                                            
        VNM for each unit in a category of goods for which averaging used   
                                                                            
    (3) The value of non-originating materials of each unit of the goods    
      (a) in the category set out in subsection (4) chosen by the producer, 
       and                                                                  
      (b) produced during the period chosen by the producer under subsection
       (5),                                                                 
    shall be the sum of the values of non-originating materials referred to 
     in subsection (1)(a) divided by the number of units of the goods in    
     that category and produced during that period.                         
                                                                            
                  Categories of automotive parts for averaging              
                                                                            
    (4) The categories referred to in subsection (1)(a) are the following:  
      (a) original equipment for use in the production of light- duty       
       vehicles;                                                            
      (b) original equipment for use in the production of heavy-duty        
       vehicles;                                                            
      (c) after-market parts;                                               
      (d) any combination of goods referred to in paragraphs (a) through    
       (c);                                                                 
      (e) goods that are in a category set out in any of paragraphs (a)     
       through (d) and are sold to one or more motor vehicle producers; and 
      (f) goods that are in a category set out in any of paragraphs (a)     
       through (e) and are exported to the territory of one or more of the  
       NAFTA countries.                                                     
                                                                            
                 Periods for averaging RVC for automotive parts             
                                                                            
    (5) The period referred to in subsection (1)(a) is,                     
      (a) with respect to goods referred to in subsection (4) (a), (b) or   
       (d), or subsection (4) (e) or (f) where the goods in that category   
       are in a category referred to in subsection (4) (a) or (b), any      
       month, any consecutive three month period that is evenly divisible   
       into the number of months of the producer's fiscal year remaining at 
       the beginning of that period or the fiscal year of the motor vehicle 
       producer to whom those goods are sold; and                           
      (b) with respect to goods referred to in subsection (4)(c), or        
       subsection (4) (e) or (f) where the goods in that category are in a  
       category referred to in subsection (4)(c), any month, any consecutive
       three month period that is evenly divisible into the number of months
       of the producer's fiscal year remaining at the beginning of that     
       period, the fiscal year of that producer or the fiscal year of the   
       motor vehicle producer to whom those goods are sold.                 
                                                                            
                     Choice to average may not be rescinded                 
                                                                            
    (6) A choice made under subsection (1) may not be rescinded or modified 
     with respect to the goods or the period with respect to which the      
     choice is made.                                                        
    (7) Where a producer of goods chooses a one or three month period under 
     subsection (5) with respect to the goods referred to in subsection     
     (5)(a), that producer shall be considered to have chosen under that    
     subsection a period or periods of the same duration for                
      (a) the remainder of the fiscal year of the motor vehicle producer to 
       whom those goods are sold, where the producer chooses under          
       subsection (9)(a) the fiscal year of that motor vehicle producer; and
      (b) the remainder of the fiscal year of the producer of those goods,  
       where the producer does not choose under subsection (9)(a) the fiscal
       year of the motor vehicle producer to whom the goods are sold.       
    (8) Where a producer of goods chooses a one or three month period under 
     subsection (5) with respect to the goods referred to in subsection     
     (5)(b), that producer shall be considered to have chosen under that    
     subsection a period or periods of the same duration for the remainder  
     of, at the choice of the producer, the producer's fiscal year or the   
     fiscal year of the motor vehicle producer to whom those goods are sold.
    (9) Where a producer of goods chooses a one or three month period under 
     subsection (5) with respect to the goods, the producer may,            
      (a) with respect to goods referred to in subsection (5)(a), at the end
       of the fiscal year of the motor vehicle producer to whom those goods 
       are sold, choose the fiscal year of that motor vehicle producer; and 
      (b) with respect to goods referred to in subsection (5)(b), at the end
       of the producer's fiscal year or the fiscal year of the motor vehicle
       producer to whom those goods are sold, as the case may be, choose the
       producer's fiscal year or the fiscal year of that motor vehicle      
       producer.                                                            
                                                                            
         Applicable method for averaging VNM under different categories     
                                                                            
    (10) Where a producer chooses that the regional value content of goods  
     be calculated in accordance with subsection (1) and the goods are in   
     any of the categories set out in subsections (4) (d) through (f), the  
     value of non-originating materials                                     
      (a) shall be determined in the manner set out in section 9, where any 
       of those goods are light-duty automotive goods;                      
      (b) shall be determined in the manner set out in section 10, where any
       of those goods are heavy-duty automotive goods but none of the goods 
       are light-duty automotive goods; and                                 
      (c) shall be determined in the manner set out in section 7, where none
       of those goods are light-duty automotive goods or heavy-duty         
       automotive goods.                                                    
                                                                            
     
    [[Page 46428]]
                                                                            
        Year-end analysis required if averaging based on estimated costs;   
                    obligation to notify of change in status                
                                                                            
    (11) Where the producer of a good has calculated the regional value     
     content of the good on the basis of estimated costs, including standard
     costs, budgeted forecasts or other similar estimating procedures,      
     before or during the period chosen under subsection (1), the producer  
     shall conduct an analysis, at the end of the producer's fiscal year    
     following the end of that period, of the actual costs incurred over the
     period with respect to the production of the good and, if the good does
     not satisfy the regional value content requirement on the basis of the 
     actual costs during that period, immediately inform any person to whom 
     the producer has provided a Certificate of Origin for the good, or a   
     written statement that the good is an originating good, that the good  
     is a non-originating good.                                             
                                                                            
             SECTION 13. SPECIAL REGIONAL VALUE-CONTENT REQUIREMENTS        
          Changes in regional value content level for automotive goods      
                                                                            
    (1) Notwithstanding the regional value-content requirement set out in   
     Schedule I, and except as otherwise provided in subsection (2), the    
     regional value-content requirement for a good referred to in paragraph 
     (a) or (b) is as follows:                                              
      (a) for the fiscal year of a producer that begins on the day closest  
       to January 1, 1998 and for the three following fiscal years of that  
       producer, not less than 56 percent, and for the fiscal year of a     
       producer that begins on the day closest to January 1, 2002 and       
       thereafter, not less than 62.5 percent, in the case of               
        (i) a light-duty vehicle, and                                       
        (ii) a good provided for in any of headings 8407 and 8408 and       
         subheading 8708.40, that is for use in a light-duty vehicle; and   
      (b) for the fiscal year of a producer that begins on the day closest  
       to January 1, 1998 and for the three following fiscal years of that  
       producer, not less than 55 percent, and for the fiscal year of a     
       producer that begins on the day closest to January 1, 2002 and       
       thereafter, not less than 60 percent, in the case of                 
        (i) a heavy-duty vehicle,                                           
        (ii) a good provided for in any of headings 8407 and 8408 and       
         subheading 8708.40 that is for use in a heavy-duty vehicle, and    
        (iii) except in the case of a good referred to in paragraph (a)(ii) 
         or provided for in any of subheadings 8482.10 through 8482.80,     
         8483.20 and 8483.30, a good of a tariff provision listed in        
         Schedule IV that is subject to a regional value-content requirement
         and is for use in a light-duty vehicle or a heavy-duty vehicle.    
                                                                            
     Regional value content level for motor vehicles produced in a new plant
                               or in a refit plant                          
                                                                            
    (2) Notwithstanding the regional value-content requirement set out in   
     Schedule I, the regional value-content requirement for a light-duty    
     vehicle or a heavy-duty vehicle that is produced in a plant is as      
     follows:                                                               
      (a) not less than 50 percent for five years after the date on which   
       the first prototype of the motor vehicle is produced in the plant by 
       a motor vehicle assembler, if                                        
        (i) the motor vehicle is of a class, marque or, except in the case  
         of a heavy-duty vehicle, size category and type of underbody, that 
         was not previously produced by the motor vehicle assembler in the  
         territory of any of the NAFTA countries,                           
        (ii) the plant consists of, or includes, a new building in which the
         motor vehicle is assembled, and                                    
        (iii) the value of machinery that was never previously used for     
         production, and that is used in the new building or buildings for  
         the purposes of the complete motor vehicle assembly process with   
         respect to that motor vehicle, is at least 90 percent of the value 
         of all machinery used for purposes of that process; and            
      (b) not less than 50 percent for two years after the date on which the
       first prototype of the motor vehicle is produced in the plant by a   
       motor vehicle assembler following a refit of that plant, if the motor
       vehicle is of a class, marque or, except in the case of a heavy-duty 
       vehicle, size category and type of underbody, that was not assembled 
       by the motor vehicle assembler in the plant before the refit.        
                                                                            
                        Value of machinery in a new plant                   
                                                                            
    (3) For purposes of subsection (2)(a)(iii), the value of machinery shall
     be                                                                     
      (a) where the machinery was acquired by the producer of the motor     
       vehicle from another person, the cost of that machinery that is      
       recorded on the books of the producer;                               
      (b) where the machinery was used previously by the producer of the    
       motor vehicle in the production of another good, the cost of the     
       machinery that is recorded on the books of the producer minus        
       accumulated depreciation of that machinery that is recorded on those 
       books; and                                                           
      (c) where the machinery was produced by the producer of the good, the 
       total cost incurred with respect to that machinery, calculated on the
       basis of the costs that are recorded on the books of the producer.   
                                                                            
      Averaging period for calculation of RVC for vehicles of new plant or  
                                   refit plant                              
                                                                            
    (4) For purposes of calculating the regional value content of a motor   
     vehicle referred to in subsection (2) that is in any one of the        
     categories set out in subsection (7) that is chosen by the producer,   
     the producer may file with the customs administration of the NAFTA     
     country into the territory of which vehicles in that category are to be
     imported a choice to calculate the regional value content of such      
     vehicles by                                                            
      (a) calculating the sum of the net costs incurred and the sum of the  
       values of non-originating materials used by the producer with respect
       to all of such motor vehicles in the category chosen over            
        (i) the period beginning on the day on which the first prototype of 
         the motor vehicle is produced and ending on the last day of the    
         producer's first fiscal year that begins on or after the beginning 
         of the period,                                                     
        (ii) a fiscal year of the producer that starts after the period     
         referred to in subparagraph (i) and ends on or before the end of   
         the period referred to in subsection (2)(a) or (b), or             
        (iii) the period beginning on the first day of the producer's fiscal
         year that begins before the end of the period referred to in       
         subsection (2)(a) or (b) and ending at the end of that period; and 
    
    [[Page 46429]]
                                                                            
      (b) using the sums referred to in paragraph (a) in the calculation    
       referred to in section 6(3) as the net cost and the value of non-    
       originating materials, respectively.                                 
                                                                            
     Information required on document filed when choosing to average; timely
                                     filing;                                
                                                                            
    (5) A choice made under subsection (4) shall                            
      (a) state the category chosen by the producer and                     
        (i) where the category referred to in subsection (7)(a) is chosen,  
         the model name, model line, class of motor vehicle and tariff      
         classification of the motor vehicles in that category, and the     
         location of the plant at which the motor vehicles are produced, and
        (ii) where the category referred to in subsection (7)(b) is chosen, 
         state the model name, class of motor vehicle and tariff            
         classification of the motor vehicles in that category, and the     
         plant location at which the motor vehicles are produced;           
      (b) state the basis of the calculation described in subsection (8);   
      (c) state the producer's name and address;                            
      (d) state the period with respect to which the choice is made,        
       including the starting and ending dates;                             
      (e) state the estimated regional value content of motor vehicles in   
       the category on the basis stated under paragraph (b);                
      (f) state whether the choice is with respect to a motor vehicle       
       referred to in subsection (2)(a) or (b);                             
      (g) be dated and signed by an authorized officer of the producer; and 
      (h) be filed with the customs administration of each NAFTA country to 
       which vehicles in that category are to be exported during the period 
       covered by the choice, at least 10 days before the first day of the  
       producer's fiscal year, or such shorter period as that customs       
       administration may accept.                                           
                                                                            
                     No rescission or modification permitted                
                                                                            
    (6) A choice filed for the period referred to in subsection (4) may not 
     be                                                                     
      (a) rescinded; or                                                     
      (b) modified with respect to the category or basis of calculation.    
                                                                            
                   Categories of motor vehicles for averaging               
                                                                            
    (7) The categories referred to in subsection (4) are the following:     
      (a) the same model line of motor vehicles in the same class of motor  
       vehicles produced in the same plant in the territory of a NAFTA      
       country; and                                                         
      (b) the same class of motor vehicles produced in the same plant in the
       territory of a NAFTA country.                                        
    (8) For purposes of subsection (4), the net cost incurred and the values
     of non-originating materials used by the producer, with respect to     
      (a) all motor vehicles that fall within the category chosen by the    
       producer and that are produced during the period with respect to     
       which the choice is made, or                                         
      (b) those motor vehicles to be exported to the territory of one or    
       more of the NAFTA countries that fall within the category chosen by  
       the producer and that are produced during the period with respect to 
       which the choice is made,                                            
    shall be included in the calculation of the regional value content under
     any of the categories set out in subsection (7).                       
                                                                            
        Period for averaging RVC of motor vehicles of new or refit plant    
                                                                            
    (9) Where the period referred to in subsection (4) ends on a day other  
     than the last day of the producer's fiscal year, the producer may, for 
     purposes of section 11, make the choice referred to in that section    
     with respect to                                                        
      (a) the period beginning on the day following the end of that period  
       and ending on the last day of that fiscal year; or                   
      (b) the period beginning on the day following the end of that period  
       and ending on the last day of the following full fiscal year.        
                                                                            
        Year-end analysis required if averaging based on estimated costs;   
                    obligation to notify of change in status                
                                                                            
    (10) Where the producer of a motor vehicle has calculated the regional  
     value content of the motor vehicle on the basis of estimated costs,    
     including standard costs, budgeted forecasts or other similar          
     estimating procedures, before or during the producer's fiscal year, the
     producer shall conduct an analysis at the end of the producer's fiscal 
     year of the actual costs incurred over the period with respect to the  
     production of the motor vehicle, and, if the motor vehicle does not    
     satisfy the regional value-content requirement on the basis of the     
     actual costs, immediately inform any person to whom the producer has   
     provided a Certificate of Origin for the motor vehicle, or a written   
     statement that the motor vehicle is an originating good, that the motor
     vehicle is a non-originating good.                                     
                                                                            
                                     PART VI                                
                               GENERAL PROVISIONS                           
                            SECTION 14. ACCUMULATION                        
     Option to determine origin of good by accumulating the production of a 
       material with production of the good in which the material is used   
                                                                            
    (1) Subject to subsections (2) and (4), for purposes of determining     
     whether a good is an originating good, an exporter or producer of a    
     good may choose to accumulate the production, by one or more producers 
     in the territory of one or more of the NAFTA countries, of materials   
     that are incorporated into that good so that the production of the     
     materials shall be considered to have been performed by that exporter  
     or producer.                                                           
                                                                            
        Statement required; information as to net cost and value of non-    
      originating materials from production of material if accumulating for 
                       regional value content requirement                   
                                                                            
    (2) Where a good is subject to a regional value-content requirement and 
     an exporter or producer of the good has a statement signed by a        
     producer of a material that is used in the production of the good that 
    
    [[Page 46430]]
                                                                            
      (a) states the net cost incurred and the value of non-originating     
       materials used by the producer of the material in the production of  
       that material,                                                       
        (i) the net cost incurred by the producer of the good with respect  
         to the material shall be the net cost incurred by the producer of  
         the material plus, where not included in the net cost incurred by  
         the producer of the material, the costs referred to in sections    
         7(1)(c) through (e), and                                           
        (ii) the value of non-originating materials used by the producer of 
         the good with respect to the material shall be the value of non-   
         originating materials used by the producer of the material; or     
      (b) states any amount, other than an amount that includes any of the  
       value of non-originating materials, that is part of the net cost     
       incurred by the producer of the material in the production of that   
       material,                                                            
        (i) the net cost incurred by the producer of the good with respect  
         to the material shall be the value of the material, determined in  
         accordance with section 7(1), and                                  
        (ii) the value of non-originating materials used by the producer of 
         the good with respect to the material shall be the value of the    
         material, determined in accordance with section 7(1), minus the    
         amount stated in the statement.                                    
                                                                            
                 Averaging of costs from accumulated production             
                                                                            
    (3) Where a good is subject to a regional value-content requirement and 
     an exporter or producer of the good does not have a statement described
     in subsection (2) but has a statement signed by a producer of a        
     material that is used in the production of the good that               
      (a) states the sum of the net costs incurred and the sum of the values
       of non-originating materials used by the producer of the material in 
       the production of that material and identical materials or similar   
       materials, or any combination thereof, produced in a single plant by 
       the producer of the material over a month or any consecutive three,  
       six or twelve month period that falls within the fiscal year of the  
       producer of the good, divided by the number of units of materials    
       with respect to which the statement is made,                         
        (i) the net cost incurred by the producer of the good with respect  
         to the material shall be the sum of the net costs incurred by the  
         producer of the material with respect to that material and the     
         identical materials or similar materials, divided by the number of 
         units of materials with respect to which the statement is made,    
         plus, where not included in the net costs incurred by the producer 
         of the material, the costs referred to in sections 7(1) (c) through
         (e), and                                                           
        (ii) the value of non-originating materials used by the producer of 
         the good with respect to the material shall be the sum of the      
         values of non-originating materials used by the producer of the    
         material with respect to that material and the identical materials 
         or similar materials divided by the number of units of materials   
         with respect to which the statement is made; or                    
      (b) states any amount, other than an amount that includes any of the  
       values of non-originating materials, that is part of the sum of the  
       net costs incurred by the producer of the material in the production 
       of that material and identical materials or similar materials, or any
       combination thereof, produced in a single plant by the producer of   
       the material over a month or any consecutive three, six or twelve    
       month period that falls within the fiscal year of the producer of the
       good, divided by the number of units of materials with respect to    
       which the statement is made,                                         
        (i) the net cost incurred by the producer of the good with respect  
         to the material shall be the value of the material, determined in  
         accordance with section 7(1), and                                  
        (ii) the value of non-originating materials used by the producer of 
         the good with respect to the material shall be the value of the    
         material, determined in accordance with section 7(1), minus the    
         amount stated in the statement.                                    
                                                                            
     Accumulated production considered to be production of a single producer
                                                                            
    (4) For purposes of section 7(4), where a producer of the good chooses  
     to accumulate the production of materials under subsection (1), that   
     production shall be considered to be the production of the producer of 
     the good.                                                              
    (5) For purposes of this section,                                       
      (a) in order to accumulate the production of a material,              
        (i) where the good is subject to a regional value-content           
         requirement, the producer of the good must have a statement        
         described in subsection (2) or (3) that is signed by the producer  
         of the material, and                                               
        (ii) where an applicable change in tariff classification is applied 
         to determine whether the good is an originating good, the producer 
         of the good must have a statement signed by the producer of the    
         material that states the tariff classification of all non-         
         originating materials used by that producer in the production of   
         that material and that the production of the material took place   
         entirely in the territory of one or more of the NAFTA countries;   
      (b) a producer of a good who chooses to accumulate is not required to 
       accumulate the production of all materials that are incorporated into
       the good; and                                                        
      (c) any information set out in a statement referred to in subsection  
       (2) or (3) that concerns the value of materials or costs shall be in 
       the same currency as the currency of the country in which the person 
       who provided the statement is located.                               
                                                                            
                     Examples of accumulation of production                 
                                                                            
    (6) Each of the following examples is an ``Example'' as referred to in  
     section 2(4).                                                          
                                                                            
                                                                            
    
    
    
    Example 1: section 14(1)                                                
        Producer A, located in NAFTA country A, imports unfinished bearing  
     rings provided for in subheading 8482.99 into NAFTA country A from a   
     non-NAFTA territory. Producer A further processes the unfinished       
     bearing rings into finished bearing rings, which are of the same       
     subheading. The finished bearing rings of Producer A do not satisfy an 
     applicable change in tariff classification and therefore do not qualify
     as originating goods. The net cost of the finished bearing rings (per  
     unit) is calculated as follows:                                        
                                                                            
    
    
                                                                            
    
    [[Page 46431]]
                                                                            
                                                                            
    Product costs:                                                          
        Value of originating materials.........................        $0.15
        Value of non-originating materials.....................         0.75
        Other product costs....................................         0.35
    Period costs: (including $0.05 in excluded costs)..........         0.15
    Other costs................................................         0.05
                                                                ------------
    Total cost of the finished bearing rings, per unit.........        $1.45
    Excluded costs: (included in period costs).................         0.05
                                                                ------------
    Net cost of the finished bearing rings, per unit...........        $1.40
    
    
    
    
        Producer A sells the finished bearing rings to Producer B who is    
     located in NAFTA country A for $1.50 each. Producer B further processes
     them into bearings, and intends to export the bearings to NAFTA country
     B. Although the bearings satisfy the applicable change in tariff       
     classification, the bearings are subject to a regional value-content   
     requirement.                                                           
        Situation A:                                                        
        Producer B does not choose to accumulate costs incurred by Producer 
     A with respect to the bearing rings used in the production of the      
     bearings. The net cost of the bearings (per unit) is calculated as     
     follows:                                                               
                                                                            
    
    
    
                                                                            
                                                                            
    Product costs:                                                          
        Value of originating materials.........................        $0.45
        Value of non-originating materials (value, per unit, of             
         the bearing rings purchased from Producer A)..........         1.50
         Other product costs...................................         0.75
    Period costs: (including $0.05 in excluded costs)                   0.15
    Other costs................................................         0.05
                                                                ------------
    Total cost of the bearings, per unit.......................        $2.90
    Excluded costs: (included in period costs).................         0.05
                                                                ------------
    Net cost of the bearings, per unit.........................        $2.85
    
    
    
        Under the net cost method, the regional value content of the        
     bearings is                                                            
                                                                            
                                                                            
    
    
        Therefore, the bearings are non-originating goods.                  
        Situation B:                                                        
        Producer B chooses to accumulate costs incurred by Producer A with  
     respect to the bearing rings used in the production of the bearings.   
     Producer A provides a statement described in section 14(2)(a) to       
     Producer B. The net cost of the bearings (per unit) is calculated as   
     follows:                                                               
                                                                            
    
    
                                                                            
                                                                            
    Product costs:                                                          
        Value of originating materials ($0.45+$0.15)...........        $0.60
        Value of non-originating materials (value, per unit, of             
         the unfinished bearing rings imported by Producer A)..         0.75
        Other product costs ($0.75+$0.35)......................         1.10
    Period costs: (($0.15+$0.15), including $0.10 in excluded               
     costs)....................................................         0.30
    Other costs: ($0.05+$0.05).................................         0.10
                                                                ------------
    Total cost of the bearings, per unit.......................        $2.85
    Excluded costs: (included in period costs).................         0.10
                                                                ------------
    Net cost of the bearings, per unit.........................        $2.75
    
    
    
        Under the net cost method, the regional value content of the        
     bearings is                                                            
                                                                            
                                                                            
    
    RAPHIC>TR06SE95.006
    [[Page 46432]]
    [GRAPHIC][TIFF OMITTED]TR06SE95.007
    
    
    
        Therefore, the bearings are originating goods.                      
        Situation C:                                                        
        Producer B chooses to accumulate costs incurred by Producer A with  
     respect to the bearing rings used in the production of the bearings.   
     Producer A provides to Producer B a statement described in section     
     14(2)(b) that specifies an amount equal to the net cost minus the value
     of non-originating materials used to produce the finished bearing rings
     ($1.40-$0.75 = $0.65). The net cost of the bearings (per unit) is      
     calculated as follows:                                                 
                                                                            
    
    
                                                                            
                                                                            
    Product costs:                                                          
        Value of originating materials ($0.45+$0.65)...........        $1.10
        Value of non-originating materials ($1.50-$0.65).......         0.85
        Other product costs....................................         0.75
    Period costs: (including $0.05 in excluded costs)..........         0.15
    Other costs................................................         0.05
                                                                ------------
    Total cost of the bearings, per unit.......................        $2.90
    Excluded costs: (included in period costs).................         0.05
                                                                ------------
    Net cost of the bearings, per unit.........................        $2.85
    
    
        Under the net cost method, the regional value content of the        
     bearings is                                                            
                                                                            
                                                                            
    
    
        Therefore, the bearings are originating goods.                      
        Situation D:                                                        
        Producer B chooses to accumulate costs incurred by Producer A with  
     respect to the bearing rings used in the production of the bearings.   
     Producer A provides to Producer B a statement described in section     
     14(2)(b) that specifies an amount equal to the value of other product  
     costs used in the production of the finished bearing rings ($0.35). The
     net cost of the bearings (per unit) is calculated as follows:          
                                                                            
                                                                            
    
    
                                                                            
                                                                            
    Product costs:                                                          
        Value of originating materials.........................        $0.45
        Value of non-originating materials ($1.50-$0.35).......         1.15
        Other product costs ($0.75 + $0.35)....................         1.10
    Period costs: (including $0.05 in excluded costs)..........         0.15
    Other costs................................................         0.05
                                                                ------------
    Total cost of the bearings, per unit.......................        $2.90
    Excluded costs: (included in period costs).................         0.05
                                                                ------------
    Net cost of the bearings, per unit.........................        $2.85
    
    
    
        Under the net cost method, the regional value content of the        
     bearings is                                                            
                                                                            
                                                                            
    
    RAPHIC>TR06SE95.008
    [[Page 46433]]
    [GRAPHIC][TIFF OMITTED]TR06SE95.009
    
    
    
        Therefore, the bearings are originating goods.                      
    Example 2: section 14(1)                                                
        Producer A, located in NAFTA country A, imports non-originating     
     cotton, carded or combed, provided for in heading 5203 for use in the  
     production of cotton yarn provided for in heading 5205. Because the    
     change from cotton, carded or combed, to cotton yarn is a change within
     the same chapter, the cotton does not satisfy the applicable change in 
     tariff classification for heading 5205, which is a change from any     
     other chapter, with certain exceptions. Therefore, the cotton yarn that
     Producer A produces from non-originating cotton is a non-originating   
     good.                                                                  
        Producer A then sells the non-originating cotton yarn to Producer B,
     also located in NAFTA country A, who uses the cotton yarn in the       
     production of woven fabric of cotton provided for in heading 5208. The 
     change from non-originating cotton yarn to woven fabric of cotton is   
     insufficient to satisfy the applicable change in tariff classification 
     for heading 5208, which is a change from any heading outside headings  
     5208 through 5212, except from certain headings, under which various   
     yarns, including cotton yarn provided for in heading 5205, are         
     classified. Therefore, the woven fabric of cotton that Producer B      
     produces from non-originating cotton yarn produced by Producer A is a  
     non-originating good.                                                  
        However, under section 14(1), if Producer B chooses to accumulate   
     the production of Producer A, the production of Producer A would be    
     considered to have been performed by Producer B. The rule for heading  
     5208, under which the cotton fabric is classified, does not exclude a  
     change from heading 5203, under which carded or combed cotton is       
     classified. Therefore, under section 15(1), the change from carded or  
     combed cotton provided for in heading 5203 to the woven fabric of      
     cotton provided for in heading 5208 would satisfy the applicable change
     of tariff classification for heading 5208. The woven fabric of cotton  
     would be considered as an originating good.                            
        Producer B, in order to choose to accumulate Producer A's           
     production, must have a statement described in section 14(4)(a)(ii).   
                                                                            
    
    
             SECTION 15. INABILITY TO PROVIDE SUFFICIENT INFORMATION        
      Supplier of material unable to provide information; beyond control of 
                  supplier; procedure to be followed by Customs             
                                                                            
    (1) Where, during a verification of origin of a good, the person from   
     whom a producer of the good acquired a material used in the production 
     of that good is unable to provide the customs administration that is   
     conducting the verification with sufficient information to substantiate
     that the material is an originating material or that the value of the  
     material declared for purpose of calculating the regional value content
     of the good is accurate, and the inability of that person to provide   
     the information is due to reasons beyond the control of that person,   
     the customs administration shall, before making a determination as to  
     the origin or value of the material, consider, where relevant, the     
     following:                                                             
      (a) whether the customs administration of the NAFTA country into the  
       territory of which the good was imported issued an advance ruling    
       under Article 509 of the Agreement, as implemented in each NAFTA     
       country, with respect to that material that concluded that the       
       material is an originating material or that the value of the material
       declared for purposes of calculating the regional value content of   
       the good is accurate;                                                
      (b) whether an independent auditor has confirmed the accuracy of      
        (i) any signed statement referred to in this Appendix with respect  
         to the material,                                                   
        (ii) the information that was used by the person from whom the      
         producer acquired the material to substantiate whether the material
         is an originating material, or                                     
        (iii) the information submitted by the producer of the material with
         an application for an advance ruling where, on the basis of that   
         information, the customs administration concluded that the material
         is an originating material or that the value declared for the      
         purpose of calculating the regional value content of the good is   
         accurate;                                                          
      (c) whether the customs administration has, before the start of the   
       origin verification of the good, conducted a verification of origin  
       of identical materials or similar materials produced by the producer 
       of the material and determined that                                  
        (i) the identical materials or similar materials are originating    
         materials, or                                                      
        (ii) any signed statement referred to in this Appendix with respect 
         to those identical materials or similar materials is accurate;     
      (d) whether the producer of the good has exercised due diligence to   
       ensure that any signed statement that is referred to in this Appendix
       with respect to the material and that was provided by the person from
       whom the producer acquired the material is accurate;                 
      (e) where the customs administration has access only to partial       
       records of the person from whom the producer acquired the material,  
       whether the records provide sufficient evidence to substantiate that 
       the material is an originating material or that the value of the     
       material declared for purposes of calculating the regional value     
       content of the good is accurate;                                     
      (f) whether the customs administration can obtain, subject to Article 
       507 of the Agreement, as implemented in each NAFTA country, by means 
       other than those referred to in paragraphs (a) through (e), relevant 
       information regarding the determination of the origin or value of the
       material from the customs administration of the NAFTA country in the 
       territory of which the person from whom the producer acquired the    
       material was located; and                                            
      (g) whether the producer of the good, the person from whom the        
       producer acquired the material or a representative of that person or 
       producer agrees to bear the expenses incurred in providing the       
       customs administration with the assistance that it may require for   
       determining the origin or value of the material.                     
                                                                            
                     ``Reasons beyond control'' of supplier                 
                                                                            
    (2) For purposes of subsection (1), ``reasons beyond the control'' of   
     the person from whom the producer of the good acquired the material    
     includes                                                               
    
    [[Page 46434]]
                                                                            
      (a) the bankruptcy of the person from whom the producer acquired the  
       material or any other financial distress situation or business       
       reorganization that resulted in that person or a related person      
       having lost control of the records containing the information that   
       substantiate that the material is an originating material or the     
       value of the material declared for the purpose of calculating the    
       regional value content of the good;                                  
      (b) any other reason that results in partial or complete loss of      
       records of that producer that the producer could not reasonably have 
       been expected to foresee, including loss of records due to fire,     
       flooding or other natural cause.                                     
                                                                            
       Exporter or producer of good unable to provide information; reasons  
       beyond control of exporter or producer; procedure to be followed by  
                                     Customs                                
                                                                            
    (3) Where, during a verification of origin of a good, the exporter or   
     producer of the good is unable to provide the customs administration   
     conducting the verification with sufficient information to substantiate
     that the good is an originating good, and the inability of that person 
     to provide the information is due to reasons beyond the control of that
     person, the customs administration shall, before making a determination
     as to the origin of the good, consider, where relevant, the following: 
      (a) whether the customs administration of the NAFTA country into the  
       territory of which the good was imported issued an advance ruling    
       under Article 509 of the Agreement, as implemented in each NAFTA     
       country, with respect to that good that concluded that the good is an
       originating good;                                                    
      (b) whether an independent auditor has confirmed the accuracy of an   
       origin statement with respect to the good;                           
      (c) whether the customs administration has, before the start of the   
       origin verification of the good, conducted a verification of origin  
       of identical goods or similar goods produced by the producer of the  
       good and determined that the identical goods or similar goods are    
       originating goods;                                                   
      (d) whether the exporter or producer of the good has exercised due    
       diligence to ensure that the information provided to substantiate    
       that the good is an originating good is sufficient; and              
      (e) where the customs administration has access only to partial       
       records of the exporter or producer of the good, whether the records 
       provide sufficient evidence to substantiate that the good is an      
       originating good;                                                    
      (f) whether the customs administration can obtain, subject to Article 
       507 of the Agreement, as implemented in each NAFTA country, by means 
       other than those referred to in paragraphs (a) through (e), relevant 
       information regarding the determination of the origin of the good    
       from the customs administration of the NAFTA country in the territory
       of which the exporter or producer of the good was located; and       
      (g) whether the exporter or producer of the good or a representative  
       of that person agrees to bear the expenses incurred in providing the 
       customs administration with the assistance that it may require for   
       determining the origin or value of the good.                         
                                                                            
                           ``Reasons beyond control''                       
                                                                            
    (4) For purposes of subsection (3), ``reasons beyond the control'' of   
     the exporter or producer of the good includes                          
      (a) the bankruptcy of the exporter or producer or any other financial 
       distress situation or business reorganization that resulted in that  
       person or a related person having lost control of the records        
       containing the information that substantiate that the good is an     
       originating good;                                                    
      (b) any other reason that results in partial or complete loss of      
       records of that exporter or producer that that person could not      
       reasonably have been expected to foresee, including loss of records  
       due to fire, flooding or other natural cause.                        
                                                                            
                            SECTION 16. TRANSSHIPMENT                       
        Effect of subsequent processing outside the territory of a NAFTA    
                    country; loss of originating good status                
                                                                            
    (1) A good is not an originating good by reason of having undergone     
     production that occurs entirely in the territory of one or more of the 
     NAFTA countries that would enable the good to qualify as an originating
     good if subsequent to that production                                  
      (a) the good is withdrawn from customs control outside the territories
       of the NAFTA countries; or                                           
      (b) the good undergoes further production or any other operation      
       outside the territories of the NAFTA countries, other than unloading,
       reloading or any other operation necessary to preserve the good in   
       good condition, such as inspection, removal of dust that accumulates 
       during shipment, ventilation, spreading out or drying, chilling,     
       replacing salt, sulphur dioxide or other aqueous solutions, replacing
       damaged packing materials and containers and removal of units of the 
       good that are spoiled or damaged and present a danger to the         
       remaining units of the good, or to transport the good to the         
       territory of a NAFTA country.                                        
                                                                            
             Transshipped good considered entirely non-originating          
                                                                            
    (2) A good that is a non-originating good by application of subsection  
     (1) is considered to be entirely non-originating for purposes of this  
     Appendix.                                                              
                                                                            
                          Exceptions for certain goods                      
                                                                            
    (3) Subsection (1) does not apply with respect to a good provided for in
     any of subheadings 8541.10 through 8541.60 and 8542.11 through 8542.80 
     where any further production or other operation that that good         
     undergoes outside the territories of the NAFTA countries does not      
     result in a change in the tariff classification of the good to a       
     subheading outside subheadings 8541.10 through 8542.90.                
                                                                            
                      SECTION 17. NON-QUALIFYING OPERATIONS                 
         Mere dilution; production or pricing practice to circumvent the    
                           provisions of this Appendix                      
                                                                            
    17. A good is not an originating good merely by reason of               
      (a) mere dilution with water or another substance that does not       
       materially alter the characteristics of the good; or                 
      (b) any production or pricing practice with respect to which it may be
       demonstrated, on the basis of a preponderance of evidence, that the  
       object was to circumvent this Appendix.                              
                                                                            
    
    [[Page 46435]]
                                                                            
                                   SCHEDULE I                               
                                                                            
    Schedule I shall be the text of Annex 401 to the Agreement as           
     implemented in General Note 12 of the HTSUS.                           
                                                                            
                                   SCHEDULE II                              
                                 VALUE OF GOODS                             
                                                                            
    SECTION 1. Definitions.                                                 
        For purposes of this Schedule, unless otherwise stated:             
    ``buyer'' refers to a person who purchases a good from the producer;    
    ``buying commissions'' means fees paid by a buyer to that buyer's agent 
     for the agent's services in representing the buyer in the purchase of a
     good;                                                                  
    ``producer'' refers to the producer of the good being valued.           
    SECTION 2.                                                              
        For purposes of Article 402(2) of the Agreement, as implemented by  
     section 6(2) of this Appendix, the transaction value of a good shall be
     the price actually paid or payable for the good, determined in         
     accordance with section 3 and adjusted in accordance with section 4.   
    SECTION 3.                                                              
    (1) The price actually paid or payable is the total payment made or to  
     be made by the buyer to or for the benefit of the producer. The payment
     need not necessarily take the form of a transfer of money; it may be   
     made by letters of credit or negotiable instruments. The payment may be
     made directly or indirectly to the producer. For an illustration of    
     this, the settlement by the buyer, whether in whole or in part, of a   
     debt owed by the producer is an indirect payment.                      
    (2) Activities undertaken by the buyer on the buyer's own account, other
     than those for which an adjustment is provided in section 4, shall not 
     be considered to be an indirect payment, even though the activities    
     might be regarded as being for the benefit of the producer. For an     
     illustration of this, the buyer, by agreement with the producer,       
     undertakes activities relating to the marketing of the good. The costs 
     of such activities shall not be added to the price actually paid or    
     payable.                                                               
    (3) The transaction value shall not include the following charges or    
     costs, provided that they are distinguished from the price actually    
     paid or payable:                                                       
      (a) charges for construction, erection, assembly, maintenance or      
       technical assistance related to the good undertaken after the good   
       has been sold to the buyer; or                                       
      (b) duties and taxes paid in the country in which the buyer is located
       with respect to the good.                                            
    (4) The flow of dividends or other payments from the buyer to the       
     producer that do not relate to the purchase of the good are not part of
     the transaction value.                                                 
    SECTION 4.                                                              
    (1) In determining the transaction value of a good, the following shall 
     be added to the price actually paid or payable:                        
      (a) to the extent that they are incurred by the buyer, or by a related
       person on behalf of the buyer, with respect to the good being valued 
       and are not included in the price actually paid or payable           
        (i) commissions and brokerage fees, except buying commissions,      
        (ii) the costs of transporting the good to the producer's point of  
         direct shipment and the costs of loading, unloading, handling and  
         insurance that are associated with that transportation, and        
        (iii) where the packaging materials and containers in which the good
         is packaged for retail sale are classified with the good under the 
         Harmonized System, the value of the packaging materials and        
         containers;                                                        
      (b) the value, reasonably allocated in accordance with subsection     
       (12), of the following elements where they are supplied directly or  
       indirectly to the producer by the buyer, free of charge or at reduced
       cost for use in connection with the production and sale of the good, 
       to the extent that the value is not included in the price actually   
       paid or payable:                                                     
        (i) a material, other than an indirect material, used in the        
         production of the good,                                            
        (ii) tools, dies, molds and similar indirect materials used in the  
         production of the good,                                            
        (iii) an indirect material, other than those referred to in         
         subparagraph (ii) or in paragraphs (c), (e) or (f) of the          
         definition ``indirect material'' set out in Article 415 of the     
         Agreement, as implemented by section 2(1) of this Appendix, used in
         the production of the good, and                                    
        (iv) engineering, development, artwork, design work, and plans and  
         sketches necessary for the production of the good, regardless of   
         where performed;                                                   
      (c) the royalties related to the good, other than charges with respect
       to the right to reproduce the good in the territory of one or more of
       the NAFTA countries, that the buyer must pay directly or indirectly  
       as a condition of sale of the good, to the extent that such royalties
       are not included in the price actually paid or payable; and          
      (d) the value of any part of the proceeds of any subsequent resale,   
       disposal or use of the good that accrues directly or indirectly to   
       the producer.                                                        
    (2) The additions referred to in subsection (1) shall be made to the    
     price actually paid or payable under this section only on the basis of 
     objective and quantifiable data.                                       
    (3) Where objective and quantifiable data do not exist with regard to   
     the additions required to be made to the price actually paid or payable
     under subsection (1), the transaction value cannot be determined under 
     section 2.                                                             
    (4) No additions shall be made to the price actually paid or payable for
     the purpose of determining the transaction value except as provided in 
     this section.                                                          
    (5) The amounts to be added under subsections (1)(a) (i) and (ii) shall 
     be                                                                     
      (a) those amounts that are recorded on the books of the buyer, or     
      (b) where those amounts are costs incurred by a related person on     
       behalf of the buyer and are not recorded on the books of the buyer,  
       those amounts that are recorded on the books of that related person. 
    (6) The value of the packaging materials and containers referred to in  
     subsection (1)(a)(iii) and the value of the elements referred to in    
     subsection (1)(b)(i) shall be                                          
    
    [[Page 46436]]
                                                                            
      (a) where the packaging materials and containers or the elements are  
       imported from outside the territory of the NAFTA country in which the
       producer is located, the customs value of the packaging materials and
       containers or the elements,                                          
      (b) where the buyer, or a related person on behalf of the buyer,      
       purchases the packaging materials and containers or the elements from
       an unrelated person in the territory of the NAFTA country in which   
       the producer is located, the price actually paid or payable for the  
       packaging materials and containers or the elements,                  
      (c) where the buyer, or a related person on behalf of the buyer,      
       acquires the packaging materials and containers or the elements from 
       an unrelated person in the territory of the NAFTA country in which   
       the producer is located other than through a purchase, the value of  
       the consideration related to the acquisition of the packaging        
       materials and containers or the elements, based on the cost of the   
       consideration that is recorded on the books of the buyer or the      
       related person, or                                                   
      (d) where the packaging materials and containers or the elements are  
       produced by the buyer, or by a related person, in the territory of   
       the NAFTA country in which the producer is located, the total cost of
       the packaging materials and containers or the elements, determined in
       accordance with subsection (7),                                      
    and shall include the following costs that are recorded on the books of 
     the buyer or the related person supplying the packaging materials and  
     containers or the elements on behalf of the buyer, to the extent that  
     such costs are not included under paragraphs (a) through (d):          
      (e) the costs of freight, insurance, packing, and all other costs     
       incurred in transporting the packaging materials and containers or   
       the elements to the location of the producer,                        
      (f) duties and taxes paid or payable with respect to the packaging    
       materials and containers or the elements, other than duties and taxes
       that are waived, refunded, refundable or otherwise recoverable,      
       including credit against duty or tax paid or payable,                
      (g) customs brokerage fees, including the cost of in-house customs    
       brokerage services, incurred with respect to the packaging materials 
       and containers or the elements, and                                  
      (h) the cost of waste and spoilage resulting from the use of the      
       packaging materials and containers or the elements in the production 
       of the good, less the value of renewable scrap or by-product.        
    (7) For purposes of subsection (6)(d), the total cost of the packaging  
     materials and containers referred to in subsection (1)(a)(iii) or the  
     elements referred to in subsection (1)(b)(i) shall be                  
      (a) where the packaging materials and containers or the elements are  
       produced by the buyer, at the choice of the buyer,                   
        (i) the total cost incurred with respect to all goods produced by   
         the buyer, calculated on the basis of the costs that are recorded  
         on the books of the buyer, that can be reasonably allocated to the 
         packaging materials and containers or the elements in accordance   
         with Schedule VII, or                                              
        (ii) the aggregate of each cost incurred by the buyer that forms    
         part of the total cost incurred with respect to the packaging      
         materials and containers or the elements, calculated on the basis  
         of the costs that are recorded on the books of the buyer, that can 
         be reasonably allocated to the packaging materials and containers  
         or the elements in accordance with Schedule VII; and               
      (b) where the packaging materials and containers or the elements are  
       produced by a person who is related to the buyer, at the choice of   
       the buyer,                                                           
        (i) the total cost incurred with respect to all goods produced by   
         that related person, calculated on the basis of the costs that are 
         recorded on the books of that person, that can be reasonably       
         allocated to the packaging materials and containers or the elements
         in accordance with Schedule VII, or                                
        (ii) the aggregate of each cost incurred by that related person that
         forms part of the total cost incurred with respect to the packaging
         materials and containers or the elements, calculated on the basis  
         of the costs that are recorded on the books of that person, that   
         can be reasonably allocated to the packaging materials and         
         containers or the elements in accordance with Schedule VII.        
    (8) Except as provided in subsections (10) and (11), the value of the   
     elements referred to in subsections (1)(b)(ii) through (iv) shall be   
      (a) the cost of those elements that is recorded on the books of the   
       buyer, or                                                            
      (b) where such elements are provided by another person on behalf of   
       the buyer and the cost is not recorded on the books of the buyer, the
       cost of those elements that is recorded on the books of that other   
       person.                                                              
    (9) Where the elements referred to in subsections (1)(b)(ii) through    
     (iv) were previously used by or on behalf of the buyer, the value of   
     the elements shall be adjusted downward to reflect that use.           
    (10) Where the elements referred to in subsections (1)(b)(ii) and (iii) 
     were leased by the buyer or a person related to the buyer, the value of
     the elements shall be the cost of the lease as recorded on the books of
     the buyer or that related person.                                      
    (11) No addition shall be made to the price actually paid or payable for
     the elements referred to in subsection (1)(b)(iv) that are available in
     the public domain, other than the cost of obtaining copies of them.    
    (12) The producer shall choose the method of allocating to the good the 
     value of the elements referred to in subsections (1)(b)(ii) through    
     (iv), provided that the value is reasonably allocated to the good in a 
     manner appropriate to the circumstances. The methods the producer may  
     choose to allocate the value include allocating the value over the     
     number of units produced up to the time of the first shipment or       
     allocating the value over the entire anticipated production where      
     contracts or firm commitments exist for that production. For an        
     illustration of this, a buyer provides the producer with a mold to be  
     used in the production of the good and contracts with the producer to  
     buy 10,000 units of that good. By the time the first shipment of 1,000 
     units arrives, the producer has already produced 4,000 units. In these 
     circumstances, the producer may choose to allocate the value of the    
     mold over 4,000 units or 10,000 units but shall not choose to allocate 
     the value of the elements to the first shipment of 1,000 units. The    
     producer may choose to allocate the entire value of the elements to a  
     single shipment of a good only where that single shipment comprises all
     of the units of the good acquired by the buyer under the contract or   
     commitment for that number of units of the good between the producer   
     and the buyer.                                                         
    
    [[Page 46437]]
                                                                            
    (13) The addition for the royalties referred to in subsection (1)(c)    
     shall be the payment for the royalties that is recorded on the books of
     the buyer, or where the payment for the royalties is recorded on the   
     books of another person, the payment for the royalties that is recorded
     on the books of that other person.                                     
    (14) The value of the proceeds referred to in subsection (1)(d) shall be
     the amount that is recorded for such proceeds on the books of the buyer
     or the producer.                                                       
                                                                            
                                  SCHEDULE III                              
                         UNACCEPTABLE TRANSACTION VALUE                     
                                                                            
    SECTION 1. Definitions.                                                 
        For purposes of this Schedule, unless otherwise stated              
    ``buyer'' refers to a person who purchases a good from the producer;    
    ``customs administration'' refers to the customs administration of the  
     NAFTA country into whose territory the good being valued is imported;  
    ``producer'' refers to the producer of the good being valued.           
    SECTION 2.                                                              
    (1) There is no transaction value for a good where the good is not the  
     subject of a sale.                                                     
    (2) The transaction value of a good is unacceptable where               
      (a) there are restrictions on the disposition or use of the good by   
       the buyer, other than restrictions that                              
        (i) are imposed or required by law or by the public authorities in  
         the territory of the NAFTA country in which the buyer is located,  
        (ii) limit the geographical area in which the good may be resold, or
        (iii) do not substantially affect the value of the good;            
      (b) the sale or price actually paid or payable is subject to a        
       condition or consideration for which a value cannot be determined    
       with respect to the good;                                            
      (c) part of the proceeds of any subsequent resale, disposal or use of 
       the good by the buyer will accrue directly or indirectly to the      
       producer, and an appropriate addition to the price actually paid or  
       payable cannot be made in accordance with section 4(1)(d) of Schedule
       II; or                                                               
      (d) except as provided in section 3, the producer and the buyer are   
       related persons and the relationship between them influenced the     
       price actually paid or payable for the good.                         
    (3) The conditions or considerations referred to in subsection (2)(b)   
     include the following circumstances:                                   
      (a) the producer establishes the price actually paid or payable for   
       the good on condition that the buyer will also buy other goods in    
       specified quantities;                                                
      (b) the price actually paid or payable for the good is dependent on   
       the price or prices at which the buyer sells other goods to the      
       producer of the good; and                                            
      (c) the price actually paid or payable is established on the basis of 
       a form of payment extraneous to the good, such as where the good is a
       semi-finished good that has been provided by the producer to the     
       buyer on condition that the producer will receive a specified        
       quantity of the finished good from the buyer.                        
    (4) For purposes of subsection (2)(b), conditions or considerations     
     relating to the production or marketing of the good shall not render   
     the transaction value unacceptable, such as where the buyer undertakes 
     on the buyer's own account, even though by agreement with the producer,
     activities relating to the marketing of the good.                      
    (5) Where objective and quantifiable data do not exist with regard to   
     the additions required to be made to the price actually paid or payable
     under section 4(1) of Schedule II, the transaction value cannot be     
     determined under the provisions of section 2 of that Schedule. For an  
     illustration of this, a royalty is paid on the basis of the price      
     actually paid or payable in a sale of a liter of a particular good that
     was purchased by the kilogram and made up into a solution. If the      
     royalty is based partially on the purchased good and partially on other
     factors that have nothing to do with that good, such as when the       
     purchased good is mixed with other ingredients and is no longer        
     separately identifiable, or when the royalty cannot be distinguished   
     from special financial arrangements between the producer and the buyer,
     it would be inappropriate to add the royalty and the transaction value 
     of the good could not be determined. However, if the amount of the     
     royalty is based only on the purchased good and can be readily         
     quantified, an addition to the price actually paid or payable can be   
     made and the transaction value can be determined.                      
    SECTION 3.                                                              
    (1) In determining whether the transaction value is unacceptable under  
     section 2(2)(d), the fact that the producer and the buyer are related  
     persons shall not in itself be grounds for the customs administration  
     to render the transaction value unacceptable. In such cases, the       
     circumstances surrounding the sale shall be examined and the           
     transaction value shall be accepted provided that the relationship     
     between the producer and the buyer did not influence the price actually
     paid or payable. Where the customs administration has reasonable       
     grounds for considering that the relationship between the producer and 
     the buyer influenced the price, the customs administration shall       
     communicate the grounds to the producer, and that producer shall be    
     given a reasonable opportunity to respond to the grounds communicated  
     by the customs administration. If that producer so requests, the       
     customs administration shall communicate in writing the grounds on     
     which it considers that the relationship between the producer and the  
     buyer influenced the price actually paid or payable.                   
    
    [[Page 46438]]
                                                                            
    (2) Subsection (1) provides that, where the producer and the buyer are  
     related persons, the circumstances surrounding the sale shall be       
     examined and the transaction value shall be accepted as the value      
     provided that the relationship between the producer and the buyer did  
     not influence the price actually paid or payable. It is not intended   
     under subsection (1) that there should be an examination of the        
     circumstances in all cases where the producer and the buyer are related
     persons. Such an examination will only be required where the customs   
     administration has doubts that the price actually paid or payable is   
     acceptable because of the relationship between the producer and the    
     buyer. Where the customs administration does not have doubts that the  
     price actually paid or payable is acceptable, it shall accept that     
     price without requesting further information. For an illustration of   
     this, the customs administration may have previously examined the      
     relationship between the producer and the buyer, or it may already have
     detailed information concerning the relationship between the producer  
     and the buyer, and may already be satisfied from that examination or   
     information that the relationship between them did not influence the   
     price actually paid or payable.                                        
    (3) In applying subsection (1), where the producer and the buyer are    
     related persons and the customs administration has doubts that the     
     transaction value is acceptable without further inquiry, the customs   
     administration shall give the producer an opportunity to supply such   
     further information as may be necessary to enable it to examine the    
     circumstances surrounding the sale. In such a case, the customs        
     administration shall examine the relevant aspects of the sale,         
     including the way in which the producer and the buyer organize their   
     commercial relations and the way in which the price actually paid or   
     payable for the good being valued was arrived at, in order to determine
     whether the relationship between the producer and the buyer influenced 
     that price actually paid or payable. Where it can be shown that the    
     producer and the buyer buy from and sell to each other as if they were 
     not related persons, the price actually paid or payable shall be       
     considered as not having been influenced by the relationship between   
     them. For an illustration of this, if the price actually paid or       
     payable for the good had been settled in a manner consistent with the  
     normal pricing practices of the industry in question or with the way in
     which the producer settles prices for sales to unrelated buyers, the   
     price actually paid or payable shall be considered as not having been  
     influenced by the relationship between the buyer and the producer. As  
     another illustration, where it is shown that the price actually paid or
     payable for the good is adequate to ensure recovery of the total cost  
     of producing the good plus a profit that is representative of the      
     producer's overall profit realized over a representative period of     
     time, such as on an annual basis, in sales of goods of the same class  
     or kind, the price actually paid or payable shall be considered as not 
     having been influenced by the relationship between the producer and the
     buyer.                                                                 
    (4) In a sale between a producer and a buyer who are related persons,   
     the transaction value shall be accepted and determined in accordance   
     with section 2 of Schedule II wherever the producer demonstrates that  
     the transaction value of the good in that sale closely approximates a  
     test value referred to in subsection (5).                              
    (5) The value to be used as a test value shall be the transaction value 
     of identical goods or similar goods sold at or about the same time as  
     the good being valued is sold to an unrelated buyer who is located in  
     the territory of the NAFTA country in which the buyer is located.      
    (6) In applying a test value referred to in subsection (4), due account 
     shall be taken of demonstrated differences in commercial levels,       
     quantity levels, the value of the elements specified in section 4(1)(b)
     of Schedule II and the costs incurred by the producer in sales to      
     unrelated buyers that are not incurred by the producer in sales to a   
     related person.                                                        
    (7) The application of the test value referred to in subsection (4)     
     shall be used at the initiative of the producer and shall be used only 
     for comparison purposes to determine whether the transaction value of  
     the good is acceptable. The test value shall not be used as the        
     transaction value of that good.                                        
    (8) Subsection (4) provides an opportunity for the producer to          
     demonstrate that the transaction value closely approximates a test     
     value previously accepted by the customs administration, and is        
     therefore acceptable under subsections (1) and (4). Where the          
     application of a test value under subsection (4) demonstrates that the 
     transaction value of the good being valued is acceptable, the customs  
     administration shall not examine the question of influence in regard to
     the relationship between the producer and the buyer under subsection   
     (1). Where the customs administration already has sufficient           
     information available, without further inquiries, that the transaction 
     value closely approximates a test value referred to in subsection (4), 
     the producer is not required to apply a test value to demonstrate that 
     the transaction value is acceptable under that subsection.             
    (9) A number of factors must be taken into consideration for the purpose
     of determining whether the transaction value of the identical goods or 
     similar goods closely approximates the transaction value of the good   
     being valued. These factors include the nature of the good, the nature 
     of the industry itself, the season in which the good is sold, and      
     whether the difference in values is commercially significant. Since    
     these factors may vary from case to case, it would be impossible to    
     apply an acceptable standardized difference such as a fixed amount or  
     fixed percentage difference in each case. For an illustration of this, 
     a small difference in value in a case involving one type of good could 
     be unacceptable, while a large difference in a case involving another  
     type of good might be acceptable for the purposes of determining       
     whether the transaction value closely approximates a test value set out
     in subsection (4).                                                     
                                                                            
                                   SCHEDULE IV                              
     LIST OF TARIFF PROVISIONS FOR THE PURPOSES OF SECTION 9 OF THE APPENDIX
                                                                            
    4009                                                                    
    4010.10                                                                 
    4011                                                                    
    4016.93.10                                                              
    4016.99.30 and 4016.99.55                                               
    7007.11 and 7007.21                                                     
    7009.10                                                                 
    8301.20                                                                 
    8407.31                                                                 
    8407.32                                                                 
    
    [[Page 46439]]
                                                                            
    8407.33                                                                 
    8407.34.05, 8407.34.15 and 8407.34.25                                   
    8407.34.35, 8407.34.45 and 8407.34.55                                   
    8408.20                                                                 
    8409                                                                    
    8413.30                                                                 
    8414.59.30                                                              
    8414.80.05                                                              
    8415.81 through 8415.83                                                 
    8421.39.40                                                              
    8481.20, 8481.30 and 8481.80                                            
    8482.10 through 8482.80                                                 
    8483.10 through 8483.40                                                 
    8483.50                                                                 
    8501.10                                                                 
    8501.20                                                                 
    8501.31                                                                 
    8501.32.45                                                              
    8507.20.40, 8507.30.40, 8507.40.40 and 8507.80.40                       
    8511.30                                                                 
    8511.40                                                                 
    8511.50                                                                 
    8512.20                                                                 
    8512.40                                                                 
    8519.91                                                                 
    8527.21                                                                 
    8527.29                                                                 
    8536.50                                                                 
    8536.90                                                                 
    8537.10.30                                                              
    8539.10                                                                 
    8539.21                                                                 
    8544.30                                                                 
    8706                                                                    
    8707                                                                    
    8708.10.30                                                              
    8708.21                                                                 
    8708.29.20                                                              
    8708.29.10                                                              
    8708.29.15                                                              
    8708.39                                                                 
    8708.40                                                                 
    8708.50                                                                 
    8708.60                                                                 
    8708.70.05, 8708.70.25 and 8708.70.45                                   
    8708.80                                                                 
    8708.91                                                                 
    8708.92                                                                 
    8708.93.15 and 8708.93.60                                               
    8708.94                                                                 
    8708.99.03, 8708.99.27 and 8708.99.55                                   
    8708.99.06, 8708.99.31 and 8708.99.58                                   
    8708.99.09, 8708.99.34 and 8708.99.61                                   
    8708.99.12, 8708.99.37 and 8708.99.64                                   
    8708.99.15, 8708.99.40 and 8708.99.67                                   
    8708.99.18, 8708.99.43 and 8708.99.70                                   
    8708.99.21, 8708.99.46 and 8708.99.73                                   
    8708.99.24, 8708.99.49 and 8708.99.80                                   
    9031.80                                                                 
    9032.89                                                                 
    9401.20                                                                 
                                                                            
    
    
    
    [[Page 46440]]
    
    
    SCHEDULE V
    
    LIST OF AUTOMOTIVE COMPONENTS AND MATERIALS FOR THE PURPOSES OF 
    SECTION 10 OF THE APPENDIX
    
    ----------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------
     Item           Column I automotive components                         Column II listed materials               
    ----------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------
    1.      Engines provided for in heading 8407 or 8408..  Cast blocks, cast heads, fuel nozzles, fuel injector    
                                                             pumps, glow plugs, turbochargers, superchargers,       
                                                             electronic engine controls, intake manifolds, exhaust  
                                                             manifolds, intake valves, exhaust valves, crankshafts, 
                                                             camshafts, alternators, starters, air cleaner          
                                                             assemblies, pistons, connecting rods and assemblies    
                                                             made therefrom, rotor assemblies for rotary engines,   
                                                             flywheels (for manual transmissions), flexplates (for  
                                                             automatic transmissions), oil pans, oil pumps, pressure
                                                             regulators, water pumps, crankshaft gears, camshaft    
                                                             gears, radiator assemblies, charge-air coolers.        
    2.      Gear boxes (transmissions) provided for in      (a) For manual transmissions: transmission cases and    
             subheading 8708.40.                             clutch housings; clutches; internal shifting           
                                                             mechanisms; gear sets, synchronizers and shafts; and   
                                                            (b) For torque convertor type transmissions:            
                                                             transmission cases and convertor housings; torque      
                                                             convertor assemblies; gear sets and clutches;          
                                                             electronic transmission controls.                      
    ----------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------
    
    
                                   SCHEDULE VI                              
                   REGIONAL VALUE-CONTENT CALCULATION FOR CAMI              
                                                                            
    SECTION 1. Definitions.                                                 
        In this Schedule,                                                   
    ``closed'' means, with respect to a plant, a closure                    
      (a) for purposes of re-tooling for a change in model line, or         
      (b) as a result of any event or circumstance (other than the          
       imposition of antidumping duties or countervailing duties, or an     
       interruption of operations resulting from a labor strike, lock-out,  
       labor dispute, picketing or boycott of or by employees of CAMI       
       Automotive, Inc. or General Motors of Canada Limited) that CAMI      
       Automotive, Inc. or General Motors of Canada Limited could not       
       reasonably have been expected to avert by corrective action or by    
       exercise of due care and diligence, including a shortage of          
       materials, failure of utilities, or inability to obtain or a delay in
       obtaining raw materials, parts, fuel or utilities;                   
    ``GM'' means General Motors of Canada Limited, General Motors           
     Corporation, General Motors de Mexico, S.A. de C.V., and any subsidiary
     directly or indirectly owned by any of them, or by any combination     
     thereof;                                                               
    ``producer'' means CAMI Automotive, Inc.                                
    SECTION 2.                                                              
        For purposes of section 11 of this Appendix, for purposes of        
     determining the regional value content, in a fiscal year, of a motor   
     vehicle of a class of motor vehicles or a model line produced by the   
     producer in the territory of Canada and imported into the territory of 
     the United States, the producer may choose to calculate the regional   
     value content by                                                       
        (a) calculating                                                     
                                                                            
    
    
                                                                            
    
    [[Page 46441]]
        (i) the sum of                                                      
          (A) the net cost incurred by the producer, during that fiscal     
           year, in the production in the territory of Canada of motor      
           vehicles of a category referred to in section 3 that is chosen by
           the producer, and                                                
          (B) the net cost incurred by General Motors of Canada Limited,    
           during the fiscal year that corresponds most closely to the      
           producer's fiscal year, in the production in the territory of    
           Canada of a corresponding class of motor vehicles or model line, 
           and                                                              
        (ii) the sum of                                                     
          (A) the value, determined in accordance with section 9 of this    
           Appendix for light-duty vehicles and section 10 of this Appendix 
           for heavy-duty vehicles, of the non-originating materials that   
           are used by the producer, during that fiscal year, in the        
           production in the territory of Canada of motor vehicles of a     
           category referred to in section 2.1 that is chosen by the        
           producer, and                                                    
          (B) the value, determined in accordance with section 9 of this    
           Appendix for light-duty vehicles and section 10 of this Appendix 
           for heavy-duty vehicles, of the non-originating materials that   
           are used by General Motors of Canada Limited, during the fiscal  
           year that corresponds most closely to the producer's fiscal year,
           in the production in the territory of Canada of a corresponding  
           class of motor vehicles or model line, and                       
      (b) using the sums referred to in paragraphs (a)(i) and (ii) as the   
       net cost and the value of non-originating materials, respectively, in
       the calculation referred to in section 6(3) of this Appendix,        
    provided that                                                           
      (c) at the beginning of the producer's fiscal year, General Motors of 
       Canada Limited owns 50 percent or more of the voting common stock of 
       the producer, and                                                    
      (d) GM acquires 75 percent or more by unit of quantity of the class of
       motor vehicles or model line, as the case may be, that the producer  
       produced in the territory of Canada in the producer's fiscal year for
       sale in the territory of one or more of the NAFTA countries.         
    SECTION 3.                                                              
        The categories referred to in clauses 2(a)(i)(A) and (ii)(A) are the
     following:                                                             
      (a) the class of motor vehicles that the producer produced in the     
       territory of Canada in the producer's fiscal year for sale in the    
       territory of one or more of the NAFTA countries; and                 
      (b) the model line that the producer produced in the territory of     
       Canada in the producer's fiscal year for sale in the territory of one
       or more of the NAFTA countries.                                      
    SECTION 4.                                                              
        Where GM does not satisfy the requirement set out in section 2(d),  
     the producer may choose that the regional value content be calculated  
     in accordance with section 2 only for those motor vehicles that are    
     acquired by GM for distribution under the GEO marque or another GM     
     marque.                                                                
    SECTION 5.                                                              
    (1) The producer may choose that the calculation referred to in section 
     2 be made over a period of two fiscal years where                      
      (a) any plant operated by the producer or by General Motors of Canada 
       Limited is closed for more than two consecutive months; and          
      (b) the motor vehicles of a category referred to in section 3, with   
       respect to which the producer chooses that the regional value content
       be calculated in accordance with section 2, are produced in that     
       plant.                                                               
    (2) Subject to subsection (3), the period of two fiscal years referred  
     to in subsection (1) corresponds to the fiscal year in which the plant 
     is closed and, at the choice of the producer, the preceding or the     
     subsequent fiscal year.                                                
    (3) Where the plant is closed for a period that spans two fiscal years, 
     the calculation referred to in section 2 may be made only over those   
     two fiscal years.                                                      
    (4) Where the producer has chosen that the regional value content be    
     calculated over two fiscal years under this section, the choice        
     referred to in section 11(6) of this Appendix shall be filed not later 
     than 10 days after the end of the period during which the plant is     
     closed, or at such later time as the customs administration may accept.
    SECTION 6.                                                              
        For purposes of this Schedule, a motor vehicle producer shall be    
     deemed to be GM where, as a result of an amalgamation, reorganization, 
     division or similar transaction, that motor vehicle producer           
      (a) acquires all or substantially all of the assets used by GM, and   
      (b) directly or indirectly controls, or is controlled by, GM, or both 
       that motor vehicle producer and GM are controlled by the same person.
                                                                            
                                  SCHEDULE VII                              
                         REASONABLE ALLOCATION OF COSTS                     
                                                                            
    SECTION 1. Definitions.                                                 
        For purposes of this Schedule,                                      
    ``costs'' means any costs that are included in total cost and that need 
     to be allocated pursuant to sections 5(9), 6(11) and 7(6) and sections 
     10(1)(a)(i) and (ii) of these Regulations, section 4(7) of Schedule II 
     and sections 5(7) and 10(2) of Schedule VIII;                          
    ``discontinued operations'', in the case of a producer located in a     
     NAFTA country, has the meaning set out in that NAFTA country's         
     Generally Accepted Accounting Principles;                              
    ``indirect overhead'' means period costs and other costs;               
    ``internal management purpose'' means any purpose relating to tax       
     reporting, financial reporting, financial planning, decision-making,   
     pricing, cost recovery, cost control management or performance         
     measurement; and                                                       
    ``overhead'' means costs, other than direct material costs and direct   
     labor costs.                                                           
    SECTION 2. Interpretation.                                              
    
    [[Page 46442]]
                                                                            
    (1) In this Schedule, reference to ``producer'' shall, for purposes of  
     section 4(7) of Schedule II, be read as a reference to ``buyer''.      
    (2) In this Schedule, reference to ``good'' shall,                      
      (a) for purposes of section 6(14) of this Appendix, be read as a      
       reference to ``identical goods or similar goods, or any combination  
       thereof'';                                                           
      (b) for purposes of section 7(6) of this Appendix, be read as a       
       reference to ``intermediate material'';                              
      (c) for purposes of section 11 of this Appendix, be read as a         
       reference to ``category of vehicles that is chosen pursuant to       
       section 11(1) of this Appendix'';                                    
      (d) for purposes of section 12 of this Appendix, be read as a         
       reference to ``category of goods chosen pursuant to section 12(1) of 
       this Appendix'';                                                     
      (e) for purposes of section 13(4) of this Appendix, be read as a      
       reference to ``category of vehicles chosen pursuant to section 13(4) 
       of this Appendix'';                                                  
      (f) for purposes of section 4(7) of Schedule II, be read as a         
       reference to ``packaging materials and containers or the elements''; 
       and                                                                  
      (g) for purposes of section 5(7) of Schedule VIII, be read as a       
       reference to ``elements''.                                           
                                                                            
                      Methods to Reasonably Allocate Costs                  
                                                                            
    SECTION 3.                                                              
    (1) Where a producer of a good is using, for an internal management     
     purpose, a cost allocation method to allocate to the good direct       
     material costs, or part thereof, and that method reasonably reflects   
     the direct material used in the production of the good based on the    
     criterion of benefit, cause or ability to bear, that method shall be   
     used to reasonably allocate the costs to the good.                     
    (2) Where a producer of a good is using, for an internal management     
     purpose, a cost allocation method to allocate to the good direct labor 
     costs, or part thereof, and that method reasonably reflects the direct 
     labor used in the production of the good based on the criterion of     
     benefit, cause or ability to bear, that method shall be used to        
     reasonably allocate the costs to the good.                             
    (3) Where a producer of a good is using, for an internal management     
     purpose, a cost allocation method to allocate to the good overhead, or 
     part thereof, and that method is based on the criterion of benefit,    
     cause or ability to bear, that method shall be used to reasonably      
     allocate the costs to the good.                                        
    SECTION 4.                                                              
        Where costs are not reasonably allocated to a good under section 3, 
     those costs are reasonably allocated to the good if they are allocated,
      (a) with respect to direct material costs, on the basis of any method 
       that reasonably reflects the direct material used in the production  
       of the good based on the criterion of benefit, cause or ability to   
       bear;                                                                
      (b) with respect to direct labor costs, on the basis of any method    
       that reasonably reflects the direct labor used in the production of  
       the good based on the criterion of benefit, cause or ability to bear;
       and                                                                  
      (c) with respect to overhead, on the basis of any of the following    
       methods:                                                             
        (i) the method set out in Addendum A, Addendum B or Addendum C,     
        (ii) a method based on a combination of the methods set out in      
         Addenda A and B or Addenda A and C, and                            
        (iii) a cost allocation method based on the criterion of benefit,   
         cause or ability to bear.                                          
    SECTION 5.                                                              
        Any cost allocation method referred to in section 3 or 4 that is    
     used by a producer for the purposes of this Appendix shall be used     
     throughout the producer's fiscal year.                                 
                                                                            
                         Costs Not Reasonably Allocated                     
                                                                            
    SECTION 6.                                                              
        The allocation to a good of any of the following is considered not  
     to be reasonably allocated to the good:                                
      (a) costs of a service provided by a producer of a good to another    
       person where the service is not related to the good;                 
      (b) gains or losses resulting from the disposition of a discontinued  
       operation;                                                           
      (c) cumulative effects of accounting changes reported in accordance   
       with a specific requirement of the applicable Generally Accepted     
       Accounting Principles; and''.                                        
      (d) gains or losses resulting from the sale of a capital asset of the 
       producer.                                                            
    SECTION 7.                                                              
        Any costs allocated under section 3 on the basis of a cost          
     allocation method that is used for an internal management purpose that 
     is solely for the purpose of qualifying a good as an originating good  
     are considered not to be reasonably allocated.                         
                                                                            
                                   ADDENDUM A                               
                                COST RATIO METHOD                           
                                                                            
    Calculation of Cost Ratio                                               
                                                                            
        For the overhead to be allocated, the producer may choose one or    
     more allocation bases that reflect a relationship between the overhead 
     and the good based on the criterion of benefit, cause or ability to    
     bear.                                                                  
        With respect to each allocation base that is chosen by the producer 
     for allocating overhead, a cost ratio is calculated for each good      
     produced by the producer in accordance with the following formula:     
                                                                            
                                                                            
    
    
    [GRAPHIC][TIFF OMITTED]TR06SE95.010
    
    where
        CR is the cost ratio with respect to the good; 
    
    [[Page 46443]]
    
        AB is the allocation base for the good; and
        TAB is the total allocation base for all the goods produced by the 
    producer.
    
    
    Allocation to a Good of Costs Included in Overhead                      
                                                                            
        The costs with respect to which an allocation base is chosen are    
     allocated to a good in accordance with the following formula:          
                                                                            
                                 CAG = CA  x  CR                            
                                                                            
    where                                                                   
      CAG is the costs allocated to the good;                               
      CA is the costs to be allocated; and                                  
      CR is the cost ratio with respect to the good.                        
                                                                            
    Excluded Costs                                                          
                                                                            
        Under section 6(11)(b) of this Appendix, where excluded costs are   
     included in costs to be allocated to a good, the cost ratio used to    
     allocate that cost to the good is used to determine the amount of      
     excluded costs to be subtracted from the costs allocated to the good.  
                                                                            
    Allocation Bases for Costs                                              
                                                                            
        The following is a non-exhaustive list of allocation bases that may 
     be used by the producer to calculate cost ratios:                      
      Direct Labor Hours                                                    
      Direct Labor Costs                                                    
      Units Produced                                                        
      Machine-hours                                                         
      Sales Dollars or Pesos                                                
      Floor Space                                                           
                                                                            
    ``Examples''                                                            
                                                                            
        The following examples illustrate the application of the cost ratio 
     method to costs included in overhead.                                  
                                                                            
    
    
    Example 1: Direct Labor Hours                                           
        A producer who produces Good A and Good B may allocate overhead on  
     the basis of direct labor hours spent to produce Good A and Good B. A  
     total of 8,000 direct labor hours have been spent to produce Good A and
     Good B: 5,000 hours with respect to Good A and 3,000 hours with respect
     to Good B. The amount of overhead to be allocated is $6,000,000.       
      Calculation of the Ratios:                                            
      Good A: 5,000 hours/8,000 hours = .625                                
      Good B: 3,000 hours/8,000 hours = .375                                
      Allocation of overhead to Good A and Good B:                          
      Good A: $6,000,000  x  .625 = $3,750,000                              
      Good B: $6,000,000  x  .375 = $2,250,000                              
    Example 2: Direct Labor Costs                                           
        A producer who produces Good A and Good B may allocate overhead on  
     the basis of direct labor costs incurred in the production of Good A   
     and Good B. The total direct labor costs incurred in the production of 
     Good A and Good B is $60,000: $50,000 with respect to Good A and       
     $10,000 with respect to Good B. The amount of overhead to be allocated 
     is $6,000,000.                                                         
      Calculation of the Ratios:                                            
      Good A: $50,000/$60,000 = .833                                        
      Good B: $10,000/$60,000 = .167                                        
      Allocation of Overhead to Good A and Good B:                          
      Good A: $6,000,000  x  .833 = $4,998,000                              
      Good B: $6,000,000  x  .167 = $1,002,000                              
    Example 3: Units Produced                                               
        A producer of Good A and Good B may allocate overhead on the basis  
     of units produced. The total units of Good A and Good B produced is    
     150,000: 100,000 units of Good A and 50,000 units of Good B. The amount
     of overhead to be allocated is $6,000,000.                             
      Calculation of the Ratios:                                            
      Good A: 100,000 units/150,000 units = .667                            
      Good B: 50,000 units/150,000 units = .333                             
      Allocation of Overhead to Good A and Good B:                          
      Good A: $6,000,000 x .667 = $4,002,000                                
      Good B: $6,000,000 x .333 = $1,998,000                                
    Example 4: Machine-hours                                                
        A producer who produces Good A and Good B may allocate machine-     
     related overhead on the basis of machine-hours utilized in the         
     production of Good A and Good B. The total machine-hours utilized for  
     the production of Good A and Good B is 3,000 hours: 1,200 hours with   
     respect to Good A and 1,800 hours with respect to Good B. The amount of
     machine-related overhead to be allocated is $6,000,000.                
      Calculation of the Ratios:                                            
      Good A: 1,200 machine-hours/3,000 machine-hours = .40                 
      Good B: 1,800 machine-hours/3,000 machine-hours = .60                 
      Allocation of Machine-Related Overhead to Good A and Good B:          
      Good A: $6,000,000  x  .40 = $2,400,000                               
      Good B: $6,000,000  x  .60 = $3,600,000                               
    Example 5: Sales Dollars or Pesos                                       
        A producer who produces Good A and Good B may allocate overhead on  
     the basis of sales dollars. The producer sold 2,000 units of Good A at 
     $4,000 and 200 units of Good B at $3,000. The amount of overhead to be 
     allocated is $6,000,000.                                               
      Total Sales Dollars for Good A and Good B:                            
      Good A: $4,000  x  2,000 = $8,000,000                                 
      Good B: $3,000  x  200 = $600,000                                     
      Total Sales Dollars: $8,000,000 + $600,000 = $8,600,000               
      Calculation of the Ratios:                                            
    
    [[Page 46444]]
                                                                            
      Good A: $8,000,000/$8,600,000 = .93                                   
      Good B: $600,000/$8,600,000 = .07                                     
      Allocation of Overhead to Good A and Good B:                          
      Good A: $6,000,000  x  .93 = $5,580,000                               
      Good B: $6,000,000  x  .07 = $420,000                                 
    Example 6: Floor Space                                                  
        A producer who produces Good A and Good B may allocate overhead     
     relating to utilities (heat, water and electricity) on the basis of    
     floor space used in the production and storage of Good A and Good B.   
     The total floor space used in the production and storage of Good A and 
     Good B is 100,000 square feet: 40,000 square feet with respect to Good 
     A and 60,000 square feet with respect to Good B. The amount of overhead
     to be allocated is $6,000,000.                                         
      Calculation of the Ratios:                                            
      Good A: 40,000 square feet/100,000 square feet = .40                  
      Good B: 60,000 square feet/100,000 square feet = .60                  
      Allocation of Overhead (Utilities) to Good A and Good B:              
      Good A: $6,000,000  x  .40 = $2,400,000                               
      Good B: $6,000,000  x  .60 = $3,600,000                               
                                                                            
                                                                            
    
    
    
    
                                   ADDENDUM B                               
                  DIRECT LABOR AND DIRECT MATERIAL RATIO METHOD             
                                                                            
    Calculation of Direct Labor and Direct Material Ratio                   
                                                                            
        For each good produced by the producer, a direct labor and direct   
     material ratio is calculated in accordance with the following formula: 
                                                                            
                                                                            
    
    [GRAPHIC][TIFF OMITTED]TR06SE95.011
    
    where
        DLDMR is the direct labor and direct material ratio for the good;
        DLC is the direct labor costs of the good;
        DMC is the direct material costs of the good;
        TDLC is the total direct labor costs of all goods produced by the 
    producer; and
        TDMC is the total direct material costs of all goods produced by 
    the producer.
    
    Allocation of Overhead to a Good                                        
        Overhead is allocated to a good in accordance with the following    
     formula:                                                               
                                                                            
                                OAG = O  x  DLDMR                           
                                                                            
    where                                                                   
      OAG is the overhead allocated to the good;                            
      O is the overhead to be allocated; and                                
      DLDMR is the direct labor and direct material ratio for the good.     
    Excluded Costs                                                          
        Under section 6(11)(b) of this Appendix, where excluded costs are   
     included in overhead to be allocated to a good, the direct labor and   
     direct material ratio used to allocate overhead to the good is used to 
     determine the amount of excluded costs to be subtracted from the       
     overhead allocated to the good.                                        
                                                                            
    
    
    
                                  ``Examples''                              
                                                                            
    Example 1:                                                              
        The following example illustrates the application of the direct     
     labor and direct material ratio method used by a producer of a good to 
     allocate overhead where the producer chooses to calculate the net cost 
     of the good in accordance with section 6(11)(a) of this Appendix.      
        A producer produces Good A and Good B. Overhead (O) minus excluded  
     costs (EC) is $30 and the other relevant costs are set out in the      
     following table:                                                       
                                                                            
    
    
    ------------------------------------------------------------------------
                                          Good A       Good B       Total   
    ------------------------------------------------------------------------
    Direct labor costs (DLC).........           $5           $5          $10
    Direct material costs (DMC)......           10            5           15
                                      --------------------------------------
    Totals...........................          $15          $10          $25
    ------------------------------------------------------------------------
    
    
    Overhead Allocated to Good A
        OAG (Good A) = O ($30)  x  DLDMR ($15/$25)
        OAG (Good A) = $18.00
    Overhead Allocated to Good B
        OAG (Good B) = O ($30)  x  DLDMR ($10/$25)
        OAG (Good B) = $12.00
    Example 2:
    
        The following example illustrates the application of the direct     
     labor and direct material ratio method used by a producer of a good to 
     allocate overhead where the producer chooses to calculate the net cost 
     of the good in accordance with section 6(11)(b) of this Appendix and   
     where excluded costs are included in overhead.                         
        A producer produces Good A and Good B. Overhead (O) is $50          
     (including excluded costs (EC) of $20). The other relevant costs are   
     set out in the table of Example 1.                                     
    Overhead Allocated to Good A                                            
    
    [[Page 46445]]
                                                                            
      OAG (Good A) = [O ($50)  x  DLDMR ($15/$25)] - [EC ($20)  x  DLDMR    
       ($15/$25)]                                                           
      OAG (Good A) = $18.00                                                 
    Overhead Allocated to Good B                                            
      OAG (Good B) = [O ($50)  x  DLDMR ($10/$25)] - [EC ($20)  x  DLDMR    
       ($10/$25)]                                                           
      OAG (Good B) = $12.00                                                 
                                                                            
    
    
    
    
                                   ADDENDUM C                               
                            DIRECT COST RATIO METHOD                        
                                                                            
    Direct Overhead                                                         
        Direct overhead is allocated to a good on the basis of a method     
     based on the criterion of benefit, cause or ability to bear.           
    Indirect Overhead                                                       
        Indirect overhead is allocated on the basis of a direct cost ratio. 
    Calculation of Direct Cost Ratio                                        
        For each good produced by the producer, a direct cost ratio is      
     calculated in accordance with the following formula:                   
                                                                            
                                                                            
    
    [GRAPHIC][TIFF OMITTED]TR06SE95.012
    
    where
        DCR is the direct cost ratio for the good;
        DLC is the direct labor costs of the good;
        DMC is the direct material costs of the good;
        DO is the direct overhead of the good;
        TDLC is the total direct labor costs of all goods produced by the 
    producer;
        TDMC is the total direct material costs of all goods produced by 
    the producer; and
        TDO is the total direct overhead of all goods produced by the 
    producer;
    
    Allocation of Indirect Overhead to a Good                               
        Indirect overhead is allocated to a good in accordance with the     
     following formula:                                                     
                                                                            
      IOAG = IO  x  DCR                                                     
                                                                            
    where                                                                   
      IOAG is the indirect overhead allocated to the good;                  
      IO is the indirect overhead of all goods produced by the producer; and
      DCR is the direct cost ratio of the good.                             
    Excluded Costs                                                          
        Under section 6(11)(b) of this Appendix, where excluded costs are   
     included in                                                            
      (a) direct overhead to be allocated to a good, those excluded costs   
       are subtracted from the direct overhead allocated to the good; and   
      (b) indirect overhead to be allocated to a good, the direct cost ratio
       used to allocate indirect overhead to the good is used to determine  
       the amount of excluded costs to be subtracted from the indirect      
       overhead allocated to the good.                                      
                                                                            
    
    
    
                                  ``Examples''                              
                                                                            
    Example 1:                                                              
        The following example illustrates the application of the direct cost
     ratio method used by a producer of a good to allocate indirect overhead
     where the producer chooses to calculate the net cost of the good in    
     accordance with section 6(11)(a) of this Appendix.                     
        A producer produces Good A and Good B. Indirect overhead (IO) minus 
     excluded costs (EC) is $30. The other relevant costs are set out in the
     following table:                                                       
                                                                            
    
    
    
    
    ------------------------------------------------------------------------
                                          Good A       Good B       Total   
    ------------------------------------------------------------------------
    Direct labor costs (DLC).........           $5           $5          $10
    Direct material costs (DMC)......           10            5           15
    Direct overhead (DO).............            8            2           10
                                      --------------------------------------
    Totals...........................          $23          $12          $35
    ------------------------------------------------------------------------
    
    
    Indirect Overhead Allocated to Good A
        IOAG (Good A) = IO ($30)  x  DCR ($23/$35)
        IOAG (Good A) = $19.71
    Indirect Overhead Allocated to Good B
        IOAG (Good B) = IO ($30)  x  DCR ($12/$35)
        IOAG (Good B) = $10.29
    
    
    Example 2:                                                              
        The following example illustrates the application of the direct cost
     ratio method used by a producer of a good to allocate indirect overhead
     where the producer has chosen to calculate the net cost of the good in 
     accordance with section 6(11)(b) of this Appendix and where excluded   
     costs are included in indirect overhead.                               
        A producer produces Good A and Good B. The indirect overhead (IO) is
     $50 (including excluded costs (EC) of $20). The other relevant costs   
     are set out in the table to Example 1.                                 
    Indirect Overhead Allocated to Good A                                   
      IOAG (Good A) = [IO ($50)  x  DCR ($23/$35)] - [EC ($20)  x  DCR ($23/
       $35)]                                                                
    
    [[Page 46446]]
                                                                            
      IOAG (Good A) = $19.72                                                
    Indirect Overhead Allocated to Good B                                   
      IOAG (Good B) = [IO ($50)  x  DCR ($12/$35)] - [EC ($20)  x  DCR ($12/
       $35)]                                                                
      IOAG (Good B) = $10.28                                                
                                                                            
    
    
    
                                  SCHEDULE VIII                             
                               VALUE OF MATERIALS                           
                                                                            
    SECTION 1. Definitions.                                                 
    (1) For purposes of this Schedule, unless otherwise stated,             
    ``buying commissions'' means fees paid by a producer to that producer's 
     agent for the agent's services in representing the producer in the     
     purchase of a material;                                                
    ``customs administration'' refers to the customs administration of the  
     NAFTA country into whose territory the good, in the production of which
     the material being valued is used, is imported;                        
    ``materials of the same class or kind'' means, with respect to materials
     being valued, materials that are within a group or range of materials  
     that                                                                   
      (a) is produced by a particular industry or industry sector, and      
      (b) includes identical materials or similar materials;                
    ``producer'' refers to                                                  
      (a) in the case of section 10(1)(b)(i) of these Regulations, the      
       producer of the listed material, and                                 
      (b) in any other case, the producer who used the material in the      
       production of a good that is subject to a regional value-content     
       requirement;                                                         
    ``seller'' refers to a person who sells the material being valued to the
     producer.                                                              
                                                                            
                                 Interpretation                             
                                                                            
    (2) Where it is to be determined under section 9(3) of these Regulations
     whether the customs value of a material was determined in a manner     
     consistent with this Schedule for purposes of section 9(2) (c) or (d)  
     of these Regulations, a reference in this Schedule to ``producer''     
     shall be read as a reference to ``person other than the producer who   
     imports the traced material from outside the territories of the NAFTA  
     countries.                                                             
    SECTION 2.                                                              
    (1) Except as provided under subsections (2) and (3), the transaction   
     value of a material under Article 402(9)(a) of the Agreement, as       
     implemented by section 7(1)(b) and sections 9(5) and 10(2) of this     
     Appendix, shall be the price actually paid or payable for the material 
     determined in accordance with section 4 and adjusted in accordance with
     section 5.                                                             
    (2) There is no transaction value for a material where the material is  
     not the subject of a sale.                                             
    (3) The transaction value of a material is unacceptable where           
      (a) there are restrictions on the disposition or use of the material  
       by the producer, other than restrictions that                        
        (i) are imposed or required by law or by the public authorities in  
         the territory of the NAFTA country in which the producer of the    
         good or the seller of the material is located,                     
        (ii) limit the geographical area in which the material may be used, 
         or                                                                 
        (iii) do not substantially affect the value of the material;        
      (b) the sale or price actually paid or payable is subject to a        
       condition or consideration for which a value cannot be determined    
       with respect to the material;                                        
      (c) part of the proceeds of any subsequent disposal or use of the     
       material by the producer will accrue directly or indirectly to the   
       seller, and an appropriate addition to the price actually paid or    
       payable cannot be made in accordance with section 5(1)(d); and       
      (d) except as provided in section 3, the producer and the seller are  
       related persons and the relationship between them influenced the     
       price actually paid or payable for the material.                     
    (4) The conditions or considerations referred to in subsection (3)(b)   
     include the following circumstances:                                   
      (a) the seller establishes the price actually paid or payable for the 
       material on condition that the producer will also buy other materials
       or goods in specified quantities;                                    
      (b) the price actually paid or payable for the material is dependent  
       on the price or prices at which the producer sells other materials or
       goods to the seller of the material; and                             
      (c) the price actually paid or payable is established on the basis of 
       a form of payment extraneous to the material, such as where the      
       material is a semi-finished material that has been provided by the   
       seller to the producer on condition that the seller will receive a   
       specified quantity of the finished material from the producer.       
    (5) For purposes of subsection (3)(b), conditions or considerations     
     relating to the use of the material shall not render the transaction   
     value unacceptable, such as where the producer undertakes on the       
     producer's own account, even though by agreement with the seller,      
     activities relating to the warranty of the material used in the        
     production of a good.                                                  
    (6) Where objective and quantifiable data do not exist with regard to   
     the additions required to be made to the price actually paid or payable
     under section 5(1), the transaction value cannot be determined under   
     the provisions of section 2(1). For an illustration of this, a royalty 
     is paid on the basis of the price actually paid or payable in a sale of
     a liter of a particular good that is produced by using a material that 
     was purchased by the kilogram and made up into a solution. If the      
     royalty is based partially on the purchased material and partially on  
     other factors that have nothing to do with that material, such as when 
     the purchased material is mixed with other ingredients and is no longer
     separately identifiable, or when the royalty cannot be distinguished   
     from special financial arrangements between the seller and the         
     producer, it would be inappropriate to add the royalty and the         
     transaction value of the material could not be determined. However, if 
     the amount of the royalty is based only on the purchased material and  
     can be readily quantified, an addition to the price actually paid or   
     payable can be made and the transaction value can be determined.       
    SECTION 3.                                                              
    
    [[Page 46447]]
                                                                            
    (1) In determining whether the transaction value is unacceptable under  
     section 2(3)(d), the fact that the seller and the producer are related 
     persons shall not in itself be grounds for the customs administration  
     to render the transaction value unacceptable. In such cases, the       
     circumstances surrounding the sale shall be examined and the           
     transaction value shall be accepted provided that the relationship     
     between the seller and the producer did not influence the price        
     actually paid or payable. Where the customs administration has         
     reasonable grounds for considering that the relationship between the   
     seller and the producer influenced the price, the customs              
     administration shall communicate the grounds to the producer, and that 
     producer shall be given a reasonable opportunity to respond to the     
     grounds communicated by the customs administration. If that producer so
     requests, the customs administration shall communicate in writing the  
     grounds on which it considers that the relationship between the seller 
     and the producer influenced the price actually paid or payable.        
    (2) Subsection (1) provides that, where the seller and the producer are 
     related persons, the circumstances surrounding the sale shall be       
     examined and the transaction value shall be accepted as the value      
     provided that the relationship between the seller and the producer did 
     not influence the price actually paid or payable. It is not intended   
     under subsection (1) that there should be an examination of the        
     circumstances in all cases where the seller and the producer are       
     related persons. Such an examination will only be required where the   
     customs administration has doubts that the price actually paid or      
     payable is acceptable because of the relationship between the seller   
     and the producer. Where the customs administration does not have doubts
     that the price actually paid or payable is acceptable, it shall accept 
     that price without requesting further information. For an illustration 
     of this, the customs administration may have previously examined the   
     relationship between the seller and the producer, or it may already    
     have detailed information concerning the relationship between the      
     seller and the producer, and may already be satisfied from that        
     examination or information that the relationship between them did not  
     influence the price actually paid or payable.                          
    (3) In applying subsection (1), where the seller and the producer are   
     related persons and the customs administration has doubts that the     
     transaction value is acceptable without further inquiry, the customs   
     administration shall give the producer an opportunity to supply such   
     further information as may be necessary to enable it to examine the    
     circumstances surrounding the sale. In such a case, the customs        
     administration shall examine the relevant aspects of the sale,         
     including the way in which the seller and the producer organize their  
     commercial relations and the way in which the price actually paid or   
     payable by that producer for the material being valued was arrived at, 
     in order to determine whether the relationship between the seller and  
     the producer influenced that price actually paid or payable. Where it  
     can be shown that the seller and the producer buy from and sell to each
     other as if they were not related persons, the price actually paid or  
     payable shall be considered as not having been influenced by the       
     relationship between them. For an illustration of this, if the price   
     actually paid or payable for the material had been settled in a manner 
     consistent with the normal pricing practices of the industry in        
     question or with the way in which the seller settles prices for sales  
     to unrelated buyers, the price actually paid or payable shall be       
     considered as not having been influenced by the relationship between   
     the producer and the seller. For another illustration of this, where it
     is shown that the price actually paid or payable for the material is   
     adequate to ensure recovery of the total cost of producing the material
     plus a profit that is representative of the seller's overall profit    
     realized over a representative period of time, such as on an annual    
     basis, in sales of materials of the same class or kind, the price      
     actually paid or payable shall be considered as not having been        
     influenced by the relationship between the seller and the producer.    
    (4) In a sale between a seller and a producer who are related persons,  
     the transaction value shall be accepted and determined in accordance   
     with section 2(1), wherever the seller or the producer demonstrates    
     that the transaction value of the material in that sale closely        
     approximates one of the following test values that occurs at or about  
     the same time as the sale and is chosen by the seller or the producer: 
      (a) the transaction value in sales to unrelated buyers of identical   
       materials or similar materials, as determined in accordance with     
       section 2(1);                                                        
      (b) the value of identical materials or similar materials, as         
       determined in accordance with section 9; or                          
      (c) the value of identical materials or similar materials, as         
       determined in accordance with section 10.                            
    (5) In applying a test value referred to in subsection (4), due account 
     shall be taken of demonstrated differences in commercial levels,       
     quantity levels, the value of the elements specified in section 5(1)(b)
     and the costs incurred by the seller in sales to unrelated buyers that 
     are not incurred by the seller in sales by the seller to a related     
     person.                                                                
    (6) The application of a test value referred to in subsection (4) shall 
     be used at the initiative of the seller, or at the initiative of the   
     producer with the consent of the seller, and shall be used only for    
     comparison purposes to determine whether the transaction value of the  
     material is acceptable. The test value shall not be used as the        
     transaction value of that material.                                    
    (7) Subsection (4) provides an opportunity for the seller or the        
     producer to demonstrate that the transaction value closely approximates
     a test value previously accepted by the customs administration of the  
     NAFTA country in which the producer is located, and is therefore       
     acceptable under subsection (1). Where the application of a test value 
     under subsection (4) demonstrates that the transaction value of the    
     material being valued is acceptable, the customs administration shall  
     not examine the question of influence in regard to the relationship    
     between the seller and the producer under subsection (1). Where the    
     customs administration already has sufficient information available,   
     without further inquiries, that the transaction value closely          
     approximates one of the test values determined under subsection (4),   
     the seller or the producer is not required to apply a test value to    
     demonstrate that the transaction value is acceptable under that        
     subsection.                                                            
    (8) A number of factors must be taken into consideration for the purpose
     of determining whether the transaction value of the identical materials
     or similar materials closely approximates the transaction value of the 
     material being valued. These factors include the nature of the         
     material, the nature of the industry itself, the season in which the   
     material is sold, and whether the difference in values is commercially 
     significant. Since these factors may vary from case to case, it would  
     be impossible to apply an acceptable standardized difference such as a 
     fixed amount or fixed percentage difference in each case. For an       
     illustration of this, a small difference in value in a case involving  
     one type of material could be unacceptable, while a large difference in
     a case involving another type of material might be acceptable for the  
     purposes of determining whether the transaction value closely          
     approximates a test value set out in subsection (4).                   
    
    [[Page 46448]]
                                                                            
    SECTION 4.                                                              
    (1) The price actually paid or payable is the total payment made or to  
     be made by the producer to or for the benefit of the seller of the     
     material. The payment need not necessarily take the form of a transfer 
     of money: it may be made by letters of credit or negotiable            
     instruments. Payment may be made directly or indirectly to the seller. 
     For an illustration of this, the settlement by the producer, whether in
     whole or in part, of a debt owed by the seller, is an indirect payment.
    (2) Activities undertaken by the producer on the producer's own account,
     other than those for which an adjustment is provided in section 5,     
     shall not be considered to be an indirect payment, even though the     
     activities might be regarded as being for the benefit of the seller.   
    (3) The transaction value shall not include charges for construction,   
     erection, assembly, maintenance or technical assistance related to the 
     use of the material by the producer, provided that they are            
     distinguished from the price actually paid or payable.                 
    (4) The flow of dividends or other payments from the producer to the    
     seller that do not relate to the purchase of the material are not part 
     of the transaction value.                                              
    SECTION 5.                                                              
    (1) In determining the transaction value of the material, the following 
     shall be added to the price actually paid or payable:                  
      (a) to the extent that they are incurred by the producer with respect 
       to the material being valued and are not included in the price       
       actually paid or payable,                                            
        (i) commissions and brokerage fees, except buying commissions, and  
        (ii) the costs of containers which, for customs purposes, are       
         classified with the material under the Harmonized System;          
      (b) the value, reasonably allocated in accordance with subsection     
       (12), of the following elements where they are supplied directly or  
       indirectly to the seller by the producer free of charge or at reduced
       cost for use in connection with the production and sale of the       
       material, to the extent that the value is not included in the price  
       actually paid or payable:                                            
        (i) a material, other than an indirect material, used in the        
         production of the material being valued,                           
        (ii) tools, dies, molds and similar indirect materials used in the  
         production of the material being valued,                           
        (iii) an indirect material, other than those referred to in         
         subparagraph (ii) or in paragraphs (c), (e) or (f) of the          
         definition ``indirect material'' set out in Article 415 of the     
         Agreement, as implemented by section 2(1) of this Appendix, used in
         the production of the material being valued, and                   
        (iv) engineering, development, artwork, design work, and plans and  
         sketches performed outside the territory of the NAFTA country in   
         which the producer is located that are necessary for the production
         of the material being valued;                                      
      (c) the royalties related to the material, other than charges with    
       respect to the right to reproduce the material in the territory of   
       the NAFTA country in which the producer is located that the producer 
       must pay directly or indirectly as a condition of sale of the        
       material, to the extent that such royalties are not included in the  
       price actually paid or payable; and                                  
      (d) the value of any part of the proceeds of any subsequent disposal  
       or use of the material that accrues directly or indirectly to the    
       seller.                                                              
    (2) The additions referred to in subsection (1) shall be made to the    
     price actually paid or payable under this section only on the basis of 
     objective and quantifiable data.                                       
    (3) Where objective and quantifiable data do not exist with regard to   
     the additions required to be made to the price actually paid or payable
     under subsection (1), the transaction value cannot be determined under 
     section 2(1).                                                          
    (4) No additions shall be made to the price actually paid or payable for
     the purpose of determining the transaction value except as provided in 
     this section.                                                          
    (5) The amounts to be added under subsection (1)(a) shall be those      
     amounts that are recorded on the books of the producer.                
    (6) The value of the elements referred to in subsection (1)(b)(i) shall 
     be                                                                     
      (a) where the elements are imported from outside the territory of the 
       NAFTA country in which the seller is located, the customs value of   
       the elements,                                                        
      (b) where the producer, or a related person on behalf of the producer,
       purchases the elements from an unrelated person in the territory of  
       the NAFTA country in which the seller is located, the price actually 
       paid or payable for the elements,                                    
      (c) where the producer, or a related person on behalf of the producer,
       acquires the elements from an unrelated person in the territory of   
       the NAFTA country in which the seller is located other than through a
       purchase, the value of the consideration related to the acquisition  
       of the elements, based on the cost of the consideration that is      
       recorded on the books of the producer or the related person, or      
      (d) where the elements are produced by the producer, or by a related  
       person, in the territory of the NAFTA country in which the seller is 
       located, the total cost of the elements, determined in accordance    
       with subsection (7),                                                 
    and shall include the following costs, that are recorded on the books of
     the producer or the related person supplying the elements on behalf of 
     the producer, to the extent that such costs are not included under     
     paragraph (a) through (d):                                             
      (e) the costs of freight, insurance, packing, and all other costs     
       incurred in transporting the elements to the location of the seller, 
      (f) duties and taxes paid or payable with respect to the elements,    
       other than duties and taxes that are waived, refunded, refundable or 
       otherwise recoverable, including credit against duty or tax paid or  
       payable,                                                             
      (g) customs brokerage fees, including the cost of in-house customs    
       brokerage services, incurred with respect to the elements, and       
      (h) the cost of waste and spoilage resulting from the use of the      
       elements in the production of the material, minus the value of       
       reusable scrap or by-product.                                        
    
    [[Page 46449]]
                                                                            
    (7) For the purposes of subsection (6)(d), the total cost of the        
     elements referred to in subsection (1)(b)(i) shall be                  
      (a) where the elements are produced by the producer, at the choice of 
       the producer,                                                        
        (i) the total cost incurred with respect to all goods produced by   
         the producer, calculated on the basis of the costs that are        
         recorded on the books of the producer, that can be reasonably      
         allocated to the elements in accordance with Schedule VII, or      
        (ii) the aggregate of each cost incurred by the producer that forms 
         part of the total cost incurred with respect to the elements,      
         calculated on the basis of the costs that are recorded on the books
         of the producer, that can be reasonably allocated to the elements  
         in accordance with Schedule VII; and                               
      (b) where the elements are produced by a person who is related to the 
       producer, at the choice of the producer,                             
        (i) the total cost incurred with respect to all goods produced by   
         that related person, calculated on the basis of the costs that are 
         recorded on the books of that person, that can be reasonably       
         allocated to the elements in accordance with Schedule VII, or      
        (ii) the aggregate of each cost incurred by that related person that
         forms part of the total cost incurred with respect to the elements,
         calculated on the basis of the costs that are recorded on the books
         of that person, that can be reasonably allocated to the elements in
         accordance with Schedule VII.                                      
    (8) Except as provided in subsections (10) and (11), the value of the   
     elements referred to in subsections (1)(b)(ii) through (iv) shall be   
      (a) the cost of those elements that is recorded on the books of the   
       producer; or                                                         
      (b) where such elements are provided by another person on behalf of   
       the producer and the cost is not recorded on the books of the        
       producer, the cost of those elements that is recorded on the books of
       that other person.                                                   
    (9) Where the elements referred to in subsections (1)(b)(ii) through    
     (iv) were previously used by or on behalf of the producer, the value of
     the elements shall be adjusted downward to reflect that use.           
    (10) Where the elements referred to in subsections (1)(b)(ii) and (iii) 
     were leased by the producer or a person related to the producer, the   
     value of the elements shall be the cost of the lease that is recorded  
     on the books of the producer or that related person.                   
    (11) No addition shall be made to the price actually paid or payable for
     the elements referred to in subsection (1)(b)(iv) that are available in
     the public domain, other than the cost of obtaining copies of them.    
    (12) The producer shall choose the method of allocating to the material 
     the value of the elements referred to in subsections (1)(b)(ii) through
     (iv), provided that the value is reasonably allocated to the material  
     in a manner appropriate to the circumstances. The methods the producer 
     may choose to allocate the value include allocating the value over the 
     number of units produced up to the time of the first shipment or       
     allocating the value over the entire anticipated production where      
     contracts or firm commitments exist for that production. For an        
     illustration of this, a producer provides the seller with a mold to be 
     used in the production of the material and contracts with the seller to
     buy 10,000 units of that material. By the time the first shipment of   
     1,000 units arrives, the seller has already produced 4,000 units. In   
     these circumstances, the producer may choose to allocate the value of  
     the mold over 4,000 units or 10,000 units but shall not choose to      
     allocate the value of the elements to the first shipment of 1,000      
     units. The producer may choose to allocate the entire value of the     
     elements to a single shipment of material only where that single       
     shipment comprises all of the units of the material acquired by the    
     producer under the contract or commitment for that number of units of  
     the material between the seller and the producer.                      
    (13) The addition for the royalties referred to in subsection (1)(c)    
     shall be the payment for the royalties that is recorded on the books of
     the producer, or where the payment for the royalties is recorded on the
     books of another person, the payment for the royalties that is recorded
     on the books of that other person.                                     
    (14) The value of the proceeds referred to in subsection (1)(d) shall be
     the amount that is recorded for such proceeds on the books of the      
     producer or the seller.                                                
    SECTION 6.                                                              
    (1) If there is no transaction value under section 2(2) or the          
     transaction value is unacceptable under section 2(3), the value of the 
     material, referred to in Article 402(9)(b) of the Agreement, as        
     implemented by section 7(1)(b)(ii) of Part IV of this Appendix, shall  
     be the transaction value of identical materials sold, at or about the  
     same time as the material being valued was shipped to the producer, to 
     a buyer located in the same country as the producer.                   
    (2) In applying this section, the transaction value of identical        
     materials in a sale at the same commercial level and in substantially  
     the same quantity of materials as the material being valued shall be   
     used to determine the value of the material. Where no such sale is     
     found, the transaction value of identical materials sold at a different
     commercial level or in different quantities, adjusted to take into     
     account the differences attributable to the commercial level or        
     quantity, shall be used, provided that such adjustments can be made on 
     the basis of evidence that clearly establishes that the adjustment is  
     reasonable and accurate, whether the adjustment leads to an increase or
     a decrease in the value.                                               
    (3) A condition for adjustment under subsection (2) because of different
     commercial levels or different quantities is that such adjustment be   
     made only on the basis of evidence that clearly establishes that an    
     adjustment is reasonable and accurate. For an illustration of this, a  
     bona fide price list contains prices for different quantities. If the  
     material being valued consists of a shipment of 10 units and the only  
     identical materials for which a transaction value exists involved a    
     sale of 500 units, and it is recognized that the seller grants quantity
     discounts, the required adjustment may be accomplished by resorting to 
     the seller's bona fide price list and using the price applicable to a  
     sale of 10 units. This does not require that sales had to have been    
     made in quantities of 10 as long as the price list has been established
     as being bona fide through sales at other quantities. In the absence of
     such an objective measure, however, the determination of a value under 
     this section is not appropriate.                                       
    (4) If more than one transaction value of identical materials is found, 
     the lowest such value shall be used to determine the value of the      
     material under this section.                                           
    SECTION 7.                                                              
    
    [[Page 46450]]
                                                                            
    (1) If there is no transaction value under section 2(2) or the          
     transaction value is unacceptable under section 2(3), and the value of 
     the material cannot be determined under section 6, the value of the    
     material, referred to in Article 402(9)(b) of the Agreement, as        
     implemented by section 7(1)(b)(ii) of Part IV of this Appendix, shall  
     be the transaction value of similar materials sold, at or about the    
     same time as the material being valued was shipped to the producer, to 
     a buyer located in the same country as the producer.                   
    (2) In applying this section, the transaction value of similar materials
     in a sale at the same commercial level and in substantially the same   
     quantity of materials as the material being valued shall be used to    
     determine the value of the material. Where no such sale is found, the  
     transaction value of similar materials sold at a different commercial  
     level or in different quantities, adjusted to take into account the    
     differences attributable to the commercial level or quantity, shall be 
     used, provided that such adjustments can be made on the basis of       
     evidence that clearly establishes that the adjustment is reasonable and
     accurate, whether the adjustment leads to an increase or a decrease in 
     the value.                                                             
    (3) A condition for adjustment under subsection (2) because of different
     commercial levels or different quantities is that such adjustment be   
     made only on the basis of evidence that clearly establishes that an    
     adjustment is reasonable and accurate. For an illustration of this, a  
     bona fide price list contains prices for different quantities. If the  
     material being valued consists of a shipment of 10 units and the only  
     similar materials for which a transaction value exists involved a sale 
     of 500 units, and it is recognized that the seller grants quantity     
     discounts, the required adjustment may be accomplished by resorting to 
     the seller's bona fide price list and using the price applicable to a  
     sale of 10 units. This does not require that sales had to have been    
     made in quantities of 10 as long as the price list has been established
     as being bona fide through sales at other quantities. In the absence of
     such an objective measure, however, the determination of a value under 
     this section is not appropriate.                                       
    (4) If more than one transaction value of similar materials is found,   
     the lowest such value shall be used to determine the value of the      
     material under this section.                                           
    SECTION 8.                                                              
        If there is no transaction value under section 2(2) or the          
     transaction value is unacceptable under section 2(3), and the value of 
     the material cannot be determined under section 6 or 7, the value of   
     the material, referred to in Article 402(9)(b) of the Agreement, as    
     implemented by section 7(1)(b)(ii) of Part IV of this Appendix, shall  
     be determined under section 9 or, when the value cannot be determined  
     under that section, under section 10 except that, at the request of the
     producer, the order of application of sections 9 and 10 shall be       
     reversed.                                                              
    SECTION 9.                                                              
    (1) Under this section, if identical materials or similar materials are 
     sold in the territory of the NAFTA country in which the producer is    
     located, in the same condition as the material was in when received by 
     the producer, the value of the material, referred to in Article        
     402(9)(b) of the Agreement, as implemented by section 7(1)(b)(ii) of   
     Part IV of this Appendix, shall be based on the unit price at which    
     those identical materials or similar materials are sold, in the        
     greatest aggregate quantity by the producer or, where the producer does
     not sell those identical materials or similar materials, by a person at
     the same trade level as the producer, at or about the same time as the 
     material being valued is received by the producer, to persons located  
     in that territory who are not related to the seller, subject to        
     deductions for the following:                                          
      (a) either the amount of commissions usually earned or the amount     
       generally reflected for profit and general expenses, in connection   
       with sales, in the territory of that NAFTA country, of materials of  
       the same class or kind as the material being valued; and             
      (b) taxes, if included in the unit price, payable in the territory of 
       that NAFTA country, which are either waived, refunded or recoverable 
       by way of credit against taxes actually paid or payable.             
    (2) If neither identical materials nor similar materials are sold at or 
     about the same time the material being valued is received by the       
     producer, the value shall, subject to the deductions provided for under
     subsection (1), be based on the unit price at which identical materials
     or similar materials are sold in the territory of the NAFTA country in 
     which the producer is located, in the same condition as the material   
     was in when received by the producer, at the earliest date within 90   
     days after the date the material being valued was received by the      
     producer.                                                              
    (3) The expression ``unit price at which those identical materials or   
     similar materials are sold, in the greatest aggregate quantity'' in    
     subsection (1) means the price at which the greatest number of units is
     sold in sales between unrelated persons. For an illustration of this,  
     materials are sold from a price list which grants favorable unit prices
     for purchases made in larger quantities.                               
                                                                            
    
    
    
    
    ----------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------
                                                                                                      Total quantity
                Sale quantity              Unit price                 Number of sales                  sold at each 
                                                                                                           price    
    ----------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------
    1-10 units..........................          100  10 sales of 5 units..........................              65
                                          ...........  5 sales of 3 units...........................  ..............
    11-25 units.........................           95  5 sales of 11 units..........................              55
                                          ...........  1 sale of 20 units...........................  ..............
    Over 25 units.......................           90  1 sale of 30 units...........................              80
                                          ...........  1 sale of 50 units...........................  ..............
    ----------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------
    
    
    
        The greatest number of units sold at a particular price is 80;      
     therefore, the unit price in the greatest aggregate quantity is 90.    
        As another illustration of this, two sales occur. In the first sale 
     500 units are sold at a price of 95 currency units each. In the second 
     sale 400 units are sold at a price of 90 currency units each. In this  
     illustration, the greatest number of units sold at a particular price  
     is 500; therefore, the unit price in the greatest aggregate quantity is
     95.                                                                    
    
    [[Page 46451]]
                                                                            
    (4) Any sale to a person who supplies, directly or indirectly, free of  
     charge or at reduced cost for use in connection with the production of 
     the material, any of the elements specified in section 5(1)(b), shall  
     not be taken into account in establishing the unit price for the       
     purposes of this section.                                              
    (5) The amount generally reflected for profit and general expenses      
     referred to in subsection (1)(a) shall be taken as a whole. The figure 
     for the purposes of deducting an amount for profit and general expenses
     shall be determined on the basis of information supplied by or on      
     behalf of the producer unless the figures provided by the producer are 
     inconsistent with those usually reflected in sales, in the country in  
     which the producer is located, of materials of the same class or kind  
     as the material being valued. Where the figures provided by the        
     producer are inconsistent with those figures, the amount for profit and
     general expenses shall be based on relevant information other than that
     supplied by or on behalf of the producer.                              
    (6) For the purposes of this section, general expenses are the direct   
     and indirect costs of marketing the material in question.              
    (7) In determining either the commissions usually earned or the amount  
     generally reflected for profit and general expenses under this section,
     the question as to whether certain materials are materials of the same 
     class or kind as the material being valued shall be determined on a    
     case-by-case basis with reference to the circumstances involved. Sales 
     in the country in which the producer is located of the narrowest group 
     or range of materials of the same class or kind as the material being  
     valued, for which the necessary information can be provided, shall be  
     examined. For the purposes of this section, ``materials of the same    
     class or kind'' includes materials imported from the same country as   
     the material being valued as well as materials imported from other     
     countries or acquired within the territory of the NAFTA country in     
     which the producer is located.                                         
    (8) For the purposes of subsection (2), the earliest date shall be the  
     date by which sales of identical materials or similar materials are    
     made, in sufficient quantity to establish the unit price, to other     
     persons in the territory of the NAFTA country in which the producer is 
     located.                                                               
    SECTION 10.                                                             
    (1) Under this section, the value of a material, referred to in Article 
     402(9)(b) of the Agreement, as implemented by section 7(1)(b)(ii) of   
     Part IV of this Appendix, shall be the sum of                          
      (a) the cost or value of the materials used in the production of the  
       material being valued, as determined on the basis of the costs that  
       are recorded on the books of the producer of the material,           
      (b) the cost of producing the material being valued, as determined on 
       the basis of the costs that are recorded on the books of the producer
       of the material, and                                                 
      (c) an amount for profit and general expenses equal to that usually   
       reflected in sales                                                   
        (i) where the material being valued is imported by the producer into
         the territory of the NAFTA country in which the producer is        
         located, to persons located in the territory of the NAFTA country  
         in which the producer is located by producers of materials of the  
         same class or kind as the material being valued who are located in 
         the country in which the material is produced, and                 
        (ii) where the material being valued is acquired by the producer    
         from another person located in the territory of the NAFTA country  
         in which the producer is located, to persons located in the        
         territory of the NAFTA country in which the producer is located by 
         producers of materials of the same class or kind as the material   
         being valued who are located in the country in which the producer  
         is located,                                                        
      (d) the value of elements referred to in section 5(1)(b)(i),          
       determined in accordance with section 5(6), and                      
      (e) the value of elements referred to in sections 5(1)(b)(ii) through 
       (iv), determined in accordance with section 5(8) and reasonably      
       allocated to the material in accordance with section 5(12).          
    (2) For purposes of subsections (1)(a) and (b), where the costs recorded
     on the books of the producer of the material relate to the production  
     of other goods and materials as well as to the production of the       
     material being valued, the costs referred to in subsections (1)(a) and 
     (b) with respect to the material being valued shall be those costs     
     recorded on the books of the producer of the material that can be      
     reasonably allocated to that material in accordance with Schedule VII. 
    (3) The amount for profit and general expenses referred to in subsection
     (1)(c) shall be determined on the basis of information supplied by or  
     on behalf of the producer of the material being valued unless the      
     profit and general expenses figures that are supplied with that        
     information are inconsistent with those usually reflected in sales by  
     producers of materials of the same class or kind as the material being 
     valued who are located in the country in which the material is produced
     or the producer is located, as the case may be. The information        
     supplied shall be prepared in a manner consistent with generally       
     accepted accounting principles of the country in which the material    
     being valued is produced. Where the material is produced in the        
     territory of a NAFTA country, the information shall be prepared in     
     accordance with the Generally Accepted Accounting Principles set out in
     the authorities listed for that NAFTA country in Schedule XII.         
    (4) For purposes of subsection (1)(c) and subsection (3), general       
     expenses means the direct and indirect costs of producing and selling  
     the material that are not included under subsections (1)(a) and (b).   
    (5) For purposes of subsection (3), the amount for profit and general   
     expenses shall be taken as a whole. Where, in the information supplied 
     by or on behalf of the producer of a material, the profit figure is low
     and the general expenses figure is high, the profit and general expense
     figures taken together may nevertheless be consistent with those       
     usually reflected in sales of materials of the same class or kind as   
     the material being valued. Where the producer of a material can        
     demonstrate that it is taking a nil or low profit on its sales of the  
     material because of particular commercial circumstances, its actual    
     profit and general expense figures shall be taken into account,        
     provided that the producer of the material has valid commercial reasons
     to justify them and its pricing policy reflects usual pricing policies 
     in the branch of industry concerned. For an illustration of this, such 
     a situation might occur where producers have been forced to lower      
     prices temporarily because of an unforeseeable drop in demand, or where
     the producers sell the material to complement a range of materials and 
     goods being produced in the country in which the material is sold and  
     accept a low profit to maintain competitiveness. A further illustration
     is where a material was being launched and the producer accepted a nil 
     or low profit to offset high general expenses associated with the      
     launch.                                                                
    
    [[Page 46452]]
                                                                            
    (6) Where the figures for the profit and general expenses supplied by or
     on behalf of the producer of the material are not consistent with those
     usually reflected in sales of materials of the same class or kind as   
     the material being valued that are made by other producers in the      
     country in which that material is sold, the amount for profit and      
     general expenses may be based on relevant information other than that  
     supplied by or on behalf of the producer of the material.              
    (7) Where a customs administration uses information other than that     
     supplied by or on behalf of the producer of the material for the       
     purposes of determining the value of a material under this section, the
     customs administration shall communicate to the producer, if that      
     producer so requests, the source of such information, the data used and
     the calculations based upon such data, subject to the provisions on    
     confidentiality under Article 507 of the Agreement, as implemented in  
     each NAFTA country.                                                    
    (8) Whether certain materials are of the same class or kind as the      
     material being valued shall be determined on a case-by-case basis with 
     reference to the circumstances involved. For purposes of determining   
     the amount for profit and general expenses usually reflected under the 
     provisions of this section, sales of the narrowest group or range of   
     materials of the same class or kind, which includes the material being 
     valued, for which the necessary information can be provided, shall be  
     examined. For the purposes of this section, the materials of the same  
     class or kind must be from the same country as the material being      
     valued.                                                                
    SECTION 11.                                                             
    (1) Where there is no transaction value under section 2(2) or the       
     transaction value is unacceptable under section 2(3), and the value of 
     the materials cannot be determined under sections 6 through 10, the    
     value of the material, referred to in Article 402(9)(b) of the         
     Agreement, as implemented by section 7(1)(b)(ii) of Part IV of this    
     Appendix, shall be determined under this section using reasonable means
     consistent with the principles and general provisions of this Schedule 
     and on the basis of data available in the country in which the producer
     is located.                                                            
    (2) The value of the material determined under this section shall not be
     determined on the basis of                                             
      (a) a valuation system which provides for the acceptance of the higher
       of two alternative values;                                           
      (b) a cost of production other than the value determined in accordance
       with section 10;                                                     
      (c) minimum values;                                                   
      (d) arbitrary or fictitious values;                                   
      (e) where the material is produced in the territory of the NAFTA      
       country in which the producer is located, the price of the material  
       for export from that territory; or                                   
      (f) where the material is imported, the price of the material for     
       export to a country other than to the territory of the NAFTA country 
       in which the producer is located.                                    
    (3) To the greatest extent possible, the value of the material          
     determined under this section shall be based on the methods of         
     valuation set out in sections 2 through 10, but a reasonable           
     flexibility in the application of such methods would be in conformity  
     with the aims and provisions of this section. For an illustration of   
     this, under section 6, the requirement that the identical materials    
     should be sold at or about the same time as the time the material being
     valued is shipped to the producer could be flexibly interpreted.       
     Similarly, identical materials produced in a country other than the    
     country in which the material is produced could be the basis for       
     determining the value of the material, or the value of identical       
     materials already determined under section 9 could be used. For another
     illustration, under section 7, the requirement that the similar        
     materials should be sold at or about the same time as the material     
     being valued are shipped to the producer could be flexibly interpreted.
     Likewise, similar materials produced in a country other than the       
     country in which the material is produced could be the basis for       
     determining the value of the material, or the value of similar         
     materials already determined under the provisions of section 9 could be
     used. For a further illustration, under section 9, the ninety days     
     requirement could be administered flexibly.                            
                                                                            
                                   SCHEDULE IX                              
     METHODS FOR DETERMINING THE VALUE OF NON-ORIGINATING MATERIALS THAT ARE
        IDENTICAL MATERIALS AND THAT ARE USED IN THE PRODUCTION OF A GOOD   
                         Definitions and Interpretation                     
                                                                            
    SECTION 1. Definitions.                                                 
        For purposes of this Schedule,                                      
    ``FIFO method'' means the method by which the value of non-originating  
     materials first received in materials inventory, determined in         
     accordance with section 7 of this Appendix, is considered to be the    
     value of non-originating materials used in the production of the good  
     first shipped to the buyer of the good;                                
    ``identical materials'' means, with respect to a material, materials    
     that are the same as that material in all respects, including physical 
     characteristics, quality and reputation but excluding minor differences
     in appearance;                                                         
    ``LIFO method'' means the method by which the value of non-originating  
     materials last received in materials inventory, determined in          
     accordance with section 7 of this Appendix, is considered to be the    
     value of non-originating materials used in the production of the good  
     first shipped to the buyer of the good;                                
    ``materials inventory'' means, with respect to a single plant of the    
     producer of a good, an inventory of non-originating materials that are 
     identical materials and that are used in the production of the good;   
     and                                                                    
    ``rolling average method'' means the method by which the value of non-  
     originating materials used in the production of a good that is shipped 
     to the buyer of the good is based on the average value, calculated in  
     accordance with section 4, of the non-originating materials in         
     materials inventory.                                                   
                                                                            
                                     General                                
                                                                            
    SECTION 2.                                                              
        For purposes of sections 5(11) and (12) and 6(10) of this Appendix, 
     the following are the methods for determining the value of non-        
     originating materials that are identical materials and are used in the 
     production of a good:                                                  
      (a) FIFO method;                                                      
      (b) LIFO method; and                                                  
    
    [[Page 46453]]
                                                                            
      (c) rolling average method.                                           
    SECTION 3.                                                              
    (1) Where a producer of a good chooses, with respect to non-originating 
     materials that are identical materials, any of the methods referred to 
     in section 2, the producer may not use another of those methods with   
     respect to any other non-originating materials that are identical      
     materials and that are used in the production of that good or in the   
     production of any other good.                                          
    (2) Where a producer of a good produces the good in more than one plant,
     the method chosen by the producer shall be used with respect to all    
     plants of the producer in which the good is produced.                  
    (3) The method chosen by the producer to determine the value of non-    
     originating materials may be chosen at any time during the producer's  
     fiscal year and may not be changed during that fiscal year.            
                                                                            
                    Average Value for Rolling Average Method                
                                                                            
    SECTION 4.                                                              
    (1) The average value of non-originating materials that are identical   
     materials and that are used in the production of a good that is shipped
     to the buyer of the good is calculated by dividing                     
      (a) the total value of non-originating materials that are identical   
       materials in materials inventory prior to the shipment of the good,  
       determined in accordance with section 7 of this Appendix,            
    by                                                                      
      (b) the total units of those non-originating materials in materials   
       inventory prior to the shipment of the good.                         
    (2) The average value calculated under subsection (1) is applied to the 
     remaining units of non-originating materials in materials inventory.   
                                                                            
                                    ADDENDUM                                
    ``EXAMPLES'' ILLUSTRATING THE APPLICATION OF THE METHODS FOR DETERMINING
     THE VALUE OF NON-ORIGINATING MATERIALS THAT ARE IDENTICAL MATERIALS AND
                    THAT ARE USED IN THE PRODUCTION OF A GOOD               
                                                                            
        The following ``examples'' are based on the figures set out in the  
     table below and on the following assumptions:                          
      (a) Materials A are non-originating materials that are identical      
       materials that are used in the production of Good A;                 
      (b) one unit of Materials A is used to produce one unit of Good A;    
      (c) all other materials used in the production of Good A are          
       originating materials; and                                           
      (d) Good A is produced in a single plant.                             
                                                                            
    
    
    
    ----------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------
                                                               Materials inventory (Receipts of     Sales (Shipments
                                                                         materials A)                  of good A)   
                          Date (M/D/Y)                      --------------------------------------------------------
                                                              Quantity (units)     Unit cost *      Quantity (units)
    ----------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------
    01/01/94...............................................                200              $1.05  .................
    01/03/94...............................................              1,000               1.00  .................
    01/05/94...............................................              1,000               1.10  .................
    01/08/94...............................................  .................  .................                500
    01/09/94...............................................  .................  .................                500
    01/10/94...............................................              1,000               1.05  .................
    01/14/94...............................................  .................  .................              1,500
    01/16/94...............................................              2,000               1.10  .................
    01/18/94...............................................  .................  .................             1,500 
    ----------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------
    * Unit cost is determined in accordance with section 7 of this Appendix.                                        
    
    
    
    Example 1: FIFO method                                                  
        By applying the FIFO method:                                        
    (1) the 200 units of Materials A received on 01/01/94 and valued at     
     $1.05 per unit and 300 units of the 1,000 units of Material A received 
     on 01/03/94 and valued at $1.00 per unit are considered to have been   
     used in the production of the 500 units of Good A shipped on 01/08/94; 
     therefore, the value of the non-originating materials used in the      
     production of those goods is considered to be $510 [(200 unit  x       
     $1.05) + ($300 units  x  $1.00)];                                      
    (2) 500 units of the remaining 700 units of Materials A received on 01/ 
     03/94 and valued at $1.00 per unit are considered to have been used in 
     the production of the 500 units of Good A shipped on 01/09/94;         
     therefore, the value of the non-originating materials used in the      
     production of those goods is considered to be $500 (500 units  x       
     $1.00);                                                                
    (3) the remaining 200 units of the 1,000 of Materials A received on 01/ 
     03/94 and valued at $1.00 per unit, the 1,000 units of Materials A     
     received on 01/05/94 and valued at $1.10 per unit, and 300 units of the
     1,000 Materials A received on 01/10/94 and valued at $1.05 per unit are
     considered to have been used in the production of the 1,500 units of   
     Good A shipped on 01/14/94; therefore, the value of non-originating    
     materials used in the production of those goods is considered to be    
     $1,615 [(200 units  x  $1.00) + (1,000 units  x  $1.10) + (300 units  x
      $1.05)]; and                                                          
    (4) the remaining 700 units of the 1,000 units of Materials A received  
     on 01/10/94 and valued at $1.05 per unit and 800 units of the 2,000    
     units of Materials A received on 01/16/94 and valued at $1.10 per unit 
     are considered to have been used in the production of the 1,500 units  
     of Good A shipped on 01/18/94; therefore, the value of non-originating 
     materials used in the production of those goods is considered to be    
     $1,615 [(700  x  $1.05) + (800  x  $1.10)].                            
    Example 2: LIFO method                                                  
        By applying the LIFO method:                                        
    (1) 500 units of the 1,000 units of Materials A received on 01/05/94 and
     valued at $1.10 per unit are considered to have been used in the       
     production of the 500 units of Good A shipped on 01/08/94; therefore,  
     the value of the non-originating materials used in the production of   
     those goods is considered to be $550 (500 units  x  $1.10);            
    
    [[Page 46454]]
                                                                            
    (2) the remaining 500 units of the 1,000 units of Materials A received  
     on 01/05/94 and valued at $1.10 per unit are considered to have been   
     used in the production of the 500 units of Good A shipped on 01/09/94; 
     therefore, the value of non-originating materials used in the          
     production of those goods is considered to be $550 (500 units  x       
     $1.10);                                                                
    (3) the 1,000 units of Materials A received on 01/10/94 and valued at   
     $1.05 per unit and 500 units of the 1,000 units of Material A received 
     on 01/03/94 and valued at $1.00 per unit are considered to have been   
     used in the production of the 1,500 units of Good A shipped on 01/14/  
     94; therefore, the value of non-originating materials used in the      
     production of those goods is considered to be $1,550 [(1,000 units  x  
     $1.05) + (500 units  x  $1.00)]; and                                   
    (4) 1,500 units of the 2,000 units of Materials A received on 01/16/94  
     and valued at $1.10 per unit are considered to have been used in the   
     production of the 1,500 units of Good A shipped on 01/18/94; therefore,
     the value of non-originating materials used in the production of those 
     goods is considered to be $1,650 (1,500 units  x  $1.10).              
    Example 3: Rolling average method                                       
        The following table identifies the average value of non-originating 
     Materials A as determined under the rolling average method. For        
     purposes of this example, a new average value of non-originating       
     Materials A is calculated after each receipt.                          
                                                                            
    
    
    
    
    ----------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------
                                                   Materials inventory                                              
    -----------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------
                                             Date (M/D/Y)     Quantity (units)      Unit cost*        Total value   
    ----------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------
    Beginning Inventory.................             1/1/94                200              $1.05               $210
    Receipt.............................             1/3/94              1,000               1.00              1,000
    AVERAGE VALUE.......................  .................              1,200              1.008              1,210
    Receipt.............................             1/5/94              1,000               1.10              1,100
    AVERAGE VALUE.......................  .................              2,200               1.05              2,310
    Shipment............................             1/8/94                500               1.05                525
    AVERAGE VALUE.......................  .................              1,700               1.05              1,785
    Shipment............................             1/9/94                500               1.05                525
    AVERAGE VALUE.......................  .................              1,200               1.05              1,260
    Receipt.............................            1/16/94              2,000               1.10              2,200
    AVERAGE VALUE.......................  .................              3,200               1.08             3,460 
    ----------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------
    * Unit cost is determined in accordance with section 7 of this Appendix.                                        
    
    
    
      By applying the rolling average method:                               
    (1) the value of non-originating materials used in the production of the
     500 units of Good A shipped on 01/08/94 is considered to be $525 (500  
     units  x  $1.05); and                                                  
    (2) the value of non-originating materials used in the production of the
     500 units of Good A shipped on 01/09/94 is considered to be $525 (500  
     units  x  $1.05).                                                      
                                                                            
    
    
    
                                   SCHEDULE X                               
                          INVENTORY MANAGEMENT METHODS                      
                                                                            
                                     PART I                                 
                               FUNGIBLE MATERIALS                           
                                                                            
                         Definitions and Interpretation                     
                                                                            
    SECTION 1. Definitions.                                                 
        For purposes of this Part,                                          
    ``average method'' means the method by which the origin of fungible     
     materials withdrawn from materials inventory is based on the ratio,    
     calculated under section 5, of originating materials and non-          
     originating materials in materials inventory;                          
    ``FIFO method'' means the method by which the origin of fungible        
     materials first received in materials inventory is considered to be the
     origin of fungible materials first withdrawn from materials inventory; 
    ``LIFO method'' means the method by which the origin of fungible        
     materials last received in materials inventory is considered to be the 
     origin of fungible materials first withdrawn from materials inventory; 
    ``materials inventory'' means,                                          
      (a) with respect to a producer of a good, an inventory of fungible    
       materials that are used in the production of the good, and           
      (b) with respect to a person from whom the producer of the good       
       acquired those fungible materials, an inventory from which fungible  
       materials are sold or otherwise transferred to the producer of the   
       good;                                                                
    ``opening inventory'' means the materials inventory at the time an      
     inventory management method is chosen;                                 
    ``origin identifier'' means any mark that identifies fungible materials 
     as originating materials or non-originating materials.                 
                                                                            
                                     General                                
                                                                            
    SECTION 2.                                                              
        The inventory management methods for determining whether fungible   
     materials referred to in section 7(16)(a) of this Appendix are         
     originating materials are the following:                               
      (a) specific identification method;                                   
      (b) FIFO method;                                                      
      (c) LIFO method; and                                                  
      (d) average method.                                                   
    SECTION 3.                                                              
    
    [[Page 46455]]
                                                                            
        Where a producer of a good or a person from whom the producer       
     acquired the materials that are used in the production of the good     
     chooses an inventory management method referred to in section 2, that  
     method, including the averaging period chosen in the case of the       
     average method, shall be used from the time the choice is made until   
     the end of the fiscal year of the producer or person.                  
                                                                            
                         Specific Identification Method                     
                                                                            
    SECTION 4.                                                              
    (1) Except as otherwise provided under subsection (2), where the        
     producer or person referred to in section 3 chooses the specific       
     identification method, the producer or person shall physically         
     segregate, in materials inventory, originating materials that are      
     fungible materials from non-originating materials that are fungible    
     materials.                                                             
    (2) Where originating materials or non-originating materials that are   
     fungible materials are marked with an origin identifier, the producer  
     or person need not physically segregate those materials under          
     subsection (1) if the origin identifier remains visible throughout the 
     production of the good.                                                
                                                                            
                                 Average Method                             
                                                                            
    SECTION 5.                                                              
        Where the producer or person referred to in section 3 chooses the   
     average method, the origin of fungible materials withdrawn from        
     materials inventory is determined on the basis of the ratio of         
     originating materials and non-originating materials in materials       
     inventory that is calculated under sections 6 through 8.               
    SECTION 6.                                                              
    (1) Except as otherwise provided in sections 7 and 8, the ratio is      
     calculated with respect to a month or three-month period, at the choice
     of the producer or person, by dividing                                 
      (a) the sum of                                                        
        (i) the total units of originating materials or non-originating     
         materials that are fungible materials and that were in materials   
         inventory at the beginning of the preceding one-month or three-    
         month period, and                                                  
        (ii) the total units of originating materials or non-originating    
         materials that are fungible materials and that were received in    
         materials inventory during that preceding one-month or three-month 
         period,                                                            
    by                                                                      
      (b) the sum of                                                        
        (i) the total units of originating materials and non-originating    
         materials that are fungible materials and that were in materials   
         inventory at the beginning of the preceding one-month or three-    
         month period, and                                                  
        (ii) the total units of originating materials and non-originating   
         materials that are fungible materials and that were received in    
         materials inventory during that preceding one-month or three-month 
         period.                                                            
    (2) The ratio calculated with respect to a preceding month or three-    
     month period under subsection (1) is applied to the fungible materials 
     remaining in materials inventory at the end of the preceding month or  
     three-month period.                                                    
    SECTION 7.                                                              
    (1) Where the good is subject to a regional value-content requirement   
     and the regional value content is calculated under the net cost method 
     and the producer or person chooses to average over a period under      
     sections 6(15), 11(1), (3) or (6), 12(1) or 13(4) of this Appendix, the
     ratio is calculated with respect to that period by dividing            
      (a) the sum of                                                        
        (i) the total units of originating materials or non-originating     
         materials that are fungible materials and that were in materials   
         inventory at the beginning of the period, and                      
        (ii) the total units of originating materials or non-originating    
         materials that are fungible materials and that were received in    
         materials inventory during that period,                            
    by                                                                      
      (b) the sum of                                                        
        (i) the total units of originating materials and non-originating    
         materials that are fungible materials and that were in materials   
         inventory at the beginning of the period, and                      
        (ii) the total units of originating materials and non-originating   
         materials that are fungible materials and that were received in    
         materials inventory during that period.                            
    (2) The ratio calculated with respect to a period under subsection (1)  
     is applied to the fungible materials remaining in materials inventory  
     at the end of the period.                                              
    SECTION 8.                                                              
    (1) Where the good is subject to a regional value-content requirement   
     and the regional value content of that good is calculated under the    
     transaction value method or the net cost method, the ratio is          
     calculated with respect to each shipment of the good by dividing       
      (a) the total units of originating materials or non-originating       
       materials that are fungible materials and that were in materials     
       inventory prior to the shipment,                                     
    by                                                                      
      (b) the total units of originating materials and non-originating      
       materials that are fungible materials and that were in materials     
       inventory prior to the shipment.                                     
    (2) The ratio calculated with respect to a shipment of a good under     
     subsection (1) is applied to the fungible materials remaining in       
     materials inventory after the shipment.                                
                                                                            
                    Manner of Dealing With Opening Inventory                
                                                                            
    SECTION 9.                                                              
    (1) Except as otherwise provided under subsections (2) and (3), where   
     the producer or person referred to in section 3 has fungible materials 
     in opening inventory, the origin of those fungible materials is        
     determined by                                                          
      (a) identifying, in the books of the producer or person, the latest   
       receipts of fungible materials that add up to the amount of fungible 
       materials in opening inventory;                                      
    
    [[Page 46456]]
                                                                            
      (b) determining the origin of the fungible materials that make up     
       those receipts; and                                                  
      (c) considering the origin of those fungible materials to be the      
       origin of the fungible materials in opening inventory.               
    (2) Where the producer or person chooses the specific identification    
     method and has, in opening inventory, originating materials or non-    
     originating materials that are fungible materials and that are marked  
     with an origin identifier, the origin of those fungible materials is   
     determined on the basis of the origin identifier.                      
    (3) The producer or person may consider all fungible materials in       
     opening inventory to be non-originating materials.                     
                                                                            
                                     PART II                                
                                 FUNGIBLE GOODS                             
                                                                            
                         Definitions and Interpretation                     
                                                                            
    SECTION 10. Definitions.                                                
        For purposes of this Part,                                          
    ``average method'' means the method by which the origin of fungible     
     goods withdrawn from finished goods inventory is based on the ratio,   
     calculated under section 12, of originating goods and non-originating  
     goods in finished goods inventory;                                     
    ``FIFO method'' means the method by which the origin of fungible goods  
     first received in finished goods inventory is considered to be the     
     origin of fungible goods first withdrawn from finished goods inventory;
    ``finished goods inventory'' means an inventory from which fungible     
     goods are sold or otherwise transferred to another person;             
    ``LIFO method'' means the method by which the origin of fungible goods  
     last received in finished goods inventory is considered to be the      
     origin of fungible goods first withdrawn from finished goods inventory;
    ``opening inventory'' means the finished goods inventory at the time an 
     inventory management method is chosen; and                             
    ``origin identifier'' means any mark that identifies fungible goods as  
     originating goods or non-originating goods.                            
                                                                            
                                     General                                
                                                                            
    SECTION 11.                                                             
        The inventory management methods for determining whether fungible   
     goods referred to in section 7(16)(b) of this Appendix are originating 
     goods are the following:                                               
      (a) specific identification method;                                   
      (b) FIFO method;                                                      
      (c) LIFO method; and                                                  
      (d) average method.                                                   
    SECTION 12.                                                             
        Where an exporter of a good or a person from whom the exporter      
     acquired the good chooses an inventory management method referred to in
     section 11, that method, including the averaging period chosen in the  
     case of the average method, shall be used from the time the choice is  
     made until the end of the fiscal year of the exporter or person.       
                                                                            
                         Specific Identification Method                     
                                                                            
    SECTION 13.                                                             
    (1) Except as provided under subsection (2), where the exporter or      
     person referred to in section 12 chooses the specific identification   
     method, the exporter or person shall physically segregate, in finished 
     goods inventory, originating goods that are fungible goods from non-   
     originating goods that are fungible goods.                             
    (2) Where originating goods or non-originating goods that are fungible  
     goods are marked with an origin identifier, the exporter or person need
     not physically segregate those goods under subsection (1) if the origin
     identifier is visible on the fungible goods.                           
                                                                            
                                 Average Method                             
                                                                            
    SECTION 14.                                                             
    (1) Where the exporter or person referred to in section 12 chooses the  
     average method, the origin of each shipment of fungible goods withdrawn
     from finished goods inventory during a month or three-month period, at 
     the choice of the exporter or person, is determined on the basis of the
     ratio of originating goods and non-originating goods in finished goods 
     inventory for the preceding one-month or three-month period that is    
     calculated by dividing                                                 
      (a) the sum of                                                        
        (i) the total units of originating goods or non-originating goods   
         that are fungible goods and that were in finished goods inventory  
         at the beginning of the preceding one-month or three-month period, 
         and                                                                
        (ii) the total units of originating goods or non-originating goods  
         that are fungible goods and that were received in finished goods   
         inventory during that preceding one-month or three-month period,   
    by                                                                      
      (b) the sum of                                                        
        (i) the total units of originating goods and non-originating goods  
         that are fungible goods and that were in finished goods inventory  
         at the beginning of the preceding one-month or three-month period, 
         and                                                                
        (ii) the total units of originating goods and non-originating goods 
         that are fungible goods and that were received in finished goods   
         inventory during that preceding one-month or three-month period.   
    (2) The calculation with respect to a preceding month or three-month    
     period under subsection (1) is applied to the fungible goods remaining 
     in finished goods inventory at the end of the preceding month or three-
     month period.                                                          
                                                                            
                    Manner of Dealing with Opening Inventory                
                                                                            
    SECTION 15.                                                             
    (1) Except as otherwise provided under subsections (2) and (3), where   
     the exporter or person referred to in section 12 has fungible goods in 
     opening inventory, the origin of those fungible goods is determined by 
    
    [[Page 46457]]
                                                                            
      (a) identifying, in the books of the exporter or person, the latest   
       receipts of fungible goods that add up to the amount of fungible     
       goods in opening inventory;                                          
      (b) determining the origin of the fungible goods that make up those   
       receipts; and                                                        
      (c) considering the origin of those fungible goods to be the origin of
       the fungible goods in opening inventory.                             
    (2) Where the exporter or person chooses the specific identification    
     method and has, in opening inventory, originating goods or non-        
     originating goods that are fungible goods and that are marked with an  
     origin identifier, the origin of those fungible goods is determined on 
     the basis of the origin identifier.                                    
    (3) The exporter or person may consider all fungible goods in opening   
     inventory to be non-originating goods.                                 
                                                                            
                                   ADDENDUM A                               
      ``EXAMPLES'' ILLUSTRATING THE APPLICATION OF THE INVENTORY MANAGEMENT 
              METHODS TO DETERMINE THE ORIGIN OF FUNGIBLE MATERIALS         
                                                                            
        The following ``examples'' are based on the figures set out in the  
     table below and on the following assumptions:                          
      (a) originating Material A and non-originating Material A that are    
       fungible materials are used in the production of Good A;             
      (b) one unit of Material A is used to produce one unit of Good A;     
      (c) Material A is only used in the production of Good A;              
      (d) all other materials used in the production of Good A are          
       originating materials; and                                           
      (e) the producer of Good A exports all shipments of Good A to the     
       territory of a NAFTA country.                                        
                                                                            
    
    
    
    
    ----------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------
                                                Materials inventory(Receipts of material A)         Sales(Shipments 
                                         ---------------------------------------------------------     of good A)   
                 Date(M/D/Y)                                                                      ------------------
                                           Quantity(units)      Unit cost *        Total value      Quantity(units) 
    ----------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------
    12/18/93............................        100 (O \1\)              $1.00               $100                   
    12/27/93............................        100 (N \2\)               1.10                110                   
    01/01/94............................       200 (OI \3\)                                                         
    01/01/94............................          1,000 (O)               1.00              1,000                   
    01/05/94............................          1,000 (N)               1.10              1,100                   
    01/10/94............................  .................  .................  .................                100
    01/10/94............................          1,000 (O)               1.05              1,050                   
    01/15/94............................  .................  .................  .................                700
    01/16/94............................          2,000 (N)               1.10              2,200                   
    01/20/94............................  .................  .................  .................              1,000
    01/23/94............................  .................  .................  .................               900 
    ----------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------
    * Unit cost is determined in accordance with section 7 of this Appendix.                                        
    \1\ ``O'' denotes originating materials.                                                                        
    \2\ ``N'' denotes non-originating materials.                                                                    
    \3\ ``OI'' denotes opening inventory.                                                                           
    
    
    Example 1: FIFO method                                                  
        Good A is subject to a regional value-content requirement. Producer 
     A is using the transaction value method to determine the regional value
     content of Good A.                                                     
        By applying the FIFO method:                                        
    (1) the 100 units of originating Material A in opening inventory that   
     were received in materials inventory on 12/18/93 are considered to have
     been used in the production of the 100 units of Good A shipped on 01/10/
     94; therefore, the value of non-originating materials used in the      
     production of those goods is considered to be $0;                      
    (2) the 100 units of non-originating Material A in opening inventory    
     that were received in materials inventory on 12/27/93 and 600 units of 
     the 1,000 units of originating Material A that were received in        
     materials inventory on 01/01/94 are considered to have been used in the
     production of the 700 units of Good A shipped on 01/15/94; therefore,  
     the value of non-originating materials used in the production of those 
     goods is considered to be $110 (100 units x $1.10);                    
    (3) the remaining 400 units of the 1,000 units of originating Material A
     that were received in materials inventory on 01/01/94 and 600 units of 
     the 1,000 units of non-originating Material A that were received in    
     materials inventory on 01/05/94 are considered to have been used in the
     production of the 1,000 units of Good A shipped on 01/20/94; therefore,
     the value of non-originating materials used in the production of those 
     goods is considered to be $660 (600 units x $1.10); and                
    (4) the remaining 400 units of the 1,000 units of non-originating       
     Material A that were received in materials inventory on 01/05/94 and   
     500 units of the 1,000 units of originating Material A that were       
     received in materials inventory on 01/10/94 are considered to have been
     used in the production of the 900 units of Good A shipped on 01/23/94; 
     therefore, the value of non-originating materials used in the          
     production of those goods is considered to be $440 (400 units x $1.10).
    Example 2: LIFO method                                                  
        Good A is subject to a change in tariff classification requirement  
     and the non-originating Material A used in the production of Good A    
     does not undergo the applicable change in tariff classification.       
     Therefore, where originating Material A is used in the production of   
     Good A, Good A is an originating good and, where non-originating       
     Material A is used in the production of Good A, Good A is a non-       
     originating good.                                                      
        By applying the LIFO method:                                        
    (1) 100 units of the 1,000 units of non-originating Material A that were
     received in materials inventory on 01/05/94 are considered to have been
     used in the production of the 100 units of Good A shipped on 01/10/94; 
    (2) 700 units of the 1,000 units of originating Material A that were    
     received in materials inventory on 01/10/94 are considered to have been
     used in the production of the 700 units of Good A shipped on 01/15/94; 
    (3) 1,000 units of the 2,000 units of non-originating Material A that   
     were received in materials inventory on 01/16/94 are considered to have
     been used in the production of the 1,000 units of Good A shipped on 01/
     20/94; and                                                             
    
    [[Page 46458]]
                                                                            
    (4) 900 units of the remaining 1,000 units of non-originating Material A
     that were received in materials inventory on 01/16/94 are considered to
     have been used in the production of the 900 units of Good A shipped on 
     01/23/94.                                                              
    Example 3: Average method                                               
        Good A is subject to an applicable regional value-content           
     requirement. Producer A is using the transaction value method to       
     determine the regional value content of Good A. Producer A determines  
     the average value of non-originating Material A and the ratio of       
     originating Material A to total value of originating Material A and non-
     originating Material A in the following table.                         
                                                                            
    
    
    
    
    --------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------
                                                                                        Materials inventory                                  Sales(Shipments
                                                      --------------------------------------------------------------------------------------    of good A)  
                                          Date(M/D/Y)           (Receipts of material A)                  (Non-originating material)        ----------------
                                                      --------------------------------------------------------------------------------------                
                                                       Quantity(units)  Total value  Unit cost *  Quantity(units)  Total value     Ratio     Quantity(units)
    --------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------
    Receipt.............................     12/18/93  100 (O \1\)             $100        $1.00                                                            
    Receipt.............................     12/27/93  100 (N \2\)              110         1.10            100        $110.00                              
                                                      -------------------------------------------------------------------------                             
    NEW AVERAGE INV. VALUE..............  ...........  200 (OI \3\)             210         1.05            100         105.00         0.50                 
    Receipt.............................     01/01/94  1,000 (O)              1,000         1.00                                                            
                                                      -------------------------------------------------------------------------                             
    NEW AVERAGE INV. VALUE..............  ...........  1,200                  1,210         1.01            100         101.00         0.08                 
    Receipt.............................     01/05/94  1,000 (N)              1,100         1.10          1,000       1,100.00                              
                                                      -------------------------------------------------------------------------                             
    NEW AVERAGE INV. VALUE..............  ...........  2,200                  2,310         1.05          1,100       1,155.00         0.50                 
    Shipment............................     01/10/94  (100)                  (105)         1.05           (50)        (52.50)  ...........            100  
    Receipt.............................     01/10/94  1,000 (O)              1,050         1.05                                                            
                                                      -------------------------------------------------------------------------                             
    NEW AVERAGE INV. VALUE..............  ...........  3,100                  3,255         1.05          1,050       1,102.50         0.34                 
    Shipment............................     01/15/94  (700)                  (735)         1.05          (238)       (249.90)  ...........            700  
    Receipt.............................     01/16/94  2,000 (N)              2,200         1.10          2,000       2,000.00                              
                                                      -------------------------------------------------------------------------                             
    NEW AVERAGE INV. VALUE..............  ...........  4,400                  4,720         1.07          2,816       3,013.20         0.64                 
    Shipment............................     01/20/94  (1,000)              (1,070)         1.07          (640)       (648.80)  ...........          1,000  
    Shipment............................     01/23/94  (900)                  (963)         1.07          (576)       (616.32)  ...........            900  
                                                      -------------------------------------------------------------------------                             
    NEW AVERAGE INV. VALUE..............  ...........  2,500                  2,687         1.07          1,596       1,707.24        0.64                  
    --------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------
    * Unit cost is determined in accordance with section 7 of this Appendix.                                                                                
    \1\ ``O'' denotes originating materials.                                                                                                                
    \2\ ``N'' denotes non-originating materials.                                                                                                            
    \3\ ``OI'' denotes opening inventory.                                                                                                                   
    
    
                                                                            
                                                                            
                                                                             
        By applying the average method:                                     
    (1) before the shipment of the 100 units of Material A on 01/10/94, the 
     ratio of units of originating Material A to total units of Material A  
     in materials inventory was .50 (1,100 units/2,200 units) and the ratio 
     of units of non-originating Material A to total units of Material A in 
     materials inventory was .50 (1,100 units/2,200 units); based on those  
     ratios, 50 units (100 units  x  .50) of originating Material A and 50  
     units (100 units  x  .50) of non-originating Material A are considered 
     to have been used in the production of the 100 units of Good A shipped 
     on 01/10/94; therefore, the value of non-originating Material A used in
     the production of those goods is considered to be $52.50 [100 units  x 
     $1.05 (average unit value)  x  .50]; the ratios are applied to the     
     units of Material A remaining in materials inventory after the         
     shipment: 1,050 units (2,100 units  x  .50) are considered to be       
     originating materials and 1,050 units (2,100 units  x  .50) are        
     considered to be non-originating materials;                            
    (2) before the shipment of the 700 units of Good A on 01/15/94, the     
     ratio of units of originating Material A to total units of Material A  
     in materials inventory was 66% (2,050 units/3,100 units) and the ratio 
     of units of non-originating Material A to total units of Material A in 
     materials inventory was 34% (1,050 units/3,100 units); based on those  
     ratios, 462 units (700 units  x  .66) of originating Material A and 238
     units (700 units  x  .34) of non-originating Material A are considered 
     to have been used in the production of the 700 units of Good A shipped 
     on 01/15/94; therefore, the value of non-originating Material A used in
     the production of those goods is considered to be $249.90 [700 units  x
      $1.05 (average unit value)  x  34%]; the ratios are applied to the    
     units of Material A remaining in materials inventory after the         
     shipment: 1,584 units (2,400 units  x  .66) are considered to be       
     originating materials and 816 units (2,400 units  x  .34) are          
     considered to be non-originating materials;                            
    (3) before the shipment of the 1,000 units of Material A on 01/20/94,   
     the ratio of units of originating Material A to total units of Material
     A in materials inventory was 36% (1,584 units/4,400 units) and the     
     ratio of units of non-originating Material A to total units of Material
     A in materials inventory was 64% (2,816 units/4,400 units); based on   
     those ratios, 360 units (1,000 units  x  .36) of originating Material A
     and 640 units (1,000 units  x  .64) of non-originating Material A are  
     considered to have been used in the production of the 1,000 units of   
     Good A shipped on 01/20/94; therefore, the value of non-originating    
     Material A used in the production of those goods is considered to be   
     $684.80 [1,000 units  x  $1.07 (average unit value)  x  64%]; those    
     ratios are applied to the units of Material A remaining in materials   
     inventory after the shipment: 1,224 units (3,400 units  x  .36) are    
     considered to be originating materials and 2,176 units (3,400 units  x 
     .64) are considered to be non-originating materials;                   
    
    [[Page 46459]]
                                                                            
    (4) before the shipment of the 900 units of Good A on 01/23/94, the     
     ratio of units of originating Material A to total units of Material A  
     in materials inventory was 36% (1,224 units/3,400 units) and the ratio 
     of units of non-originating Material A to total units of Material A in 
     materials inventory was 64% (2,176 units/3,400 units; based on those   
     ratios, 324 units (900 units  x  .36) of originating Material A and 576
     units (900 units  x  .64) of non-originating Material A are considered 
     to have been used in the production of the 900 units of Good A shipped 
     on 01/23/94; therefore, the value of non-originating Material A used in
     the production of those goods is considered to be $616.32 [900 units  x
      $1.07 (average unit value)  x  64%]; those ratios are applied to the  
     units of Material A remaining in materials inventory after the         
     shipment: 900 units (2,500 units  x  .36) are considered to be         
     originating materials and 1,600 units (2,500 units  x  .64) are        
     considered to be non-originating materials.                            
    Example 4: Average method                                               
        Good A is subject to an applicable regional value-content           
     requirement. Producer A is using the net cost method and is averaging  
     over a period of one month under section 6(15)(a) of this Appendix to  
     determine the regional value content of Good A.                        
        By applying the average method:                                     
      the ratio of units of originating Material A to total units of        
       Material A in materials inventory for January 1994 is 40.4% (2,100   
       units/5,200 units);                                                  
      based on that ratio, 1,091 units (2,700 units  x  .404) of originating
       Material A and 1,609 units (2,700 units-1,091 units) of non-         
       originating Material A are considered to have been used in the       
       production of the 2,700 units of Good A shipped in January 1994;     
       therefore, the value of non-originating materials used in the        
       production of those goods is considered to be $0.64 per unit [$5,560 
       (total value of Material A in materials inventory)/ $5,200 (units of 
       Material A in materials inventory) = $1.07 (average unit value)  x   
       (1-.404)] or $1,728 ($0.64  x  2,700 units); and                     
      that ratio is applied to the units of Material A remaining in         
       materials inventory on January 31, 1994: 1,010 units (2,500 units  x 
       .404) are considered to be originating materials and 1,490 units     
       (2,500 units-1,010 units) are considered to be non-originating       
       materials.                                                           
                                                                            
                                                                            
    
    
    
                                   ADDENDUM B                               
      ``EXAMPLES'' ILLUSTRATING THE APPLICATION OF THE INVENTORY MANAGEMENT 
                              METHODS TO DETERMINE                          
                          THE ORIGIN OF FUNGIBLE GOODS                      
                                                                            
        The following ``examples'' are based on the figures set out in the  
     table below and on the assumption that Exporter A acquires originating 
     Good A and non-originating Good A that are fungible goods and          
     physically combines or mixes Good A before exporting those goods to the
     buyer of those goods.                                                  
                                                                            
    
    
    
    ----------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------
                                                                         Finished goods        Sales (shipments of  
                                                                     inventory (receipts of          good A)        
                             Date (M/D/Y)                                   good A)         ------------------------
                                                                   -------------------------                        
                                                                        Quantity (units)         Quantity (units)   
    ----------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------
    12/18/93......................................................                100 (O 1)                         
    12/27/93......................................................                100 (N 2)                         
    01/01/94......................................................               200 (OI 3)                         
    01/01/94......................................................                1,000 (O)                         
    01/05/94......................................................                1,000 (N)                         
    01/10/94......................................................  .......................                      100
    01/15/94......................................................                1,000 (O)                         
    01/16/94......................................................  .......................                      700
    01/20/94......................................................                2,000 (N)                         
    01/20/94......................................................  .......................                    1,000
    01/23/94......................................................  .......................                     900 
    ----------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------
    1 ``O'' denotes originating goods.                                                                              
    2 ``N'' denotes non-originating goods.                                                                          
    3 ``OI'' denotes opening inventory.                                                                             
    
    
    Example 1: FIFO method                                                  
        By applying the FIFO method:                                        
    (1) the 100 units of originating Good A in opening inventory that were  
     received in finished goods inventory on 12/18/93 are considered to be  
     the 100 units of Good A shipped on 01/10/94;                           
    (2) the 100 units of non-originating Good A in opening inventory that   
     were received in finished goods inventory on 12/27/93 and 600 units of 
     the 1,000 units of originating Good A that were received in finished   
     goods inventory on 01/01/94 are considered to be the 700 units of Good 
     A shipped on 01/15/94;                                                 
    (3) the remaining 400 units of the 1,000 units of originating Good A    
     that were received in finished goods inventory on 01/01/94 and 600     
     units of the 1,000 units of non-originating Good A that were received  
     in finished goods inventory on 01/05/94 are considered to be the 1,000 
     units of Good A shipped on 01/20/94; and                               
    (4) the remaining 400 units of the 1,000 units of non-originating Good A
     that were received in finished goods inventory on 01/05/94 and 500     
     units of the 1,000 units of originating Good A that were received in   
     finished goods inventory on 01/10/94 are considered to be the 900 units
     of Good A shipped on 01/23/94.                                         
    Example 2: LIFO method                                                  
        By applying the LIFO method:                                        
    (1) 100 units of the 1,000 units of non-originating Good A that were    
     received in finished goods inventory on 01/05/94 are considered to be  
     the 100 units of Good A shipped on 01/10/94;                           
    (2) 700 units of the 1,000 units of originating Good A that were        
     received in finished goods inventory on 01/10/94 are considered to be  
     the 700 units of Good A shipped on 01/15/94;                           
    (3) 1,000 units of the 2,000 units of non-originating Good A that were  
     received in finished goods inventory on 01/16/94 are considered to be  
     the 1,000 units of Good A shipped on 01/20/94; and                     
    (4) 900 units of the remaining 1,000 units of non-originating Good A    
     that were received in finished goods inventory on 01/16/94 are         
     considered to be the 900 units of Good A shipped on 01/23/94.          
    Example 3: Average method                                               
    
    [[Page 46460]]
                                                                            
        Exporter A chooses to determine the origin of Good A on a monthly   
     basis. Exporter A exported 3,000 units of Good A during the month of   
     February 1994. The origin of the units of Good A exported during that  
     month is determined on the basis of the preceding month, that is       
     January 1994.                                                          
        By applying the average method:                                     
      the ratio of originating goods to all goods in finished goods         
       inventory for the month of January 1994 is 40.4% (2,100 units/5,200  
       units);                                                              
      based on that ratio, 1,212 units (3,000 units  x  .404) of Good A     
       shipped in February 1994 are considered to be originating goods and  
       1,788 units (3,000 units - 1,212 units) of Good A are considered to  
       be non-originating goods; and                                        
      that ratio is applied to the units of Good A remaining in finished    
       goods inventory on January 31, 1994: 1,010 units (2,500 units  x     
       .404) are considered to be originating goods and 1,490 units (2,500  
       units - 1,010 units) are considered to be non-originating goods.     
                                                                            
    
    
    
                                   SCHEDULE XI                              
               METHOD FOR CALCULATING NON-ALLOWABLE INTEREST COSTS          
                                                                            
                         Definitions and Interpretation                     
    SECTION 1. Definitions.                                                 
        For purposes of this Schedule,                                      
    ``fixed-rate contract'' means a loan contract, installment purchase     
     contract or other financing agreement in which the interest rate       
     remains constant throughout the life of the contract or agreement;     
    ``linear interpolation'' means, with respect to the yield on federal    
     government debt obligations, the application of the following          
     mathematical formula:                                                  
                                                                            
                            A+[((B-A) x (E-D))/(C-D)]                       
                                                                            
    where                                                                   
        A is the yield on federal government debt obligations that are      
         nearest in maturity but of shorter maturity than the weighted      
         average principal maturity of the payment schedule under the fixed-
         rate contract or variable-rate contract to which they are being    
         compared,                                                          
        B is the yield on federal government debt obligations that are      
         nearest in maturity but of greater maturity than the weighted      
         average principal maturity of that payment schedule,               
        C is the maturity of federal government debt obligations that are   
         nearest in maturity but of greater maturity than the weighted      
         average principal maturity of that payment schedule,               
        D is the maturity of federal government debt obligations that are   
         nearest in maturity but of shorter maturity than the weighted      
         average principal maturity of that payment schedule, and           
        E is the weighted average principal maturity of that payment        
         schedule; ``payment schedule'' means the schedule of payments,     
         whether on a weekly, bi-weekly, monthly, yearly or other basis, of 
         principal and interest, or any combination thereof, made by a      
         producer to a lender in accordance with the terms of a fixed-rate  
         contract or variable-rate contract;                                
    ``variable-rate contract'' means a loan contract, installment purchase  
     contract or other financing agreement in which the interest rate is    
     adjusted at intervals during the life of the contract or agreement in  
     accordance with its terms;                                             
    ``weighted average principal maturity'' means, with respect to fixed-   
     rate contracts and variable-rate contracts, the number of years, or    
     portion thereof, that is equal to the number obtained by               
      (a) dividing the sum of the weighted principal payments,              
        (i) in the case of a fixed-rate contract, by the original amount of 
         the loan, and                                                      
        (ii) in the case of a variable-rate contract, by the principal      
         balance at the beginning of the interest rate period for which the 
         weighted principal payments were calculated, and                   
      (b) rounding the amount determined under paragraph (a) to the nearest 
       single decimal place and, where that amount is the midpoint between  
       two such numbers, to the greater of those two numbers;               
    ``weighted principal payment'' means,                                   
      (a) with respect to fixed-rate contracts, the amount determined by    
       multiplying each principal payment under the contract by the number  
       of years, or portion thereof, between the date the producer entered  
       into the contract and the date of that principal payment, and        
      (b) with respect to variable-rate contracts                           
        (i) the amount determined by multiplying each principal payment made
         during the current interest rate period by the number of years, or 
         portion thereof, between the beginning of that interest rate period
         and the date of that payment, and                                  
        (ii) the amount equal to the outstanding principal owing, but not   
         necessarily due, at the end of the current interest rate period,   
         multiplied by the number of years, or portion thereof, between the 
         beginning and the end of that interest rate period;                
    ``yield on federal government debt obligations'' means                  
      (a) in the case of a producer located in Canada, the yield for federal
       government debt obligations set out in the Bank of Canada's Weekly   
       Financial Statistics                                                 
        (i) where the interest rate is adjusted at intervals of less than   
         one year, under the title ``Treasury Bills'', and                  
        (ii) in any other case, under the title ``Selected Government of    
         Canada benchmark bond yields'',                                    
                                                                            
      for the week that the producer entered into the contract or the week  
       of the most recent interest rate adjustment date, if any, under the  
       contract,                                                            
      (b) in the case of a producer located in Mexico, the yield for federal
       government debt obligations set out in La Seccion de Indicadores     
       Monetarios, Financieros, y de Finanzas Publicas, de los Indicadores  
       Economicos, published by the Banco de Mexico under the title         
       ``Certificados de la Tesoreria de la Federacion'' for the week that  
       the producer entered into the contract or the week of the most recent
       interest rate adjustment date, if any, under the contract, and       
      (c) in the case of a producer located in the United States, the yield 
       for federal government debt obligations set out in the Federal       
       Reserve statistical release (H.15) Selected Interest Rates           
    
    [[Page 46461]]
                                                                            
        (i) where the interest rate is adjusted at intervals of less than   
         one year, under the title ``U.S. government securities, Treasury   
         bills, Secondary market'', and                                     
        (ii) in any other case, under the title ``U.S. Government           
         Securities, Treasury constant maturities'',                        
                                                                            
      for the week that the producer entered into the contract or the week  
       of the most recent interest rate adjustment date, if any, under the  
       contract.                                                            
                                                                            
                                     General                                
                                                                            
    SECTION 2.                                                              
        For purposes of calculating non-allowable interest costs            
      (a) with respect to a fixed-rate contract, the interest rate under    
       that contract shall be compared with the yield on federal government 
       debt obligations that have maturities of the same length as the      
       weighted average principal maturity of the payment schedule under the
       contract (that yield determined by linear interpolation, where       
       necessary);                                                          
      (b) with respect to a variable-rate contract                          
        (i) in which the interest rate is adjusted at intervals of less than
         or equal to one year, the interest rate under that contract shall  
         be compared with the yield on federal government debt obligations  
         that have maturities closest in length to the interest rate        
         adjustment period of the contract, and                             
        (ii) in which the interest rate is adjusted at intervals of greater 
         than one year, the interest rate under the contract shall be       
         compared with the yield on federal government debt obligations that
         have maturities of the same length as the weighted average         
         principal maturity of the payment schedule under the contract (that
         yield determined by linear interpolation, where necessary); and    
      (c) with respect to a fixed-rate or variable-rate contract in which   
       the weighted average principal maturity of the payment schedule under
       the contract is greater than the maturities offered on federal       
       government debt obligations, the interest rate under the contract    
       shall be compared to the yield on federal government debt obligations
       that have maturities closest in length to the weighted average       
       principal maturity of the payment schedule under the contract.       
                                                                            
                                    ADDENDUM                                
     ``EXAMPLE'' ILLUSTRATING THE APPLICATION OF THE METHOD FOR CALCULATING 
        NON-ALLOWABLE INTEREST COSTS IN THE CASE OF A FIXED-RATE CONTRACT   
                                                                            
        The following example is based on the figures set out in the table  
     below and on the following assumptions:                                
      (a) a producer in a NAFTA country borrows $1,000,000 from a person of 
       the same NAFTA country under a fixed-rate contract;                  
      (b) under the terms of the contract, the loan is payable in 10 years  
       with interest paid at the rate of 6 percent per year on the declining
       principal balance;                                                   
      (c) the payment schedule calculated by the lender based on the terms  
       of the contract requires the producer to make annual payments of     
       principal and interest of $135,867.36 over the life of the contract; 
      (d) there are no federal government debt obligations that have        
       maturities equal to the 6-year weighted average principal maturity of
       the contract; and                                                    
      (e) the federal government debt obligations that are nearest in       
       maturity to the weighted average principal maturity of the contract  
       are of 5- and 7-year maturities, and the yields on them are 4.7      
       percent and 5.0 percent, respectively.                               
                                                                            
    
    
    
    
    --------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------
                                                                                                                                                Weighted    
                          Years of loan                        Principal balance   Interest payment  Principal payment   Payment schedule  principal payment
                                                                      \1\                \2\                \3\                                   \4\       
    --------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------
    1.......................................................        $924,132.04          $60,000.00         $75,867.96        $135,867.96         $75,867.96
    2.......................................................         843,712.00           55,447.92          80,420.04         135,867.96         160,840.08
    3.......................................................         758,466.76           50,622.72          85,245.24         135,867.96         255,735.72
    4.......................................................         668,106.81           45,508.01          90,359.95         135,867.96         361,439.82
    5.......................................................         572,325.26           40,086.41          95,781.55         135,867.96         478,907.76
    6.......................................................         470,796.81           34,339.52         101,528.44         135,867.96         609,170.67
    7.......................................................         363,176.66           28,247.81         107,620.15         135,867.96         753,341.06
    8.......................................................         249,099.30           21,790.60         114,077.36         135,867.96         912,618.88
    9.......................................................         128,177.30           14,945.96         120,922.00         135,867.96       1,088,298.02
    10......................................................              (0.00)           7,690.66         128,177.32         135,867.96       1,281,773.22
                                                                                                                                          ------------------
                                                              ..................  .................  .................  .................     $5,977,993.19 
    --------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------
    \1\ The principal balance represents the loan balance at the end of each full year the loan is in effect and is calculated by subtracting the current   
      year's principal payment from the prior year's ending loan balance.                                                                                   
    \2\ Interest payments are calculated by multiplying the prior year's ending loan balance by the contract interest rate of 6 percent.                    
    \3\ Principal payments are calculated by subtracting the current year's interest payments from the annual payment schedule amount.                      
    \4\ The weighted principal payment is determined by, for each year of the loan, multiplying that year's principal payment by the number of years the    
      loan had been in effect at the end of that year.                                                                                                      
    \5\ The weighted average principal maturity of the contract is calculated by dividing the sum of the weighted principal payments by the original loan   
      amount and rounding the amount determined to the nearest decimal place.                                                                               
    
    
    Weighted Average Principal Maturity                                     
        $5,977,993.19/$1,000,000=5.977993 or 6 years \5\                    
    By applying the above method:                                           
      (1) the weighted average principal maturity of the payment schedule   
       under the 6 percent contract is 6 years;                             
      (2) the yields on the closest maturities for comparable federal       
       government debt obligations of 5 years and 7 years are 4.7 percent   
       and 5.0 percent, respectively; therefore, using linear interpolation,
       the yield on a federal government debt obligation that has a maturity
       equal to the weighted average principal maturity of the contract is  
       4.85 percent. This number is calculated as follows:                  
                                                                            
    
    [[Page 46462]]
                                                                            
        4.7+[((5.0-4.7) x (6-5))/(7-5)]                                     
        =4.7+0.15                                                           
        =4.85%; and                                                         
                                                                            
      (3) the producer's contract interest rate of 6 percent is within 700  
       basis points of the 4.85 percent yield on the comparable federal     
       government debt obligation; therefore, none of the producer's        
       interest costs are considered to be non-allowable interest costs for 
       purposes of the definition ``non-allowable interest costs.''         
                                                                            
     ``EXAMPLE'' ILLUSTRATING THE APPLICATION OF THE METHOD FOR CALCULATING 
      NON-ALLOWABLE INTEREST COSTS IN THE CASE OF A VARIABLE-RATE CONTRACT  
                                                                            
        The following example is based on the figures set out in the tables 
     below and on the following assumptions:                                
      (a) a producer in a NAFTA country borrows $1,000,000 from a person of 
       the same NAFTA country under a variable-rate contract;               
      (b) under the terms of the contract, the loan is payable in 10 years  
       with interest paid at the rate of 6 percent per year for the first   
       two years and 8 percent per year for the next two years on the       
       principal balance, with rates adjusted each two years after that;    
      (c) the payment schedule calculated by the lender based on the terms  
       of the contract requires the producer to make annual payments of     
       principal and interest of $135,867.96 for the first two years of the 
       loan, and of $146,818.34 for the next two years of the loan;         
      (d) there are no federal government debt obligations that have        
       maturities equal to the 1.9-year weighted average principal maturity 
       of the first two years of the contract;                              
      (e) there are no federal government debt obligations that have        
       maturities equal to the 1.9-year weighted average principal maturity 
       of the third and fourth years of the contract; and                   
      (f) the federal government debt obligations that are nearest in       
       maturity to the weighted average principal maturity of the contract  
       are 1- and 2-year maturities, and the yields on them are 3.0 percent 
       and 3.5 percent respectively.                                        
                                                                            
    
    
    
    
    --------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------
                                                                                                                                                Weighted    
               Beginning of year            Principal balance  Interest rate (%)   Interest payment  Principal payment   Payment schedule  principal payment
    --------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------
    1.....................................      $1,000,000.00               6.00         $60,000.00         $75,867.96        $135,867.96         $75,867.96
    2.....................................         924,132.04               6.00          55,447.92          80,420.04         135,867.96       1,848,264.08
                                                                                                                                          ------------------
                                            .................  .................  .................  .................  .................      $1,924,132.04
    --------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------
    
    
    
    Weighted Average Principal Maturity                                     
        $1,924,132.04/$1,000,000=1.92413204 or 1.9 years                    
    By applying the above method:                                           
      (1) the weighted average principal maturity of the payment schedule of
       the first two years of the contract is 1.9 years;                    
      (2) the yield on the closest maturities of federal government debt    
       obligations of 1 year and 2 years are 3.0 and 3.5 percent,           
       respectively; therefore, using linear interpolation, the yield on a  
       federal government debt obligation that has a maturity equal to the  
       weighted average principal maturity of the payment schedule of the   
       first two years of the contract is 3.45 percent. This amount is      
       calculated as follows:                                               
                                                                            
        3.0+[((3.5-3.0) x (1.9-1.0))/(2.0-1.0)]                             
        =3.0+0.45                                                           
        =3.45%; and                                                         
                                                                            
      (3) the producer's contract rate of 6 percent for the first two years 
       of the loan is within 700 basis points of the 3.45 percent yield on  
       federal government debt obligations that have maturities equal to the
       1.9-year weighted average principal maturity of the payment schedule 
       of the first two years of the producer's loan contract; therefore,   
       none of the producer's interest costs are considered to be non-      
       allowable interest costs for purposes of the definition ``non-       
       allowable interest costs''.                                          
                                                                            
    
    
    
    --------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------
                                                                                                                                                Weighted    
               Beginning of year            Principal balance  Interest rate (%)   Interest payment  Principal payment   Payment schedule  principal payment
    --------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------
    1.....................................      $1,000,000.00               6.00         $60,000.00         $75,867.96        $135,867.96                   
    2.....................................         924,132.04               6.00          55,447.92          80,420.04         135,867.96                   
    3.....................................         843,712.01               8.00          67,496.96          79,321.38         146,818.34         $79,321.38
    4.....................................         764,390.62               8.00          61,151.25          85,667.09         146,818.34       1,528,781.24
                                                                                                                                          ------------------
                                                                                                                                               $1,608,102.62
    --------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------
    
    
    Weighted Average Principal Maturity                                     
        $1,608,102.62/$843,712.01=1.905985 or 1.9 years                     
    By applying the above method:                                           
      (1) the weighted average principal maturity of the payment schedule   
       under the first two years of the contract is 1.9 years;              
    
    [[Page 46463]]
                                                                            
      (2) the federal government debt obligations that are nearest in       
       maturities to the weighted average principal maturity of the contract
       are 1- and 2-year maturities, and the yields on them are 3.0 and 3.5 
       percent, respectively; therefore, using linear interpolation, the    
       yield on a federal government debt obligation that has a maturity    
       equal to the weighted average principal maturity of the payment      
       schedule of the first two years of the contract is 3.45 percent. This
       amount is calculated as follows:                                     
                                                                            
        3.0+[((3.5-3.0) x (1.9-1.0))/(2.0-1.0)]                             
        =3.0+0.45                                                           
        =3.45%                                                              
                                                                            
      (3) the producer's contract interest rate, for the third and fourth   
       years of the loan, of 8 percent is within 700 basis points of the    
       3.45 percent yield on federal government debt obligations that have  
       maturities equal to the 1.9-year weighted average principal maturity 
       of the payment schedule under the third and fourth years of the      
       producer's loan contract; therefore, none of the producer's interest 
       costs are considered to be non-allowable interest costs for purposes 
       of the definition ``non-allowable interest costs''.                  
                                                                            
                                  SCHEDULE XII                              
                    GENERALLY ACCEPTED ACCOUNTING PRINCIPLES                
                                                                            
    SECTION 1.                                                              
        Generally Accepted Accounting Principles means the recognized       
     consensus or substantial authoritative support in the territory of a   
     NAFTA country with respect to the recording of revenues, expenses,     
     costs, assets and liabilities, disclosure of information and           
     preparation of financial statements. These standards may be broad      
     guidelines of general application as well as detailed standards,       
     practices and procedures.                                              
    SECTION 2.                                                              
        For purposes of Generally Accepted Accounting Principles, the       
     recognized consensus or authoritative support are referred to or set   
     out in the following publications:                                     
      (a) with respect to the territory of Canada, The Canadian Institute of
       Chartered Accountants Handbook, as updated from time to time;        
      (b) with respect to the territory of Mexico, Los Principios de        
       Contabilidad Generalmente Aceptados, issued by the Instituto Mexicano
       de Contadores Publicos A.C. (IMCP), including the boletines          
       complementarios, as updated from time to time; and                   
      (c) with respect to the territory of the United States,               
        (i) the following publications of the American Institute of         
         Certified Public Accountants (AICPA), as updated from time to time:
          (A) AICPA Professional Standards,                                 
          (B) Committee on Accounting Procedure Accounting Research         
           Bulletins,                                                       
          (C) Accounting Principles Board Opinions and Statements,          
          (D) APB Accounting and Auditing Guides,                           
          (E) AICPA Statements of Position, and                             
          (F) AICPA Issues Papers and Practice Bulletins,                   
        (ii) the following publications of the Financial Accounting         
         Standards Board (FASB), as updated from time to time:              
          (A) FASB Accounting Standards and Interpretations,                
          (B) FASB Technical Bulletins, and                                 
          (C) FASB Concepts Statements.                                     
                                                                            
    
    
    
    
    PART 191--DRAWBACK
    
        1. The general authority citation for Part 191 is revised to read 
    as follows:
    
        Authority: 5 U.S.C. 301; 19 U.S.C. 66, 1202 (General Note 20, 
    Harmonized Tariff Schedule of the United States), 1313, 1624.    
    * * * * *
        2. The last sentence of Sec. 191.0 is republished to read as 
    follows:
    
    
    Sec. 191.0  Scope.
    
        * * * Additional drawback provisions relating to the North American 
    Free Trade Agreement are contained in subpart E of part 181 of this 
    chapter.
        Dated: August 16, 1995.
    George J. Weise,
    Commissioner of Customs.
        Approved:
    John P. Simpson,
    Deputy Assistant Secretary of the Treasury.
    [FR Doc. 95-21716 Filed 8-30-95; 9:56 am]
    BILLING CODE 4820-02-P
    
    

Document Information

Effective Date:
10/1/1995
Published:
09/06/1995
Department:
Customs Service
Entry Type:
Rule
Action:
Final rule.
Document Number:
95-21716
Dates:
October 1, 1995.
Pages:
46334-46463 (130 pages)
Docket Numbers:
T.D. 95-68
RINs:
1515-AB33
PDF File:
95-21716.pdf
CFR: (146)
19 CFR 181.48(a)
19 CFR 181.53(a)(3))
19 CFR 181.53(a)(2)
19 CFR 174.12(a)(5)
19 CFR 181.11(a)
More ...